Feb 21, 2024
To Kill a Mockingbird | Harper Lee
To Kill a Mockingbird by Harper Lee
PART ONE
1 When he was nearly thirteen, my brother Jem got his arm
badly broken at the elbow. When it healed, and Jem's fears of
never being able to play football were assuaged, he was seldom self-
conscious about his injury. His left arm was somewhat shorter than his
right; when he stood or walked, the back of his hand was at
right angles to his body, his thumb parallel to his thigh. He
couldn't have cared less, so long as he could pass and punt. When
enough years had gone by to enable us to look back on them, we
sometimes discussed the events leading to his accident. I maintain
that the Ewells started it all, but Jem, who was four years
my senior, said it started long before that. He said it began
the summer Dill came to us, when Dill first gave us the idea of making
Boo Radley come out. I said if he wanted to take a broad
view of the thing, it really began with Andrew Jackson. If
General Jackson hadn't run the Creeks up the creek, Simon
Finch would never have paddled up the Alabama, and where
would we be if he hadn't? We were far too old to settle an argument
with a fist-fight, so we consulted Atticus. Our father said we were
both right. Being Southerners, it was a source of shame to
some members of the family that we had no recorded ancestors
on either side of the Battle of Hastings. All we had was
Simon Finch, a fur-trapping apothecary from Cornwall whose
piety was exceeded only by his stinginess. In England, Simon
was irritated by the persecution of those who called
themselves Methodists at the hands of their more liberal
brethren, and as Simon called himself a Methodist, he worked
his way across the Atlantic to Philadelphia, thence to
Jamaica, thence to Mobile, and up the Saint Stephens. Mindful
of John Wesley's strictures on the use of many words in buying and
selling, Simon made a pile practicing medicine, but in this pursuit he
was unhappy lest he be tempted into doing what he knew was not for the
glory of God, as the putting on of gold and costly apparel.
So Simon, having forgotten his teacher's dictum on the
possession of human chattels, bought three slaves and with their aid
established a homestead on the banks of the Alabama River
some forty miles above Saint Stephens. He returned to Saint
Stephens only once, to find a wife, and with her established
a line that ran high to daughters. Simon lived to an impressive
age and died rich. It was customary for the men in the family
to remain on Simon's homestead, Finch's Landing, and make
their living from cotton. The place was self-sufficient: modest
in comparison with the empires around it, the Landing
nevertheless produced everything required to sustain life except
ice, wheat flour, and articles of clothing, supplied by river-boats
from Mobile. Simon would have regarded with impotent fury the
disturbance between the North and the South, as it left his
descendants stripped of everything but their land, yet the
tradition of living on the land remained unbroken until well
into the twentieth century, when my father, Atticus Finch,
went to Montgomery to read law, and his younger brother went
to Boston to study medicine. Their sister Alexandra was the
Finch who remained at the Landing: she married a taciturn man who
spent most of his time lying in a hammock by the river
wondering if his trot-lines were full. in When my father was
admitted to the bar, he returned to Maycomb and began his
practice. Maycomb, some twenty miles east of Finch's Landing,
was the county seat of Maycomb County. Atticus's office the
courthouse contained little more than a hat rack, a spittoon,
a checkerboard and an unsullied Code of Alabama. His first two
clients were the last two persons hanged in the Maycomb County
jail. Atticus had urged them to accept the state's generosity in
allowing them to plead Guilty to second-degree murder and escape
with their lives, but they were Haverfords, in Maycomb County a
name synonymous with jackass. The Haverfords had dispatched
Maycomb's leading blacksmith in a misunderstanding arising from
the alleged wrongful detention of a mare, were imprudent enough
to do it in the presence of three witnesses, and insisted
that the-son-of-a-bitch-had-it-coming-to-him was a good enough
defense for anybody. They persisted in pleading Not Guilty to
first-degree murder, so there was nothing much Atticus could
do for his clients except be present at their departure, an
occasion that was probably the beginning of my father's
profound distaste for the practice of criminal law. During his
first five years in Maycomb, Atticus practiced economy more
than anything; for several years thereafter he invested his
earnings in his brother's education. John Hale Finch was ten
years younger than my father, and chose to study medicine at a
time when cotton was not worth growing; but after getting
Uncle Jack started, Atticus derived a reasonable income from
the law. He liked Maycomb, he was Maycomb County born and bred; he
knew his people, they knew him, and because of Simon Finch's
industry, Atticus was related by blood or marriage to nearly every
family in the town. Maycomb was an old town, but it was a
tired old town when I first knew it. In rainy weather the streets
turned to red slop; grass grew on the sidewalks, the
courthouse sagged in the square. Somehow, it was hotter then: a black
dog suffered on a summer's day; bony mules hitched to Hoover
carts flicked flies in the sweltering shade of the live oaks on the
square. Men's stiff collars wilted by nine in the morning. Ladies
bathed before noon, after their three- o'clock naps, and by
nightfall were like soft teacakes with frostings of sweat and
sweet talcum. People moved slowly then. They ambled across the
square, shuffled in and out of the stores around it, took
their time about everything. A day was twenty-four hours long
but seemed longer. There was no hurry, for there was nowhere to go,
nothing to buy and no money to buy it with, nothing to see outside
the boundaries of Maycomb County. But it was a time of vague
optimism for some of the people: Maycomb County had recently been
told that it had nothing to fear but fear itself. We lived on the
main residential street in town- Atticus, Jem and I, plus Calpurnia
our cook. Jem and I found our father satisfactory: he played with
us, read to us, and treated us with courteous detachment.
Calpurnia was something else again. She was all angles and bones; she
was nearsighted; she squinted; her hand was wide as a bed
slat and twice as hard. She was always ordering me out of
the kitchen, asking me why I couldn't behave as well as Jem
when she knew he was older, and calling me home when I wasn't
ready to come. Our battles were epic and one-sided. Calpurnia
always won, mainly because Atticus always took her side. She had
been with us ever since Jem was born, and I had felt her
tyrannical presence as long as I could remember. Our mother died
when I was two, so I never felt her absence. She was a Graham
from Montgomery; Atticus met her when he was first elected to
the state legislature. He was middle-aged then, she was fifteen
years his junior. Jem was the product of their first year of
marriage; four years later I was born, and two years later our
mother died from a sudden heart attack. They said it ran in
her family. I did not miss her, but I think Jem did. He
remembered her clearly, and sometimes in the middle of a game
he would sigh at length, then go off and play by himself
behind the car-house. When he was like that, I knew better
than to bother him. When I was almost six and Jem was nearly
ten, our (within calling distance of summertime boundaries
Calpurnia) were Mrs. Henry Lafayette Dubose's house two doors
to the north of us, and the Radley Place three doors to the
south. We were never tempted to break them. The Radley Place
was inhabited by an unknown entity the mere description of whom was
enough to make us behave for days on end; Mrs. Dubose was plain
hell. That was the summer Dill came to us. Early one morning as
we were beginning our day's play in the back yard, Jem and I
heard something next door in Miss Rachel Haverford's collard patch. We
went to the wire fence to see if there was a puppy- Miss
Rachel's rat terrier was expecting- instead we found someone
sitting looking at us. Sitting down, he wasn't much higher than
the collards. We stared at him until he spoke: "Hey." "Hey
yourself," said Jem pleasantly. "I'm Charles Baker Harris," he said.
"I can read." "So what?" I said. "I just thought you'd like to
know I can read. You got anything needs readin' I can do it...."
"How old are you," asked Jem, "four-and-a-half?" "Goin' on seven."
"Shoot no wonder, then," said Jem, jerking his thumb at me.
"Scout yonder's been readin' ever since she was born, and she
ain't even started to school yet. You look right puny for goin' on
seven." "I'm little but I'm old," he said. Jem brushed his hair back
to get a better look. "Why don't you come over, Charles Baker Harris?"
he said. "Lord, what a name." "'s not any funnier'n yours. Aunt
Rachel says your name's Jeremy Atticus Finch." Jem scowled. "I'm
big enough to fit mine," he said. "Your name's longer'n you
are. Bet it's a foot longer." "Folks call me Dill," said Dill,
struggling under the fence. "Do better if you go over it
instead of under it," I said. "Where'd you come from?" Dill was
from Meridian, Mississippi, was spending the summer with his
aunt, Miss Rachel, and would be spending every summer in Maycomb
from now on. His family was from Maycomb County originally,
his mother worked for a photographer in Meridian, had entered
his picture in a Beautiful Child contest and won five
dollars. She gave the money to Dill, who went to the
picture show twenty times on it. "Don't have any picture shows
here, except Jesus ones in the courthouse sometimes," said
Jem. "Ever see anything good?" Dill had seen Dracula, * a
revelation that moved Jem to eye him with the beginning of respect.
"Tell it to us," he said. Dill was a curiosity. He wore blue linen
shorts that buttoned to his shirt, his hair was snow white and
stuck to his head like duckfluff; he was a year my senior
but I towered over him. As he told us the old tale his
blue eyes would lighten and darken; his laugh was sudden and happy;
he habitually pulled at a cowlick in the center of his forehead. When
Dill reduced Dracula to dust, and Jem said the show sounded
better than the book, I asked Dill where his father was: "You ain't
said anything about him." "I haven't got one." "Is he dead?"
"No..." "Then if he's not dead you've got one, haven't you?" Dill
blushed and Jem told me to hush, a sure sign that Dill had
been studied and found acceptable. Thereafter the contentment.
Routine routine summer passed contentment was: improving our
treehouse that rested between giant twin chinaberry trees in
the back yard, fussing, running through our list of dramas
based on the works of Oliver Optic, Victor Appleton, and
Edgar Rice in Burroughs. In this matter we were lucky to
have Dill. He played the character parts formerly thrust upon
me- the ape in Tarzan, Mr. Crabtree in The Rover Boys, Mr. Damon in
Tom Swift. Thus we came to know Dill as a pocket Merlin,
whose head teemed with eccentric plans, strange longings, and
quaint fancies. But by the end of August our repertoire was
vapid from countless reproductions, and it was then that Dill
gave us the idea of making Boo Radley come out. The Radley Place
fascinated Dill. In spite of our warnings and explanations it
drew him as the moon draws water, but drew him no nearer than the
light-pole on the corner, a safe distance from the Radley gate.
There he would stand, his arm around the fat pole, staring and
wondering. The Radley Place jutted into a sharp curve beyond
our house. Walking south, one faced its porch; the sidewalk
turned and ran beside the lot. The house was low, was once white with
a deep front porch and green shutters, but had long ago
darkened to the color of the slate-gray yard around it. Rain-
rotted shingles drooped over the eaves of the veranda; oak trees
kept the sun away. The remains of a picket drunkenly guarded the
front yard- a "swept" yard that was never swept- where
johnson grass and rabbit- tobacco grew in abundance. Inside the
house lived a malevolent phantom. People said he existed, but
Jem and I had never seen him. People said he went out at night when
the moon was down, and peeped in windows. When people's azaleas
froze in a cold snap, it was because he had breathed on
them. Any stealthy small crimes committed in Maycomb were his
work. Once the town was terrorized by a series of morbid nocturnal
events: people's chickens and household pets were found mutilated;
although the culprit was Crazy Addie, who eventually drowned
himself in Barker's Eddy, people still looked at the Radley Place,
unwilling to discard their initial suspicions. A Negro would
not pass the Radley Place at night, he would cut across to
the sidewalk opposite and whistle as he walked. The Maycomb
school grounds adjoined the back of the Radley lot; from the
Radley chickenyard tall pecan trees shook their fruit into the
schoolyard, but the nuts lay untouched by the children: Radley
pecans would kill you. A baseball hit into the Radley yard was
a lost ball and no questions asked. The misery of that house
began many years before Jem and I were born. The Radleys, welcome
anywhere in town, kept to themselves, a predilection unforgivable
in Maycomb. They did not go to church, Maycomb's principal
recreation, but worshiped at home; Mrs. Radley seldom if ever crossed
the street for a mid-morning coffee break with her neighbors,
and certainly never joined a missionary circle. Mr. Radley
walked to town at eleven-thirty every morning and came back
promptly at twelve, sometimes carrying a brown paper bag that the
neighborhood assumed contained the family groceries. I never knew how
old Mr. Radley made his living- Jem said he "bought cotton," a
polite term for doing nothing- but Mr. Radley and his wife
had lived there with their two sons as long as anybody could
remember. The shutters and doors of the Radley house were closed on
Sundays, another thing alien to Maycomb's ways: closed doors
meant illness and cold weather only. Of all days Sunday was
the day for formal afternoon visiting: ladies wore corsets, men
wore coats, children wore shoes. But to climb the Radley front
steps and call, "He-y," of a Sunday afternoon was something
their neighbors never did. The Radley house had no screen doors. I
once asked Atticus if it ever had any; Atticus said yes, but before I
was born. According to neighborhood legend, when the younger
Radley boy was in his teens he became acquainted with some
of the Cunninghams from Old Sarum, an enormous and confusing
tribe domiciled in the northern part of the county, and they
formed the nearest thing to a gang ever seen in Maycomb.
They did little, but enough to be discussed by the town and
publicly warned from three pulpits: they hung around the
barbershop; they rode the bus to Abbottsville on Sundays and
went to the picture show; they attended dances at the
county's riverside gambling hell, the Dew-Drop Inn & Fishing
Camp; they experimented with stumphole whiskey. Nobody in Maycomb had
nerve enough to tell Mr. Radley that his boy was in with the wrong
crowd. One night, in an excessive spurt of high spirits, the
boys backed around the square in a borrowed flivver, resisted
arrest by Maycomb's ancient beadle, Mr. Conner, and locked him in
the courthouse outhouse. The town decided something had to be
done; Mr. Conner said he knew who each and every one of
them was, and he was bound and determined they wouldn't get
away with it, so the boys came before the probate judge on
charges of disorderly conduct, disturbing the peace, assault
and battery, and using abusive and profane language in the
presence and hearing of a female. The judge asked Mr. Conner
why he included the last charge; Mr. Conner said they cussed
so loud he was sure every lady in Maycomb heard them. The
judge decided to send the boys to the state industrial
school, where boys were sometimes sent for no other reason
than to provide them with food and decent shelter: it was no
prison and it was no disgrace. Mr. Radley thought it was. If the judge
released Arthur, Mr. Radley would see to it that Arthur gave no
further trouble. Knowing that Mr. Radley's word was his bond, the
judge was glad to do so. The other boys attended the industrial
school and received the best secondary education to be had in the
state; one of them eventually worked his way through engineering
school at Auburn. The doors of the Radley house were closed
on weekdays as well as Sundays, and Mr. Radley's boy was not seen
again for fifteen years. But there came a day, barely within
Jem's memory, when Boo Radley was heard from and was seen by
several people, but not by Jem. He said Atticus never talked much
about the Radleys: when Jem would question him Atticus's only
answer was for him to mind his own business and let the
Radleys mind theirs, they had a right to; but when it
happened Jem said Atticus shook his head and said, "Mm, mm,
mm." So Jem received most of his information from Miss
Stephanie Crawford, a neighborhood scold, who said she knew
the whole thing. According to Miss Stephanie, Boo was sitting
in the livingroom cutting some items from The Maycomb Tribune
to paste in his scrapbook. His father entered the room. As
Mr. Radley passed by, Boo drove the scissors into his
parent's leg, pulled them out, wiped them on his pants, and
resumed his activities. Mrs. Radley ran screaming into the
street that Arthur was killing them all, but when the sheriff
arrived he found Boo still sitting in the livingroom, cutting up
the Tribune. He was thirty-three years old then. Miss Stephanie said
old Mr. Radley said no Radley was going to any asylum, when it
was suggested that a season in Tuscaloosa might be helpful to
Boo. Boo wasn't crazy, he was high-strung at times. It was all
right to shut him up, Mr. Radley conceded, but insisted that Boo not
be charged with anything: he was not a criminal. The sheriff hadn't
the heart to put him in jail alongside Negroes, so Boo was
locked in the courthouse basement. Boo's transition from the
basement to back home was nebulous in Jem's memory. Miss
Stephanie Crawford said some of the town council told Mr.
Radley that if he didn't take Boo back, Boo would die of
mold from the damp. Besides, Boo could not live forever on
the bounty of the county. form of Nobody knew what
intimidation Mr. Radley employed to keep Boo out of sight, but Jem
figured that Mr. Radley kept him chained to the bed most of
the time. Atticus said no, it wasn't that sort of thing, that there
were other ways of making people into ghosts. My memory came alive to
see Mrs. Radley occasionally open the front door, walk to the
edge of the porch, and pour water on her cannas. But every
day Jem and I would see Mr. Radley walking to and from town. He
was a thin leathery man with colorless eyes, so colorless they
did not reflect light. His cheekbones were sharp and his
mouth was wide, with a thin upper lip and a full lower lip.
Miss Stephanie Crawford said he was so upright he took the word of
God as his only law, and we believed her, because Mr.
Radley's posture was ramrod straight. He never spoke to us. When he
passed we would look at the ground and say, "Good morning, sir," and
he would cough in reply. Mr. Radley's elder son lived in
Pensacola; he came home at Christmas, and he was one of the few
persons we ever saw enter or leave the place. From the day Mr. Radley
took Arthur home, people said the house died. But there came a day
when Atticus told us he'd wear us out if we made any noise in
the yard and commissioned Calpurnia to serve in his absence
if she heard a sound out of us. Mr. Radley was dying. He took
his time about it. Wooden sawhorses blocked the road at each
end of the Radley lot, straw was put down on the sidewalk, traffic
was diverted to the back street. Dr. Reynolds parked his car in
front of our house and walked to the Radley's every time he
called. Jem and I crept around the yard for days. At last
the sawhorses were taken away, and we stood watching from the
front porch when Mr. Radley made his final journey past our house.
"There goes the meanest man ever God blew breath into,"
murmured Calpurnia, and she spat meditatively into the yard.
We looked at her in surprise, for Calpurnia rarely commented
on the ways of white people. The neighborhood thought when Mr. Radley
went under Boo would come out, but it had another think
coming: Boo's elder brother returned from Pensacola and took Mr.
Radley's place. The only difference between him and his father
was their ages. Jem said Mr. Nathan Radley "bought cotton,"
too. Mr. Nathan would speak to us, however, when we said good
morning, and sometimes we saw him coming from town with a
magazine in his hand. The more we told Dill about the Radleys,
the more he wanted to know, the longer he would stand
hugging the light-pole on the corner, the more he would wonder.
"Wonder what he does in there," he would murmur. "Looks like he'd just
stick his head out the door." Jem said, "He goes out, all right, when
it's pitch dark. Miss Stephanie Crawford said she woke up in
the middle of the night one time and saw him looking
straight through the window at her... said his head was like a skull
lookin' at her. Ain't you ever waked up at night and heard
him, Dill? He walks like this-" Jem slid his feet through the
gravel. "Why do you think Miss Rachel locks up so tight at
night? I've seen his tracks in our back yard many a mornin',
and one night I heard him scratching on the back screen, but he was
gone time Atticus got there." "Wonder what he looks like?" said Dill.
Jem gave a reasonable description of Boo: Boo was about six-
and-a-half feet tall, judging from his tracks; he dined on raw
squirrels and any cats he could catch, that's why his hands
were bloodstained- if you ate an animal raw, you could never
wash the blood off. There was a long jagged scar that ran
across his face; what teeth he had were yellow and rotten; his eyes
popped, and he drooled most of the time. "Let's try to make him
come out," said Dill. "I'd like to see what he looks like." Jem said
if Dill wanted to get himself killed, all he had to do was go up and
knock on the front door. Our first raid came to pass only
because Dill bet Jem The Gray Ghost against two Tom Swifts
that Jem wouldn't get any farther than the Radley gate. In
all his life, Jem had never declined a dare. Jem thought about
it for three days. I suppose he loved honor more than his
head, for Dill wore him down easily: "You're scared," Dill
said, the first day. "Ain't scared, just respectful," Jem
said. The next day Dill said, "You're too scared even to put
your big toe in the front yard." Jem said he reckoned he wasn't, he'd
passed the Radley Place every school day of his life. "Always
runnin'," I said. But Dill got him the third day, when he
told Jem that folks in Meridian certainly weren't as afraid
as the folks in Maycomb, that he'd never seen such scary folks as
the ones in Maycomb. This was enough to make Jem march to the corner,
where he stopped and leaned against the light-pole, watching the gate
hanging crazily on its homemade hinge. "I hope you've got it
through your head that he'll kill us each and every one, Dill
Harris," said Jem, when we joined him. "Don't blame me when he
gouges your eyes out. You started it, remember." "You're still
scared," murmured Dill patiently. Jem wanted Dill to know once
and for all that he wasn't scared of anything: "It's just
that I can't think of a way to make him come out without
him gettin' us." Besides, Jem had his little sister to think of.
When he said that, I knew he was afraid. Jem had his little sister to
think of the time I dared him to jump off the top of the house: "If
I got killed, what'd become of you?" he asked. Then he
jumped, landed unhurt, and his sense of responsibility left him
until confronted by the Radley Place. "You gonna run out on a
dare?" asked Dill. "If you are, then-" "Dill, you have to
think about these things," Jem said. "Lemme think a minute...
it's sort of like making a turtle come out..." "How's that?"
asked Dill. "Strike a match under him." I told Jem if he set fire
to the Radley house I was going to tell Atticus on him. Dill said
striking a match under a turtle was hateful. "Ain't hateful, just
persuades him- 's not like you'd chunk him in the fire," Jem
growled. "How do you know a match don't hurt him?" "Turtles can't
feel, stupid," said Jem. "Were you ever a turtle, huh?" "My stars,
Dill! Now lemme think... reckon we can rock him...." Jem
stood in thought so long that Dill made a mild concession: "I
won't say you ran out on a dare an' I'll swap you The Gray Ghost if
you just go up and touch the house." Jem brightened. "Touch the
house, that all?" Dill nodded. "Sure that's all, now? I don't
want you hollerin' something different the minute I get back."
"Yeah, that's all," said Dill. "He'll probably come out after
you when he sees you in the yard, then Scout'n' me'll jump on him
and hold him down till we can tell him we ain't gonna hurt
him." We left the corner, crossed the side street that ran in front
of the Radley house, and stopped at the gate. "Well go on," said
Dill, "Scout and me's right behind you." "I'm going," said Jem,
"don't hurry me." He walked to the corner of the lot, then back
again, studying the simple terrain as if deciding how best to effect
an entry, frowning and scratching his head. Then I sneered at him.
Jem threw open the gate and sped to the side of the house, slapped it
with his palm and ran back past us, not waiting to see if his foray
was successful. Dill and I followed on his heels. Safely on
our porch, panting and out of breath, we looked back. The old
house was the same, droopy and sick, but as we stared down
the street we thought we saw an inside shutter move. Flick. A tiny,
almost invisible movement, and the house was still. 2 Dill
left us early in September, to return to Meridian. We saw him off
on the five o'clock bus and I was miserable without him until
it occurred to me that I would be starting to school in a week. I
never looked forward more to anything in my life. Hours of
wintertime had found me in the treehouse, looking over at the
schoolyard, spying on multitudes of children through a two-
power telescope Jem had given me, learning their games,
following Jem's red jacket through wriggling circles of blind man's
buff, secretly sharing their misfortunes and minor victories. I
longed to join them. Jem condescended to take me to school the first
day, a job usually done by one's parents, but Atticus had said
Jem would be delighted to show me where my room was. I think some
money changed hands in this transaction, for as we trotted
around the corner past the Radley Place I heard an unfamiliar jingle
in Jem's pockets. When we slowed to a walk at the edge of
the schoolyard, Jem was careful to explain that during school
hours I was not to bother him, I was not to approach him with requests
to enact a chapter of Tarzan and the Ant Men, to embarrass him with
references to his private life, or tag along behind him at
recess and noon. I was to stick with the first grade and he would
stick with the fifth. In short, I was to leave him alone. "You mean
we can't play any more?" I asked. "We'll do like we always do
at home," he said, "but you'll see- school's different." It
certainly was. Before the first morning was over, Miss
Caroline Fisher, our teacher, hauled me up to the front of
the room and patted the palm of my hand with a ruler, then made me
stand in the corner until noon. Miss Caroline was no more than
twenty-one. She had bright auburn hair, pink cheeks, and wore
crimson fingernail polish. She also wore high-heeled pumps and
a red-and- like a white-striped dress. She peppermint drop. She
boarded across the street one door down from us in Miss Maudie
Atkinson's upstairs front room, and when Miss Maudie introduced
us to her, Jem was in a haze for days. looked and smelled
Miss Caroline printed her name on the blackboard and said, "This says
I am Miss Caroline Fisher. I am from North Alabama, from
Winston County." The class murmured apprehensively, should she
prove to harbor her share of the peculiarities indigenous to that
region. (When Alabama seceded from the Union on January 11,
1861, Winston County seceded from Alabama, and every child in Maycomb
County knew it.) North Alabama was full of Liquor Interests, Big
Mules, steel companies, Republicans, professors, and other
persons of no background. Miss Caroline began the day by
reading us a story about cats. The cats had long
conversations with one another, they wore cunning little
clothes and lived in a warm house beneath a kitchen stove.
By the time Mrs. Cat called the drugstore for an order of
chocolate malted mice the class was wriggling like a bucketful
of catawba worms. Miss Caroline seemed unaware that the
ragged, denim-shirted and floursack-skirted first grade, most of
whom had chopped cotton and fed hogs from the time they were able to
walk, were immune to imaginative literature. Miss Caroline
came to the end of the story and said, "Oh, my, wasn't that
nice?" Then she went to the blackboard and printed the
alphabet in enormous square capitals, turned to the class and asked,
"Does anybody know what these are?" Everybody did; most of the first
grade had failed it last year. I suppose she chose me because she
knew my name; as I read the alphabet a faint line appeared
between her eyebrows, and after making me read most of My
First Reader and the stock-market quotations from The Mobile
Register aloud, she discovered that I was literate and looked
at me with more than faint distaste. Miss Caroline told me to
tell my father not to teach me any more, it would interfere with my
reading. "Teach me?" I said in surprise. "He hasn't taught
me anything, Miss Caroline. Atticus ain't got time to teach
me anything," I added, when Miss Caroline smiled and shook her
head. "Why, he's so tired at night he just sits in the
livingroom and reads." "If he didn't teach you, who did?" Miss
Caroline asked good- naturedly. "Somebody did. You weren't born
reading The Mobile Register." "Jem says I was. He read in a book
where I was a Bullfinch instead of a Finch. Jem says my name's
really Jean Louise Bullfinch, that I got swapped when I was
born and I'm really a-" Miss Caroline apparently thought I was
lying. "Let's not let our imaginations run away with us,
dear," she said. "Now you tell your father not to teach you any
more. It's best to begin reading with a fresh mind. You tell
him I'll take over from here and try to undo the damage-" "Ma'am?"
"Your father does not know how to teach. You can have a
seat now." I mumbled that I was sorry and retired meditating upon my
crime. I never deliberately learned to read, but somehow I had
been wallowing illicitly in the daily papers. In the long
hours of church- was it then I learned? I could not remember
not being able to read hymns. Now that I was compelled to
think about it, reading was something that just came to me, as
learning to fasten the seat of my union suit without looking
around, or achieving two bows from a snarl of shoelaces. I
could not remember when the lines above Atticus's moving
finger separated into words, but I had stared at them all the
evenings in my memory, listening to the news of the day, Bills
to Be Enacted into Laws, the diaries of Lorenzo Dow- anything
Atticus happened to be reading when I crawled into his lap
every night. Until I feared I would lose it, I never loved to read.
One does not love breathing. I knew I had annoyed Miss
Caroline, so I let well enough alone and stared out the window
until recess when Jem cut me from the covey of first-graders in
the schoolyard. He asked how I was getting along. I told him. "If I
didn't have to stay I'd leave. Jem, that damn lady says Atticus's been
teaching me to read and for him to stop it-" "Don't worry, Scout,"
Jem comforted me. "Our teacher says Miss Caroline's introducing a
new way of teaching. She learned about it in college. It'll
be in all the grades soon. You don't have to learn much out of
books that way- it's like if you wanta learn about cows, you go milk
one, see?" "Yeah Jem, but I don't wanta study cows, I-" "Sure you
do. You hafta know about cows, they're a big part of life in Maycomb
County." I contented myself with asking Jem if he'd lost his mind.
"I'm just trying to tell you the new way they're teachin' the first
grade, stubborn. It's the Dewey Decimal System." Having never
questioned Jem's pronouncements, I saw no reason to begin now.
The Dewey Decimal System consisted, in part, of Miss Caroline
waving cards at us on which were printed "the," "cat," "rat,"
"man," and "you." No comment seemed to be expected of us, and
the class received these impressionistic revelations in silence.
I was bored, so I began a letter to Dill. Miss Caroline
caught me writing and told me to tell my father to stop
teaching me. "Besides," she said. "We don't write in the
first grade, we print. You won't learn to write until you're in
the third grade." Calpurnia was to blame for this. It kept me from
driving her crazy on rainy days, I guess. She would set me a
writing task by scrawling the alphabet firmly across the top
of a tablet, then copying out a chapter of the Bible beneath. If I
reproduced her penmanship satisfactorily, she rewarded me with an
open-faced sandwich of bread and butter and sugar. In Calpurnia's
teaching, there was no sentimentality: I seldom pleased her and
she seldom rewarded me. "Everybody who goes home to lunch hold
up your hands," said Miss Caroline, breaking into my new
grudge against Calpurnia. The town children did so, and she looked
us over. "Everybody who brings his lunch put it on top of his desk."
Molasses buckets appeared from nowhere, and the ceiling danced
with metallic light. Miss Caroline walked up and down the
rows peering and poking into lunch containers, nodding if the
contents pleased her, frowning a little at others. She stopped
at Walter Cunningham's desk. "Where's yours?" she asked. Walter
Cunningham's face told everybody in the first grade he had
hookworms. His absence of shoes told us how he got them. People
caught hookworms going barefooted in barnyards and hog wallows. If
Walter had owned any shoes he would have worn them the first
day of school and then discarded them until mid-winter. He
did have on a clean shirt and neatly mended overalls. "Did you
forget your lunch this morning?" asked Miss Caroline. Walter
looked straight ahead. I saw a muscle jump in his skinny jaw.
"Did you forget it this morning?" asked Miss Caroline.
Walter's jaw twitched again. "Yeb'm," he finally mumbled. Miss
Caroline went to her desk and opened her purse. "Here's a
quarter," she said to Walter. "Go and eat downtown today. You
can pay me back tomorrow." Walter shook his head. "Nome thank
you ma'am," he drawled softly. Impatience crept into Miss
Caroline's voice: "Here Walter, come get it." Walter shook his
head again. When Walter shook his head a third time someone
whispered, "Go on and tell her, Scout." I turned around and saw
most of the town people and the entire bus delegation looking at
me. Miss Caroline and I had conferred twice already, and they were
looking at me in the innocent assurance that familiarity breeds
understanding. I rose graciously on Walter's behalf: "Ah- Miss
Caroline?" "What is it, Jean Louise?" "Miss Caroline, he's a
Cunningham." I sat back down. "What, Jean Louise?" I thought I
had made things sufficiently clear. It was clear enough to
the rest of us: Walter Cunningham was sitting there lying his
head off. He didn't forget his lunch, he didn't have any. He had
none today nor would he have any tomorrow or the next day.
He had probably never seen three quarters together at the same
time in his life. I tried again: "Walter's one of the
Cunninghams, Miss Caroline." "I beg your pardon, Jean Louise?"
"That's okay, ma'am, you'll get to know all the county folks after a
while. The Cunninghams never took anything they can't pay
back- no church baskets and no scrip stamps. They never took
anything off of anybody, they get along on what they have. They don't
have much, but they get along on it." My special knowledge of the
Cunningham tribe- one branch, that is- was gained from events of
last winter. Walter's father was one of Atticus's clients.
After a dreary conversation livingroom one night about his
entailment, before Mr. Cunningham left he said, "Mr. Finch, I don't
know when I'll ever be able to pay you." in our "Let that be the
least of your worries, Walter," Atticus said . When I asked Jem what
entailment was, and Jem described it as a condition of having
your tail in a crack, I asked Atticus if Mr. Cunningham would
ever pay us. "Not in money," Atticus said, "but before the
year's out I'll have been paid. You watch." We watched. One
morning Jem and I found a load of stovewood in the back
yard. Later, a sack of hickory nuts appeared on the back steps.
With Christmas came a crate of smilax and holly. That spring when
we found a crokersack full of turnip greens, Atticus said Mr.
Cunningham had more than paid him. "Why does he pay you like that?" I
asked. "Because that's the only way he can pay me. He has
no money." "Are we poor, Atticus?" Atticus nodded. "We are indeed."
Jem's nose wrinkled. "Are we as poor as the Cunninghams?" "Not
exactly. The Cunninghams are country folks, farmers, and the
crash hit them hardest." Atticus said professional people were
poor because the farmers were poor. As Maycomb County was
farm country, nickels and dimes were hard to come by for
doctors and dentists and lawyers. Entailment was only a part
of Mr. Cunningham's vexations. The acres not entailed were
mortgaged to the hilt, and the little cash he made went to
interest. If he held his mouth right, Mr. Cunningham could
get a WPA job, but his land would go to ruin if he left it, and he was
willing to go hungry to keep his land and vote as he pleased. Mr.
Cunningham, said Atticus, came from a set breed of men. As the
Cunninghams had no money to pay a lawyer, they simply paid
us with what they had. "Did you know," said Atticus, "that Dr.
Reynolds works the same way? He charges some folks a bushel of
potatoes for delivery of a baby. Miss Scout, if you give me your
attention I'll tell you what entailment is. Jem's definitions
are very nearly accurate sometimes." If I could have explained
these things to Miss Caroline, I would have saved myself some
inconvenience and Miss Caroline subsequent mortification, but it
was beyond my ability to explain things as well as Atticus, so I
said, "You're shamin' him, Miss Caroline. Walter hasn't got a
quarter at home to bring you, and you can't use any stovewood." Miss
Caroline stood stock still, then grabbed me by the collar and
hauled me back to her desk. "Jean Louise, I've had about
enough of you this morning," she said. "You're starting off
on the wrong foot in every way, my dear. Hold out your hand."
I thought she was going to spit in it, which was the only
reason anybody in Maycomb held out his hand: it was a time-
honored method of sealing oral contracts. Wondering what
bargain we had made, I turned to the class for an answer,
but the class looked back at me in puzzlement. Miss Caroline picked
up her ruler, gave me half a dozen quick little pats, then
told me to stand in the corner. A storm of laughter broke
loose when it finally occurred to the class that Miss Caroline
had whipped me. When Miss Caroline threatened it with a similar fate
the first grade exploded again, becoming cold sober only when
the shadow of Miss Blount fell over them. Miss Blount, a native
Maycombian as yet uninitiated in the mysteries of the Decimal
System, appeared at the door hands on hips and announced: "If
I hear another sound from this room I'll burn up everybody
in it. Miss Caroline, the sixth grade cannot concentrate on the
pyramids for all this racket!" My sojourn in the corner was a short
one. Saved by the bell, Miss Caroline watched the class file out for
lunch. As I was the last to leave, I saw her sink down into
her chair and bury her head in her arms. Had her conduct
been more friendly toward me, I would have felt sorry for her. She
was a pretty little thing. 3 Catching Walter Cunningham in the
schoolyard gave me some pleasure, but when I was rubbing his nose in
the dirt Jem came by and told me to stop. "You're bigger'n
he is," he said. "He's as old as you, nearly," I said. "He
made me start off on the wrong foot." "Let him go, Scout. Why?"
"He didn't have any lunch," I said, and explained my
involvement in Walter's dietary affairs. Walter had picked himself
up and was standing quietly listening to Jem and me. His
fists were half cocked, as if expecting an onslaught from
both of us. I stomped at him to chase him away, but Jem
put out his hand and stopped me. He examined Walter with an
air of speculation. "Your daddy Mr. Walter Cunningham from Old
Sarum?" he asked, and Walter nodded. Walter looked as if he had
been raised on fish food: his eyes, as blue as Dill Harris's,
were red-rimmed and watery. There was no color in his face except at
the tip of his nose, which was moistly pink. He fingered the
straps of his overalls, nervously picking at the metal hooks. Jem
suddenly grinned at him. "Come on home to dinner with us,
Walter," he said. "We'd be glad to have you." Walter's face
brightened, then darkened. Jem said, "Our daddy's a friend of your
daddy's. Scout here, she's crazy- she won't fight you any more." "I
wouldn't be too certain of that," I said. Jem's free
dispensation of my pledge irked me, but precious noontime minutes
were ticking away. "Yeah Walter, I won't jump on you again.
Don't you like butterbeans? Our Cal's a real good cook." Walter
stood where he was, biting his lip. Jem and I gave up, and
we were nearly to the Radley Place when Walter called, "Hey,
I'm comin'!" When Walter caught up with us, Jem made pleasant
conversation with him. "A hain't lives there," he said
cordially, pointing to the Radley house. "Ever hear about him,
Walter?" "Reckon I have," said Walter. "Almost died first year I come
to school and et them pecans- folks say he pizened 'em and put 'em
over on the school side of the fence." Jem seemed to have little
fear of Boo Radley now that Walter and I walked beside him.
Indeed, Jem grew boastful: "I went all the way up to the house once,"
he said to Walter. "Anybody who went up to the house once oughta not
to still run every time he passes it," I said to the clouds above.
"And who's runnin', Miss Priss?" "You are, when ain't anybody with
you." By the time we reached our front steps Walter had forgotten he
was a Cunningham. Jem ran to the kitchen and asked Calpurnia
to set an extra plate, we had company. Atticus greeted
Walter and began a discussion about crops neither Jem nor I
could follow. "Reason I can't pass the first grade, Mr. Finch, is
I've had to stay out ever' spring an' help Papa with the
choppin', but there's another'n at the house now that's field size."
"Did you pay a bushel of potatoes for him?" I asked, but
Atticus shook his head at me. While Walter piled food on his
plate, he and Atticus talked together like two men, to the
wonderment of Jem and me. Atticus was expounding upon farm
problems when Walter interrupted to ask if there was any
molasses in the house. Atticus summoned Calpurnia, who returned
bearing the syrup pitcher. She stood waiting for Walter to help
himself. Walter poured syrup on his vegetables and meat with
a generous hand. He would probably have poured it into his
milk glass had I not asked what the sam hill he was doing. The
silver saucer clattered when he replaced the pitcher, and he
quickly put his hands in his lap. Then he ducked his head. Atticus
shook his head at me again. "But he's gone and drowned his
dinner in syrup," I protested. "He's poured it all over-" It was
then that Calpurnia requested my presence in the kitchen. She
was furious, and when she was furious Calpurnia's grammar
became erratic. When in tranquility, her grammar was as good as
anybody's in Maycomb. Atticus said Calpurnia had more education
than most colored folks. When she squinted down at me the
tiny lines around her eyes deepened. "There's some folks who don't
eat like us," she whispered fiercely, "but you ain't called on to
contradict 'em at the table when they don't. That boy's yo'
comp'ny and if he wants to eat up the table cloth you let
him, you hear?" "He ain't company, Cal, he's just a Cunningham-"
"Hush your mouth! Don't matter who they are, anybody sets
foot in this house's yo' comp'ny, and don't you let me catch
you remarkin' on their ways like you was so high and mighty! Yo' folks
might be better'n the Cunninghams but it don't count for nothin' the
way you're disgracin' 'em- if you can't act fit to eat at the table
you can just set here and eat in the kitchen!" Calpurnia sent me
through the swinging door to the diningroom with a stinging
smack. I retrieved my plate and finished dinner in the kitchen,
thankful, though, that I was spared the humiliation of facing them
again. I told Calpurnia to just wait, I'd fix her: one of these days
when she wasn't looking I'd go off and drown myself in
Barker's Eddy and then she'd be sorry. Besides, I added, she'd
already gotten me in trouble once today: she had taught me to write
and it was all her fault. "Hush your fussin'," she said. Jem and
Walter returned to school ahead of me: staying behind to
advise Atticus of Calpurnia's iniquities was worth a solitary
sprint past the Radley Place. "She likes Jem better'n she likes
me, anyway," I concluded, and suggested that Atticus lose no time in
packing her off. "Have you ever considered that Jem doesn't worry her
half as much?" Atticus's voice was flinty. "I've no intention
of getting rid of her, now or ever. We couldn't operate a single day
without Cal, have you ever thought of that? You think about
how much Cal does for you, and you mind her, you hear?" I
returned to school and hated Calpurnia steadily until a sudden
shriek shattered my resentments. I looked up to see Miss Caroline
standing in the middle of the room, sheer horror flooding her
face. Apparently she had revived enough to persevere in her
profession. "It's alive!" she screamed. The male population of
the class rushed as one to her assistance. Lord, I thought,
she's scared of a mouse. Little Chuck Little, whose patience
with all living things was phenomenal, said, "Which way did he go,
Miss Caroline? Tell us where he went, quick! D.C.-" he turned to a boy
behind him- "D.C., shut the door and we'll catch him. Quick,
ma'am, where'd he go?" Miss Caroline pointed a shaking finger not at
the floor nor at a desk, but to a hulking individual unknown
to me. Little Chuck's face contracted and he said gently, "You mean
him, ma'am? Yessum, he's alive. Did he scare you some way?" Miss
Caroline said desperately, "I was just walking by when it crawled out
of his hair... just crawled out of his hair-" Little Chuck grinned
broadly. "There ain't no need to fear a cootie, ma'am. Ain't you
ever seen one? Now don't you be afraid, you just go back to
your desk and teach us some more." Little Chuck Little was
another member of the population who didn't know where his next
meal was coming from, but he was a born gentleman. He put his hand
under her elbow and led Miss Caroline to the front of the
room. "Now don't you fret, ma'am," he said. "There ain't no
need to fear a cootie. I'll just fetch you some cool water." The
cootie's host showed not the faintest interest in the furor
he had wrought. He searched the scalp above his forehead,
located his guest and pinched it between his thumb and
forefinger. Miss Caroline watched the process in horrid fascination.
Little Chuck brought water in a paper cup, and she drank it
gratefully. Finally she found her voice. "What is your name, son?" she
asked softly. The boy blinked. "Who, me?" Miss Caroline nodded.
"Burris Ewell." Miss Caroline inspected her roll-book. "I have a
Ewell here, but I don't have a first name... would you spell
your first name for me?" "Don't know how. They call me Burris't
home." "Well, Burris," said Miss Caroline, "I think we'd
better excuse you for the rest of the afternoon. I want you
to go home and wash your hair." From her desk she produced a thick
volume, leafed through its pages and read for a moment. "A
good home remedy for- Burris, I want you to go home and wash your
hair with lye soap. When you've done that, treat your scalp
with kerosene." "What fer, missus?" "To get rid of the- er,
cooties. You see, Burris, the other children might catch them,
and you wouldn't want that, would you?" The boy stood up.
He was the filthiest human I had ever seen. His neck was dark
gray, the backs of his hands were rusty, and his fingernails were
black deep into the quick. He peered at Miss Caroline from a fist-
sized clean space on his face. No one had noticed him, probably,
because Miss Caroline and I had entertained the class most of
the morning. "And Burris," said Miss Caroline, "please bathe
yourself before you come back tomorrow." The boy laughed rudely.
"You ain't sendin' me home, missus. I was on the verge of leavin'-
I done done my time for this year." Miss Caroline looked puzzled.
"What do you mean by that?" The boy did not answer. He gave a
short contemptuous snort. One of the elderly members of the
class answered her: "He's one of the Ewells, ma'am," and I
wondered if this explanation would be as unsuccessful as my
attempt. But Miss Caroline seemed willing to listen. "Whole
school's full of 'em. They come first day every year and then leave.
The truant lady gets 'em here 'cause she threatens 'em with the
sheriff, but she's give up tryin' to hold 'em. She reckons
she's carried out the law just gettin' their names on the roll and
runnin' 'em here the first day. You're supposed to mark 'em absent the
rest of the year..." "But what about their parents?" asked Miss
Caroline, in genuine concern. "Ain't got no mother," was the
answer, "and their paw's right contentious." Burris Ewell was
flattered by the recital. "Been comin' to the first day o' the
first grade fer three year now," he said expansively. "Reckon
if I'm smart this year they'll promote me to the second...."
Miss Caroline said, "Sit back down, please, Burris," and the moment
she said it I knew she had made a serious mistake. The boy's
condescension flashed to anger. "You try and make me, missus."
Little Chuck Little got to his feet. "Let him go, ma'am,"
he said. "He's a mean one, a hard-down mean one. He's liable to start
somethin', and there's some little folks here." He was among the most
diminutive of men, but when Burris Ewell turned toward him, Little
Chuck's right hand went to his pocket. "Watch your step,
Burris," he said. "I'd soon's kill you as look at you. Now go
home." Burris seemed to be afraid of a child half his
height, and Miss Caroline took advantage of his indecision:
"Burris, go home. If you don't I'll call the principal," she said.
"I'll have to report this, anyway." The boy snorted and slouched
leisurely to the door. Safely out of range, he turned and shouted:
"Report and be damned to ye! Ain't no snot-nosed slut of a
schoolteacher ever born c'n make me do nothin'! You ain't
makin' me go nowhere, missus. You just remember that, you ain't
makin' me go nowhere!" He waited until he was sure she was
crying, then he shuffled out of the building. Soon we were
clustered around her desk, trying in our various ways to
comfort her. He was a real mean one... below the belt... you
ain't called on to teach folks like that... them ain't Maycomb's ways,
Miss Caroline, not really... now don't you fret, ma'am. Miss Caroline,
why don't you read us a story? That cat thing was real fine this
mornin'.... Miss Caroline smiled, blew her nose, said, "Thank
you, darlings," dispersed us, opened a book and mystified the
first grade with a long narrative about a toadfrog that lived in a
hall. When I passed the Radley Place for the fourth time
that day- twice at a full gallop- my gloom had deepened to
match the house. If the remainder of the school year were as fraught
with drama as the first day, perhaps it would be mildly entertaining,
but the prospect of spending nine months refraining from
reading and writing made me think of running away. By late
afternoon most of my traveling plans were complete; when Jem and
I raced each other up the sidewalk to meet Atticus coming home
from work, I didn't give him much of a race. It was our
habit to run meet Atticus the moment we saw him round the
post office corner in the distance. Atticus seemed to have
forgotten my noontime fall from grace; he was full of questions
about school. My replies were monosyllabic and he did not press me.
Perhaps Calpurnia sensed that my day had been a grim one:
she let me watch her fix supper. "Shut your eyes and open your
mouth and I'll give you a surprise," she said. It was not often
that she made crackling bread, she said she never had time, but
with both of us at school today had been an easy one for her. She knew
I loved crackling bread. "I missed you today," she said. "The house
got so lonesome 'long about two o'clock I had to turn on the radio."
"Why? Jem'n me ain't ever in the house unless it's rainin'." "I
know," she said, "But one of you's always in callin'
distance. I wonder how much of the day I spend just callin' after you.
Well," she said, getting up from the kitchen chair, "it's enough time
to make a pan of cracklin' bread, I reckon. You run along now and let
me get supper on the table." Calpurnia bent down and kissed me. I ran
along, wondering what had come over her. She had wanted to make up
with me, that was it. She had always been too hard on me, she had at
last seen the error of her fractious ways, she was sorry and
too stubborn to say so. I was weary from the day's crimes.
After supper, Atticus sat down with the paper and called,
"Scout, ready to read?" The Lord sent me more than I could bear, and I
went to the front porch. Atticus followed me. "Something wrong,
Scout?" I told Atticus I didn't feel very well and didn't think I'd
go to school any more if it was all right with him. Atticus sat
down in the swing and crossed his legs. His fingers wandered
to his watchpocket; he said that was the only way he could
think. He waited in amiable silence, and I sought to reinforce my
position: "You never went to school and you do all right, so
I'll just stay home too. You can teach me like Granddaddy taught
you 'n' Uncle Jack." "No I can't," said Atticus. "I have to make a
living. Besides, they'd put me in jail if I kept you at
home- dose of magnesia for you tonight and school tomorrow." "I'm
feeling all right, really." "Thought so. Now what's the matter?" Bit
by bit, I told him the day's misfortunes. "-and she said you
taught me all wrong, so we can't ever read any more, ever.
Please don't send me back, please sir." Atticus stood up and walked
to the end of the porch. When he completed his examination of the
wisteria vine he strolled back to me. "First of all," he said, "if
you can learn a simple trick, Scout, you'll get along a lot better
with all kinds of folks. You never really understand a person
until you consider things from his point of view-" "Sir?"
"-until you climb into his skin and walk around in it." Atticus said
I had learned many things today, and Miss Caroline had learned
several things herself. She had learned not to hand something to a
Cunningham, for one thing, but if Walter and I had put ourselves
in her shoes we'd have seen it was an honest mistake on her
part. We could not expect her to learn all Maycomb's ways in one
day, and we could not hold her responsible when she knew no better.
"I'll be dogged," I said. "I didn't know no better than not to read
to her, and she held me responsible- listen Atticus, I don't
have to go to school!" I was bursting with a sudden thought.
"Burris Ewell, remember? He just goes to school the first
day. The truant lady reckons she's carried out the law when
she gets his name on the roll-" "You can't do that, Scout,"
Atticus said. "Sometimes it's better to bend the law a little in
special cases. In your case, the law remains rigid. So to school you
must go." "I don't see why I have to when he doesn't." "Then
listen." Atticus said the Ewells had been the disgrace of
Maycomb for three generations. None of them had done an
honest day's work in his recollection. He said that some Christmas,
when he was getting rid of the tree, he would take me with him and
show me where and how they lived. They were people, but they
lived like animals. "They can go to school any time they
want to, when they show the faintest symptom of wanting an
education," said Atticus. "There are ways of keeping them in
school by force, but it's silly to force people like the Ewells
into a new environment-" "If I didn't go to school tomorrow, you'd
force me to." "Let us leave it at this," said Atticus dryly. "You,
Miss Scout Finch, are of the common folk. You must obey the law." He
said that the Ewells were members of an exclusive society
made up of Ewells. In certain circumstances the common folk
judiciously allowed them certain privileges by the simple
method of becoming blind to some of the Ewells' activities.
They didn't have to go to school, for one thing. Another
thing, Mr. Bob Ewell, Burris's father, was permitted to hunt and trap
out of season. "Atticus, that's bad," I said. In Maycomb
County, hunting out of season was a misdemeanor at law, a capital
felony in the eyes of the populace. "It's against the law, all
right," said my father, "and it's certainly bad, but when a
man spends his relief checks on green whiskey his children
have a way of crying from hunger pains. I don't know of any
landowner around here who begrudges those children any game
their father can hit." "Mr. Ewell shouldn't do that-" "Of course
he shouldn't, but he'll never change his ways. Are you going to take
out your disapproval on his children?" "No sir," I murmured, and made
a final stand: "But if I keep on goin' to school, we can't ever read
any more...." "That's really bothering you, isn't it?" "Yes sir."
When Atticus looked down at me I saw the expression on his
face that always made me expect something. "Do you know what a
compromise is?" he asked. "Bending the law?" "No, an agreement
reached by mutual concessions.
It works this way," he said. "If you'll
concede the necessity of going to school, we'll go on reading every
night just as we always have. Is it a bargain?" "Yes sir!" "We'll
consider it sealed without the usual formality," Atticus said, when he
saw me preparing to spit. As I opened the front screen door Atticus
said, "By the way, Scout, you'd better not say anything at
school about our agreement." "Why not?" "I'm afraid our
activities would be considerable disapprobation by authorities."
received with learned the more Jem and I were accustomed to
our father's last-will-and- testament diction, and we were at all
times free to interrupt Atticus it was beyond our for a
understanding. translation when "Huh, sir?" "I never went to
school," he said, "but I have a feeling that if you tell Miss Caroline
we read every night she'll get after me, and I wouldn't want her after
me." Atticus kept us in fits that evening, gravely reading columns of
print about a man who sat on a flagpole for no discernible
reason, which was reason enough for Jem to spend the following
Saturday aloft in the treehouse. Jem sat from after breakfast until
sunset and would have remained overnight had not Atticus severed
his supply lines. I had spent most of the day climbing up
and down, running errands for him, providing him with literature,
nourishment and water, and was carrying him blankets for the
night when Atticus said if I paid no attention to him, Jem
would come down. Atticus was right. 4 The remainder of my
schooldays were no more auspicious than the first. Indeed,
they were an endless Project that slowly evolved into a Unit,
in which miles of construction paper and wax crayon were
expended by the State of Alabama in its well-meaning but
fruitless efforts to teach me Group Dynamics. What Jem called
the Dewey Decimal System was school-wide by the end of my
first year, so I had no chance to compare it with other
teaching techniques. I could only look around me: Atticus and
my uncle, who went to school at home, knew everything- at
least, what one didn't know the other did. Furthermore, I
couldn't help noticing that my father had served for years in the
state legislature, elected each time without opposition,
innocent of the adjustments my teachers thought essential to
the development of Good Citizenship. Jem, educated on a half-Decimal
half-Duncecap basis, seemed to function effectively alone or in
a group, but Jem was a poor example: no tutorial system
devised by man could have stopped him from getting at books.
As for me, I knew nothing except what I gathered from Time
magazine and reading everything I could lay hands on at home,
but as I inched sluggishly along the treadmill of the Maycomb
County school system, I could not help receiving the
impression that I was being cheated out of something. Out of what I
knew not, yet I did not believe that twelve years of unrelieved
boredom was exactly what the state had in mind for me. As the
year passed, released from school thirty minutes before Jem, who
had to stay until three o'clock, I ran by the Radley Place as fast as
I could, not stopping until I reached the safety of our front
porch. One afternoon as I raced by, something caught my eye and
caught it in such a way that I took a deep breath, a long look around,
and went back. Two live oaks stood at the edge of the Radley
lot; their roots reached out into the side-road and made it
bumpy. Something about one of the trees attracted my attention. Some
tinfoil was sticking in a knot-hole just above my eye level,
winking at me in the afternoon sun. I stood on tiptoe, hastily looked
around once more, reached into the hole, and withdrew two pieces of
chewing gum minus their outer wrappers. My first impulse was
to get it into my mouth as quickly as possible, but I
remembered where I was. I ran home, and on our front porch
I examined my loot. The gum looked fresh. I sniffed it and
it smelled all right. I licked it and waited for a while. When
I did not die I crammed it into my mouth: Wrigley's Double-Mint. When
Jem came home he asked me where I got such a wad. I told him
I found it. "Don't eat things you find, Scout." "This wasn't on the
ground, it was in a tree." Jem growled. "Well it was," I said. "It
was sticking in that tree yonder, the one comin' from school." "Spit
it out right now!" I spat it out. The tang was fading,
anyway. "I've been chewin' it all afternoon and I ain't dead yet,
not even sick." Jem stamped his foot. "Don't you know you're not
supposed to even touch the trees over there? You'll get
killed if you do!" "You touched the house once!" "That was
different! You go gargle- right now, you hear me?" "Ain't
neither, it'll take the taste outa my mouth." "You don't 'n' I'll
tell Calpurnia on you!" Rather than risk a tangle with
Calpurnia, I did as Jem told me. For some reason, my first year
of school had wrought a great change in our relationship:
Calpurnia's tyranny, unfairness, and meddling in my business
had faded to gentle grumblings of general disapproval. On my
part, I went to much trouble, sometimes, not to provoke her. Summer
was on the way; Jem and I awaited it with impatience. Summer
was our best season: it was sleeping on the back screened porch
in cots, or trying to sleep in the treehouse; summer was everything
good to eat; it was a thousand colors in a parched
landscape; but most of all, summer was Dill. The authorities
released us early the last day of school, and Jem and I walked
home together. "Reckon old Dill'll be coming home tomorrow," I
said. "Probably day after," said Jem. "Mis'sippi turns 'em
loose a day later." As we came to the live oaks at the Radley Place
I raised my finger to point for the hundredth time to the
knot-hole where I had found the chewing gum, trying to make
Jem believe I had found it there, and found myself pointing
at another piece of tinfoil. "I see it, Scout! I see it-" Jem
looked around, reached up, and gingerly pocketed a tiny shiny
package. We ran home, and on the front porch we looked at a
small box patchworked with bits of tinfoil collected from
chewing-gum wrappers. It was the kind of box wedding rings
came in, purple velvet with a minute catch. Jem flicked open
the tiny catch. Inside were two scrubbed and polished pennies,
one on top of the other. Jem examined them. "Indian-heads," he
said. "Nineteen-six and Scout, one of em's nineteen-hundred.
These are real old." "Nineteen-hundred," I echoed. "Say-" "Hush a
minute, I'm thinkin'." "Jem, you reckon that's somebody's hidin'
place?" "Naw, don't anybody much but us pass by there, unless it's
some grown person's-" "Grown folks don't have hidin' places. You
reckon we ought to keep 'em, Jem?" "I don't know what we could do,
Scout. Who'd we give 'em back to? I know for a fact don't anybody go
by there- Cecil goes by the back street an' all the way
around by town to get home." Cecil Jacobs, who lived at the
far end of our street next door to the post office, walked a
total of one mile per school day to avoid the Radley Place and old
Mrs. Henry Lafayette Dubose. Mrs. Dubose lived two doors up the
street from us; neighborhood opinion was unanimous that Mrs. Dubose
was the meanest old woman who ever lived. Jem wouldn't go by her place
without Atticus beside him. "What you reckon we oughta do, Jem?"
Finders were keepers unless title was proven. Plucking an
occasional camellia, getting a squirt of hot milk from Miss
Maudie Atkinson's cow on a summer day, helping ourselves to someone's
scuppernongs was part of our ethical culture, but money was different.
"Tell you what," said Jem. "We'll keep 'em till school starts, then go
around and ask everybody if they're theirs. They're some bus
child's, maybe- he was too taken up with gettin' outa school
today an' forgot 'em. These are somebody's, I know that. See
how they've been slicked up? They've been saved." "Yeah, but why
should somebody wanta put away chewing gum like that? You know it
doesn't last." "I don't know, Scout. But these are
somebody...." important to "How's that, Jem...?" "Well, Indian-
heads- well, they come from the Indians. They're real strong
magic, they make you have good luck. Not like fried chicken
when you're not lookin' for it, but things like long life
'n' good health, 'n' passin' six-weeks tests... these are real
valuable to somebody. I'm gonna put em in my trunk." Before Jem
went to his room, he looked for a long time at the Radley
Place. He seemed to be thinking again. Two days later Dill arrived
in a blaze of glory: he had ridden the train by himself from
Meridian to Maycomb Junction (a courtesy title- Maycomb
Junction was in Abbott County) where he had been met by Miss
Rachel in Maycomb's one taxi; he had eaten dinner in the
diner, he had seen two twins hitched together get off the train in
Bay St. Louis and stuck to his story regardless of threats. He
had discarded the abominable blue shorts that were buttoned to his
shirts and wore real short pants with a belt; he was
somewhat heavier, no taller, and said he had seen his father.
Dill's father was taller than ours, he had a black beard (pointed),
and was president of the L & N Railroad. "I helped the engineer for a
while," said Dill, yawning. "In a pig's ear you did, Dill.
Hush," said Jem. "What'll we play today?" "Tom and Sam and
Dick," said Dill. "Let's go in the front yard." Dill wanted the
Rover Boys because there were three respectable parts. He was
clearly tired of being our character man. "I'm tired of those," I
said. I was tired of playing Tom Rover, who suddenly lost his
memory in the middle of a picture show and was out of the script
until the end, when he was found in Alaska. "Make us up one, Jem," I
said. "I'm tired of makin' 'em up." Our first days of freedom,
and we were tired. I wondered what the summer would bring. We
had strolled to the front yard, where Dill stood looking down
the street at the dreary face of the Radley Place. "I-
smell- death," he said. "I do, I mean it," he said, when I
told him to shut up. "You mean when somebody's dyin' you can smell
it?" "No, I mean I can smell somebody an' tell if they're gonna die.
An old lady taught me how." Dill leaned over and sniffed me.
"Jean- Louise- Finch, you are going to die in three days."
"Dill if you don't hush I'll knock you bowlegged. I mean
it, now-" "Yawl hush," growled Jem, "you act like you believe
in Hot Steams." "You act like you don't," I said. "What's a Hot
Steam?" asked Dill. "Haven't you ever walked along a lonesome
road at night and passed by a hot place?" Jem asked Dill. "A Hot
Steam's somebody who can't get to heaven, just wallows around on
lonesome roads an' if you walk through him, when you die you'll
be one too, an' you'll go around at night suckin' people's
breath-" "How can you keep from passing through one?" "You can't,"
said Jem. "Sometimes they stretch all the way across the road,
but if you hafta go through one you say, 'Angel-bright, life-
in-death; get off the road, don't suck my breath.' That keeps 'em from
wrapping around you-" "Don't you believe a word he says,
Dill," I said. "Calpurnia says that's nigger-talk." Jem scowled
darkly at me, but said, "Well, are we gonna play anything or
not?" "Let's roll in the tire," I suggested. Jem sighed. "You know
I'm too big." "You c'n push." I ran to the back yard and pulled an
old car tire from under the house. I slapped it up to the
front yard. "I'm first," I said. Dill said he ought to be first,
he just got here. Jem arbitrated, awarded me first push with
an extra time for Dill, and I folded myself inside the tire. Until
it happened I did not realize that Jem was offended by my
contradicting him on Hot Steams, and that he was patiently
awaiting an opportunity to reward me. He did, by pushing the tire down
the sidewalk with all the force in his body. Ground, sky and
houses melted into a mad palette, my ears throbbed, I was
suffocating. I could not put out my hands to stop, they were
wedged between my chest and knees. I could only hope that Jem
would outrun the tire and me, or that I would be stopped by a bump in
the sidewalk. I heard him behind me, chasing and shouting. The tire
bumped on gravel, skeetered across the road, crashed into a
barrier and popped me like a cork onto pavement. Dizzy and
nauseated, I lay on the cement and shook my head still, pounded
my ears to silence, and heard Jem's voice: "Scout, get away from
there, come on!" I raised my head and stared at the Radley
Place steps in front of me. I froze. "Come on, Scout, don't just
lie there!" Jem was screaming. "Get up, can'tcha?" I got to my feet,
trembling as I thawed. "Get the tire!" Jem hollered. "Bring it with
you! Ain't you got any sense at all?" When I was able to navigate, I
ran back to them as fast as my shaking knees would carry me. "Why
didn't you bring it?" Jem yelled. "Why don't you get it?" I screamed.
Jem was silent. "Go on, it ain't far inside the gate. Why,
you even touched the house once, remember?" Jem looked at me
furiously, could not decline, ran down the sidewalk, treaded water
at the gate, then dashed in and retrieved the tire. "See
there?" Jem was scowling triumphantly. "Nothin' to it. I swear,
Scout, sometimes you act so much like a girl it's
mortifyin'." There was more to it than he knew, but I decided not to
tell him. Calpurnia appeared in the front door and yelled, "Lemonade
time! You all get in outa that hot sun 'fore you fry
alive!" Lemonade in the middle of the morning was a summertime ritual.
Calpurnia set a pitcher and three glasses on the porch, then
went about her business. Being out of Jem's good graces did
not worry me especially. Lemonade would restore his good humor.
Jem gulped down his second glassful and slapped his chest. "I know
what we are going to play," he announced. "Something new,
something different." "What?" asked Dill. "Boo Radley." Jem's head
at times was transparent: he had thought that up to make me
understand he wasn't afraid of Radleys in any shape or form,
to contrast his own fearless heroism with my cowardice. "Boo
Radley? How?" asked Dill. Jem said, "Scout, you can be Mrs. Radley-"
"I declare if I will. I don't think-" "'Smatter?" said Dill. "Still
scared?" "He can get out at night when we're all asleep...." I said.
Jem hissed. "Scout, how's he gonna know what we're doin'? Besides, I
don't think he's still there. He died years ago and they stuffed him
up the chimney." Dill said, "Jem, you and me can play and Scout can
watch if she's scared." I was fairly sure Boo Radley was
inside that house, but I couldn't prove it, and felt it best to
keep my mouth shut or I would be accused of believing in Hot Steams,
phenomena I was immune to in the daytime. Jem parceled out our
roles: I was Mrs. Radley, and all I had to do was come out and
sweep the porch. Dill was old Mr. Radley: he walked up and
down the sidewalk and coughed when Jem spoke to him. Jem,
naturally, was Boo: he went under the front steps and shrieked and
howled from time to time. As the summer progressed, so did our
game. We polished and perfected it, added dialogue and plot
until we had manufactured a small play upon which we rang
changes every day. Dill was a villain's villain: he could get
into any character part assigned him, and appear tall if height was
part of the devilry required. He was as good as his worst performance;
his worst performance was Gothic. I reluctantly played assorted
ladies who entered the script. I never thought it as much fun as
Tarzan, and I played that summer with more than vague anxiety
despite Jem's assurances that Boo Radley was dead and nothing
would get me, with him and Calpurnia there in the daytime and
Atticus home at night. Jem was a born hero. It was a melancholy
little drama, woven from bits and scraps of gossip and
neighborhood legend: Mrs. Radley had been beautiful until she
married Mr. Radley and lost all her money. She also lost most
of her teeth, her hair, and her right forefinger (Dill's
contribution. Boo bit it off one night when he couldn't find
any cats and squirrels to eat.); she sat in the livingroom and
cried most of the time, while Boo slowly whittled away all the
furniture in the house . The three of us were the boys who
got into trouble; I was the probate judge, for a change;
Dill led Jem away and crammed him beneath the steps, poking
him with the brushbroom. Jem would reappear as needed in the
shapes of the sheriff, assorted townsfolk, and Miss Stephanie
Crawford, who had more to say about the Radleys than anybody
in Maycomb. When it was time to play Boo's big scene, Jem would sneak
into the house, steal the scissors from the sewing-machine drawer
when Calpurnia's back was turned, then sit in the swing and
cut up newspapers. Dill would walk by, cough at Jem, and Jem would
fake a plunge into Dill's thigh. From where I stood it looked
real. When Mr. Nathan Radley passed us on his daily trip to town, we
would stand still and silent until he was out of sight, then
wonder what he would do to us if he suspected. Our
activities halted when any of the neighbors appeared, and once
I saw Miss Maudie Atkinson staring across the street at us, her hedge
clippers poised in midair. One day we were so busily playing Chapter
XXV, Book II of One Man's Family, we did not see Atticus
standing on the sidewalk looking at us, slapping a rolled
magazine against his knee. The sun said twelve noon. "What are you
all playing?" he asked. "Nothing," said Jem. Jem's evasion told
me our game was a secret, so I kept quiet. "What are you
doing with those scissors, then? Why are you tearing up that
newspaper? If it's today's I'll tan you." "Nothing." "Nothing
what?" said Atticus. "Nothing, sir." "Give me those scissors,"
Atticus said. "They're no things to play with. Does this by any chance
have anything to do with the Radleys?" "No sir," said Jem, reddening.
"I hope it doesn't," he said shortly, and went inside the
house. "Je-m..." "Shut up! He's gone in the livingroom, he
can hear us in there." Safely in the yard, Dill asked Jem if we
could play any more. "I don't know. Atticus didn't say we couldn't-"
"Jem," I said, "I think Atticus knows it anyway." "No he don't. If he
did he'd say he did." I was not so sure, but Jem told me I was being
a girl, that girls always imagined things, that's why other people
hated them so, and if I started behaving like one I could
just go off and find some to play with. "All right, you just keep it
up then," I said. "You'll find out." Atticus's arrival was the second
reason I wanted to quit the game. The first reason happened the
day I rolled into the Radley front yard. Through all the head-
shaking, quelling of nausea and Jem-yelling, I had heard another
sound, so low I could not have heard it from the sidewalk. Someone
inside the house was laughing. 5 My nagging got the better of Jem
eventually, as I knew it would, and to my relief we slowed
down the game for a while. He still maintained, however, that
Atticus hadn't said we couldn't, therefore we could; and if Atticus
ever said we couldn't, Jem had thought of a way around it: he
would simply change the names of the characters and then we
couldn't be accused of playing anything. Dill was in hearty
agreement with this plan of action. Dill was becoming
something of a trial anyway, following Jem about. He had
asked me earlier in the summer to marry him, then he
promptly forgot about it. He staked me out, marked as his
property, said I was the only girl he would ever love, then he
neglected me. I beat him up twice but it did no good, he only
grew closer to Jem. They spent days together in the treehouse
plotting and planning, calling me only when they needed a third
party. But I kept aloof from their more foolhardy schemes for a
while, and on pain of being called a girl, I spent most of
the remaining twilights that summer sitting with Miss Maudie
Atkinson on her front porch. Jem and I had always enjoyed the free
run of Miss Maudie's yard if we kept out of her azaleas, but our
contact with her was not clearly defined. Until Jem and Dill
excluded me from their plans, she was only another lady in
the neighborhood, but a relatively benign presence. Our tacit treaty
with Miss Maudie was that we could play on her lawn, eat her
scuppernongs if we didn't jump on the arbor, and explore her
vast back lot, terms so generous we seldom spoke to her, so
careful were we to preserve the delicate balance of our
relationship, but Jem and Dill drove me closer to her with their
behavior. Miss Maudie hated her house: time spent indoors was time
wasted. She was a widow, a chameleon lady who worked in her flower
beds in an old straw hat and men's coveralls, but after her five
o'clock bath she would appear on the porch and reign over the
street in magisterial beauty. She loved everything that grew in
God's earth, even the weeds. With one exception. If she found
a blade of nut grass in her yard it was like the Second Battle of
the Marne: she swooped down upon it with a tin tub and subjected it to
blasts from beneath with a poisonous substance she said was
so powerful it'd kill us all if we didn't stand out of the
way. "Why can't you just pull it up?" I asked, after
witnessing a prolonged campaign against a blade not three inches
high. "Pull it up, child, pull it up?" She picked up the limp sprout
and squeezed her thumb up its tiny stalk. Microscopic grains oozed
out. "Why, one sprig of nut grass can ruin a whole yard.
Look here. When it comes fall this dries up and the wind
blows it all over Maycomb County!" Miss Maudie's face likened such
an occurrence unto an Old Testament pestilence. Her speech was
crisp for a Maycomb County inhabitant. She called us by all our
names, and when she grinned she revealed two minute gold
prongs clipped to her eyeteeth. When I admired them and hoped
I would have some eventually, she said, "Look here." With a click
of her tongue she thrust out her bridgework, a gesture of
cordiality that cemented our friendship. Miss Maudie's
benevolence extended to Jem and Dill, whenever they paused in
their pursuits: we reaped the benefits of a talent Miss
Maudie had hitherto kept hidden from us. She made the best
cakes in the neighborhood. When she was admitted into our
confidence, every time she baked she made a big cake and three
little ones, and she would call across the street: "Jem
Finch, Scout Finch, Charles Baker Harris, come here!" Our
promptness was always rewarded. In summertime, twilights are
long and peaceful. Often as not, Miss Maudie and I would sit
silently on her porch, watching the sky go from yellow to
pink as the sun went down, watching flights of martins sweep
low over the the schoolhouse neighborhood and disappear behind
rooftops. "Miss Maudie," I said one evening, "do you think
Boo Radley's still alive?" "His name's Arthur and he's alive,"
she said. She was rocking slowly in her big oak chair. "Do
you smell my mimosa? It's like angels' breath this evening."
"Yessum. How do you know?" "Know what, child?" "That B- Mr. Arthur's
still alive?" "What a morbid question. But I suppose it's a
morbid subject. I know he's alive, Jean Louise, because I
haven't seen him carried out yet." "Maybe he died and they stuffed
him up the chimney." "Where did you get such a notion?" "That's
what Jem said he thought they did." "S-ss-ss. He gets more like Jack
Finch every day." Miss Maudie had known Uncle Jack Finch,
Atticus's brother, since they were children. Nearly the same
age, they had grown up together at Finch's Landing. Miss Maudie was
the daughter of a neighboring landowner, Dr. Frank Buford. Dr.
Buford's profession was medicine and his obsession was anything
that grew in the ground, so he stayed poor. Uncle Jack Finch
confined his passion for digging to his window boxes in
Nashville and stayed rich. We saw Uncle Jack every Christmas, and
every Christmas he yelled across the street for Miss Maudie to come
marry him. Miss Maudie would yell back, "Call a little louder, Jack
Finch, and they'll hear you at the post office, I haven't heard you
yet!" Jem and I thought this a strange way to ask for a lady's hand in
marriage, but then Uncle Jack was rather strange. He said he
was trying to get Miss Maudie's goat, that he had been
trying unsuccessfully for forty years, that he was the last person in
the world Miss Maudie would think about marrying but the
first person she thought about teasing, and the best defense
to her was spirited offense, all of which we understood
clearly. "Arthur Radley just stays in the house, that's all," said
Miss Maudie. "Wouldn't you stay in the house if you didn't
want to come out?" "Yessum, but I'd wanta come out. Why doesn't he?"
Miss Maudie's eyes narrowed. "You know that story as well as I
do." "I never heard why, though. Nobody ever told me why." Miss
Maudie settled her bridgework. "You know old Mr. Radley was a
foot-washing Baptist-" "That's what you are, ain't it?" "My shell's
not that hard, child. I'm just a Baptist." "Don't you all believe in
foot-washing?" "We do. At home in the bathtub." "But we can't have
communion with you all-" Apparently deciding that it was easier
to define primitive baptistry than closed communion, Miss
Maudie said: "Foot- washers believe anything that's pleasure is
a sin. Did you know some of 'em came out of the woods one Saturday
and passed by this place and told me me and my flowers were
going to hell?" "Your flowers, too?" "Yes ma'am. They'd burn
right with me. They thought I spent too much time in God's
outdoors and not enough time inside the house reading the Bible." My
confidence in pulpit Gospel lessened at the vision of Miss Maudie
stewing forever in various Protestant hells. True enough, she
had an acid tongue in her head, and she did not go about
the neighborhood doing good, as did Miss Stephanie Crawford. But
while no one with a grain of sense trusted Miss Stephanie, Jem and I
had considerable faith in Miss Maudie. She had never told on
us, had never played cat-and-mouse with us, she was not at all
interested in our private lives. She was our friend. How so
reasonable a creature could live in peril of everlasting
torment was incomprehensible. "That ain't right, Miss Maudie.
You're the best lady I know." Miss Maudie grinned. "Thank you
ma'am. Thing is, foot- washers think women are a sin by definition.
They take the Bible literally, you know." "Is that why Mr. Arthur
stays in the house, to keep away from women?" "I've no idea."
"It doesn't make sense to me. Looks like if Mr. Arthur was
hankerin' after heaven he'd come out on the porch at least. Atticus
says God's loving folks like you love yourself-" Miss Maudie stopped
rocking, and her voice hardened. "You are too young to understand
it," she said, "but sometimes the Bible in the hand of one
man is worse than a whiskey bottle in the hand of- oh, of your
father." I was shocked. "Atticus doesn't drink whiskey," I
said. "He never drunk a drop in his life- nome, yes he did. He said
he drank some one time and didn't like it." Miss Maudie laughed.
"Wasn't talking about your father," she said. "What I meant was,
if Atticus Finch drank until he was drunk he wouldn't be as hard as
some men are at their best. There are just some kind of men who-
who're so busy worrying about the next world they've never learned to
live in this one, and you can look down the street and see
the results." "Do you think they're true, all those things
they say about B- Mr. Arthur?" "What things?" I told her. is
three-fourths colored "That folks and one-fourth Stephanie
Crawford," said Miss Maudie grimly. "Stephanie Crawford even
told me once she woke up in the middle of the night and found
him looking in the window at her. I said what did you do,
Stephanie, move over in the bed and make room for him? That shut
her up a while." I was sure it did. Miss Maudie's voice was
enough to shut anybody up. "No, child," she said, "that is a
sad house. I remember Arthur Radley when he was a boy. He always
spoke nicely to me, no matter what folks said he did. Spoke as nicely
as he knew how." "You reckon he's crazy?" Miss Maudie shook her
head. "If he's not he should be by now. The things that
happen to people we never really know. What happens in houses
behind closed doors, what secrets-" "Atticus don't ever do
anything to Jem and me in the house that he don't do in the
yard," I said, feeling it my duty to defend my parent.
"Gracious child, I was raveling a thread, wasn't even thinking
about your father, but now that I am I'll say this: Atticus
Finch is the same in his house as he is on the public streets. How'd
you like some fresh poundcake to take home?" I liked it very
much. Next morning when I awakened I found Jem and Dill in the back
yard deep in conversation. When I joined them, as usual they
said go away. "Will not. This yard's as much mine as it is
yours, Jem Finch. I got just as much right to play in it as you
have." Dill and Jem emerged from a brief huddle: "If you
stay you've got to do what we tell you," Dill warned. "We-ll," I
said, "who's so high and mighty all of a sudden?" "If you don't say
you'll do what we tell you, we ain't gonna tell you anything," Dill
continued. "You act like you grew ten inches in the night!
All right, what is it?" Jem said placidly, "We are going to
give a note to Boo Radley." "Just how?" I was trying to fight
down the automatic terror rising in me. It was all right for Miss
Maudie to talk- she was old and snug on her porch. It was different
for us. Jem was merely going to put the note on the end of
a fishing pole and stick it through the shutters. If anyone
came along, Dill would ring the bell. Dill raised his right hand.
In it was my mother's silver dinner-bell. "I'm goin' around
to the side of the house," said Jem. "We looked yesterday
from across the street, and there's a shutter loose. Think
maybe I can make it stick on the window sill, at least."
"Jem-" "Now you're in it and you can't get out of it, you'll just
stay in it, Miss Priss!" "Okay, okay, but I don't wanta watch. Jem,
somebody was-" "Yes you will, you'll watch the back end of the lot
and Dill's gonna watch the front of the house an' up the street, an'
if anybody comes he'll ring the bell. That clear?" "All right then.
What'd you write him?" Dill said, "We're askin' him real
politely to come out sometimes, and tell us what he does in
there- we said we wouldn't hurt him and we'd buy him an ice cream."
"You all've gone crazy, he'll kill us!" Dill said, "It's my idea.
I figure if he'd come out and sit a spell with us he might
feel better." "How do you know he don't feel good?" "Well how'd
you feel if you'd been shut up for a hundred years with
nothin' but cats to eat? I bet he's got a beard down to
here-" "Like your daddy's?" "He ain't got a beard, he-" Dill
stopped, as if trying to remember. "Uh huh, caughtcha," I said.
"You said 'fore you were off the train good your daddy had a black
beard-" "If it's all the same to you he shaved it off last
summer! Yeah, an' I've got the letter to prove it- he sent
me two dollars, too!" "Keep on- I reckon he even sent you
a mounted police uniform! That'n never showed up, did it? You
just keep on tellin' 'em, son-" Dill Harris could tell the
biggest ones I ever heard. Among other things, he had been
up in a mail plane seventeen times, he had been to Nova
Scotia, he had seen an elephant, and his granddaddy was
Brigadier General Joe Wheeler and left him his sword. "You all
hush," said Jem. He scuttled beneath the house and came out with a
yellow bamboo pole. "Reckon this is long enough to reach from
the sidewalk?" "Anybody who's brave enough to go up and touch the
house hadn't oughta use a fishin' pole," I said. "Why don't you just
knock the front door down?" "This- is- different," said Jem, "how
many times do I have to tell you that?" Dill took a piece of paper
from his pocket and gave it to Jem. The three of us walked cautiously
toward the old house. Dill remained at the light-pole on the front
corner of the lot, and Jem and I edged down the sidewalk parallel to
the side of the house. I walked beyond Jem and stood where I could see
around the curve. "All clear," I said. "Not a soul in sight." Jem
looked up the sidewalk to Dill, who nodded. Jem attached the note to
the end of the fishing pole, let the pole out across the yard and
pushed it toward the window he had selected. The pole lacked several
inches of being long enough, and Jem leaned over as far as he could. I
watched him making jabbing motions for so long, I abandoned my post
and went to him. "Can't get it off the pole," he muttered, "or if I
got it off I can't make it stay. G'on back down the street, Scout."
I returned and gazed around the curve at the empty road.
Occasionally I looked back at Jem, who was patiently trying to place
the note on the window sill. It would flutter to the ground and Jem
would jab it up, until I thought if Boo Radley ever received
it he wouldn't be able to read it. I was looking down the street when
the dinner-bell rang. Shoulder up, I reeled around to face Boo
Radley and his bloody fangs; instead, I saw Dill ringing the bell
with all his might in Atticus's face. Jem looked so awful I didn't
have the heart to tell him I told him so. He trudged along, dragging
the pole behind him on the sidewalk. Atticus said, "Stop ringing that
bell." Dill grabbed the clapper; in the silence that followed, I
wished he'd start ringing it again. Atticus pushed his hat to the back
of his head and put his hands on his hips. "Jem," he said, "what were
you doing?" "Nothin', sir." "I don't want any of that. Tell me." "I
was- we were just tryin' to give somethin' to Mr. Radley." "What were
you trying to give him?" "Just a letter." "Let me see it." Jem held
out a filthy piece of paper. Atticus took it and tried to read it.
"Why do you want Mr. Radley to come out?" Dill said, "We thought
he might enjoy us..." and dried up when Atticus looked at him.
"Son," he said to Jem, "I'm going to tell you something and tell you
one time: stop tormenting that man. That goes for the other two of
you." What Mr. Radley did was his own business. If he wanted to come
out, he would. If he wanted to stay inside his own house he
had the right to stay inside free from the attentions of
inquisitive children, which was a mild term for the likes of us. How
would we like it if Atticus barged in on us without knocking, when we
were in our rooms at night? We were, in effect, doing the same
thing to Mr. Radley. What Mr. Radley did might seem peculiar
to us, but it did not seem peculiar to him. Furthermore, had
it never occurred to us that the civil way to communicate
with another being was by the front door instead of a side
window? Lastly, we were to stay away from that house until we were
invited there, we were not to play an asinine game he had seen us
playing or make fun of anybody on this street or in this town-
"We weren't makin' fun of him, we weren't laughin' at him," said Jem,
"we were just-" "So that was what you were doing, wasn't it?"
"Makin' fun of him?" "No," said Atticus, "putting his life's
history on display for the edification of the neighborhood." Jem
seemed to swell a little. "I didn't say we were doin' that,
I didn't say it!" Atticus grinned dryly. "You just told me," he
said. "You stop this nonsense right now, every one of you." Jem gaped
at him. "You want to be a lawyer, don't you?" Our father's
mouth was suspiciously firm, as if he were trying to hold it in line.
Jem decided there was no point in quibbling, and was silent. When
Atticus went inside the house to retrieve a file he had forgotten to
take to work that morning, Jem finally realized that he had been
done in by the oldest lawyer's trick on record. He waited a
respectful distance from the front steps, watched Atticus leave the
house and walk toward town. When Atticus was out of earshot
Jem yelled after him: "I thought I wanted to be a lawyer but I
ain't so sure now!" 6 "Yes," said our father, when Jem asked
him if we could go over and sit by Miss Rachel's fishpool
with Dill, as this was his last night in Maycomb. "Tell him
so long for me, and we'll see him next summer." We leaped over
the low wall that separated Miss Rachel's yard from our
driveway. Jem whistled bob-white and Dill answered in the
darkness. "Not a breath blowing," said Jem. "Looka yonder." He
pointed to the east. A gigantic moon was rising behind Miss
Maudie's pecan trees. "That makes it seem hotter," he said. "Cross
in it tonight?" asked Dill, not looking up. He was
constructing a cigarette from newspaper and string. "No, just the
lady. Don't light that thing, Dill, you'll stink up this whole end of
town." There was a lady in the moon in Maycomb. She sat at
a dresser combing her hair. "We're gonna miss you, boy," I
said. "Reckon we better watch for Mr. Avery?" Mr. Avery boarded
across the street from Mrs. Henry Lafayette Dubose's house.
Besides making change in the collection plate every Sunday,
Mr. Avery sat on the porch every night until nine o'clock and
sneezed. One evening we were privileged to witness a performance
by him which seemed to have been his positively last, for he never
did it again so long as we watched. Jem and I were leaving
Miss Rachel's front steps one night when Dill stopped us: "Golly,
looka yonder." He pointed across the street. At first we saw nothing
but a kudzu-covered front porch, but a closer inspection
revealed an arc of water descending from the leaves and
splashing in the yellow circle of the street light, some ten feet
from source to earth, it seemed to us. Jem said Mr. Avery
misfigured, Dill said he must drink a gallon a day, and the ensuing
contest to determine relative distances and respective prowess only
made me feel left out again, as I was untalented in this area. Dill
stretched, yawned, and said altogether too casually. "I know
what, let's go for a walk." He sounded fishy to me. Nobody in Maycomb
just went for a walk. "Where to, Dill?" Dill jerked his head in a
southerly direction. Jem said, "Okay." When I protested, he
said sweetly, "You don't have to come along, Angel May." "You don't
have to go. Remember-" Jem was not one to dwell on past
defeats: it seemed the only message he got from Atticus was insight
into the art of cross examination. "Scout, we ain't gonna do
anything, we're just goin' to the street light and back." We
strolled silently down the sidewalk, listening to porch swings
creaking with the weight of the neighborhood, listening to the
soft night-murmurs of the grown people on our street. Occasionally
we heard Miss Stephanie Crawford laugh. "Well?" said Dill.
"Okay," said Jem. "Why don't you go on home, Scout?" "What are you
gonna do?" Dill and Jem were simply going to peep in the window with
the loose shutter to see if they could get a look at Boo
Radley, and if I didn't want to go with them I could go
straight home and keep my fat flopping mouth shut, that was
all. "But what in the sam holy hill did you wait till tonight?"
Because nobody could see them at night, because Atticus would
be so deep in a book he wouldn't hear the Kingdom coming,
because if Boo Radley killed them they'd miss school instead of
vacation, and because it was easier to see inside a dark house in
the dark than in the daytime, did I understand? "Jem, please-"
"Scout, I'm tellin' you for the last time, shut your trap or go home-
I declare to the Lord you're gettin' more like a girl every
day!" With that, I had no option but to join them. We
thought it was better to go under the high wire fence at the rear of
the Radley lot, we stood less chance of being seen. The
fence enclosed a large garden and a narrow wooden outhouse. Jem held
up the bottom wire and motioned Dill under it. I followed,
and held up the wire for Jem. It was a tight squeeze for
him. "Don't make a sound," he whispered. "Don't get in a row of
collards whatever you do, they'll wake the dead." With this
thought in mind, I made perhaps one step per minute. I moved
faster when I saw Jem far ahead beckoning in the moonlight.
We came to the gate that divided the garden from the back yard.
Jem touched it. The gate squeaked. "Spit on it," whispered Dill.
"You've got us in a box, Jem," I muttered. "We can't get out of here
so easy." "Sh-h. Spit on it, Scout." We spat ourselves dry, and
Jem opened the gate slowly, lifting it aside and resting it
on the fence. We were in the back yard. The back of the
Radley house was less inviting than the front: a ramshackle
porch ran the width of the house; there were two doors and two
dark windows between the doors. Instead of a column, a rough
two-by-four supported one end of the roof. An old Franklin stove sat
in a corner of the porch; above it a hat-rack mirror caught the
moon and shone eerily. "Ar-r," said Jem softly, lifting his foot.
"'Smatter?" "Chickens," he breathed. That we would be obliged
to dodge the unseen from all directions was confirmed when Dill
ahead of us spelled G-o- d in a whisper. We crept to the side of the
house, around to the window with the hanging shutter. The sill
was several inches taller than Jem. "Give you a hand up," he
muttered to Dill. "Wait, though." Jem grabbed his left wrist and
my right wrist, I grabbed my left wrist and Jem's right wrist, we
crouched, and Dill sat on our saddle. We raised him and he caught the
window sill. "Hurry," Jem whispered, "we can't last much longer."
Dill punched my shoulder, and we lowered him to the ground.
"What'd you see?" "Nothing. Curtains. There's a little teeny
light way off somewhere, though." "Let's get away from here,"
breathed Jem. "Let's go 'round in back again. Sh-h," he warned
me, as I was about to protest. "Let's try the back window."
"Dill, no," I said. Dill stopped and let Jem go ahead. When
Jem put his foot on the bottom step, the step squeaked. He stood
still, then tried his weight by degrees. The step was silent.
Jem skipped two steps, put his foot on the porch, heaved himself to
it, and teetered a long moment. He regained his balance and dropped to
his knees. He crawled to the window, raised his head and looked in.
Then I saw the shadow. It was the shadow of a man with a hat on. At
first I thought it was a tree, but there was no wind
blowing, and tree-trunks never walked. The back porch was
bathed in moonlight, and the shadow, crisp as toast, moved
across the porch toward Jem. Dill saw it next. He put his hands to
his face. When it crossed Jem, Jem saw it. He put his arms over his
head and went rigid. The shadow stopped about a foot beyond
Jem. Its arm came out from its side, dropped, and was still.
Then it turned and moved back across Jem, walked along the porch and
off the side of the house, returning as it had come. Jem leaped off
the porch and galloped toward us. He flung open the gate, danced
Dill and me through, and shooed us between two rows of swishing
collards. Halfway through the collards I tripped; as I tripped
the roar of a shotgun shattered the neighborhood. Dill and Jem
dived beside me. Jem's breath came in sobs: "Fence by the
schoolyard!- hurry, Scout!" Jem held the bottom wire; Dill and
I rolled through and were halfway to the shelter of the
schoolyard's solitary oak when we sensed that Jem was not with us. We
ran back and found him struggling in the fence, kicking his
pants off to get loose. He ran to the oak tree in his shorts.
Safely behind it, we gave way to numbness, but Jem's mind was racing:
"We gotta get home, they'll miss us." We ran across the
schoolyard, crawled under the fence to Deer's Pasture behind
our house, climbed our back fence and were at the back steps
before Jem would let us pause to rest. Respiration normal, the
three of us strolled as casually as we could to the front yard.
We looked down the street and saw a circle of neighbors at the Radley
front gate. "We better go down there," said Jem. "They'll
think it's funny if we don't show up." Mr. Nathan Radley was
standing inside his gate, a shotgun broken across his arm.
Atticus was standing beside Miss Maudie and Miss Stephanie
Crawford. Miss Rachel and Mr. Avery were near by. None of them saw
us come up. We eased in beside Miss Maudie, who looked
around. "Where were you all, didn't you hear the commotion?" "What
happened?" asked Jem. "Mr. Radley shot at a Negro in his collard
patch." "Oh. Did he hit him?" "No," said Miss Stephanie. "Shot in
the air. Scared him pale, though. Says if anybody sees a white nigger
around, that's the one. Says he's got the other barrel waitin' for
the next sound he hears in that patch, an' next time he
won't aim high, be it dog, nigger, or- Jem Finch!" "Ma'am?" asked
Jem. Atticus spoke. "Where're your pants, son?" "Pants, sir?"
"Pants." It was no use. In his shorts before God and
everybody. I sighed. "Ah- Mr. Finch?" In the glare from the
streetlight, I could see Dill hatching one: his eyes widened, his
fat cherub face grew rounder. "What is it, Dill?" asked Atticus.
"Ah- I won 'em from him," he said vaguely. "Won them? How?" Dill's
hand sought the back of his head. He brought it forward and
across his forehead. "We were playin' strip poker up yonder by
the fishpool," he said. Jem and I relaxed. The neighbors seemed
satisfied: they all stiffened. But what was strip poker? We had no
chance to find out: Miss Rachel went off like the town fire siren:
"Do-o-o Jee-sus, Dill Harris! Gamblin' by my fishpool? I'll strip-
poker you, sir!" Atticus saved Dill from immediate
dismemberment. "Just a minute, Miss Rachel," he said. "I've
never heard of 'em doing that before. Were you all playing cards?"
Jem fielded Dill's fly with his eyes shut: "No sir, just
with matches." I admired my brother. Matches were dangerous,
but cards were fatal. "Jem, Scout," said Atticus, "I don't want to
hear of poker in any form again. Go by Dill's and get your pants, Jem.
Settle it yourselves." "Don't worry, Dill," said Jem, as we trotted
up the sidewalk, "she ain't gonna get you. He'll talk her out
of it. That was fast thinkin', son. Listen... you hear?" We
stopped, and heard Atticus's voice: "...not serious... they all
go through it, Miss Rachel...." Dill was comforted, but Jem and
I weren't. There was the problem of Jem showing up some pants in
the morning. "'d give you some of mine," said Dill, as we
came to Miss Rachel's steps. Jem said he couldn't get in them, but
thanks anyway. We said good-bye, and Dill went inside the house. He
evidently remembered he was engaged to me, for he ran back out and
kissed me swiftly in front of Jem. "Yawl write, hear?" he bawled after
us. Had Jem's pants been safely on him, we would not have
slept much anyway. Every night-sound I heard from my cot on the back
porch was magnified three-fold; every scratch of feet on
gravel was Boo Radley seeking revenge, every passing Negro
laughing in the night was Boo Radley loose and after us;
insects splashing against the screen were Boo Radley's insane
fingers picking the wire to pieces; the chinaberry trees were
malignant, hovering, alive. I lingered between sleep and wakefulness
until I heard Jem murmur. "Sleep, Little Three-Eyes?" "Are you
crazy?" "Sh-h. Atticus's light's out." In the waning moonlight I
saw Jem swing his feet to the floor. "I'm goin' after 'em," he
said. I sat upright. "You can't. I won't let you." He was struggling
into his shirt. "I've got to." "You do an' I'll wake up Atticus."
"You do and I'll kill you." I pulled him down beside me on the
cot. I tried to reason with him. "Mr. Nathan's gonna find 'em in
the morning, Jem. He knows you lost 'em. When he shows 'em to
Atticus it'll be pretty bad, that's all there is to it. Go'n back to
bed." "That's what I know," said Jem. "That's why I'm goin' after
'em." I began to feel sick. Going back to that place by himself- I
remembered Miss Stephanie: Mr. Nathan had the other barrel
waiting for the next sound he heard, be it nigger, dog... Jem
knew that better than I. I was desperate: "Look, it ain't worth it,
Jem. A lickin' hurts but it doesn't last. You'll get your head
shot off, Jem. Please..." He blew out his breath patiently. "I-
it's like this, Scout," he muttered. "Atticus ain't ever whipped
me since I can remember. I wanta keep it that way." This was a
thought. It seemed that Atticus threatened us every other day.
"You mean he's never caught you at anything." "Maybe so, but-
I just wanta keep it that way, Scout. We shouldn'a done that
tonight, Scout." It was then, I suppose, that Jem and I
first began to part company. Sometimes I did not understand
him, but my periods of bewilderment were short-lived. This was
beyond me. "Please," I pleaded, "can'tcha just think about it
for a minute- by yourself on that place-" "Shut up!" "It's not
like he'd never speak to you again or somethin'... I'm gonna
wake him up, Jem, I swear I am-" Jem grabbed my pajama collar and
wrenched it tight. "Then I'm goin' with you-" I choked. "No you
ain't, you'll just make noise." It was no use. I unlatched the
back door and held it while he crept down the steps. It
must have been two o'clock. The moon was setting and the
lattice-work shadows were fading into fuzzy nothingness. Jem's
white shirt-tail dipped and bobbed like a small ghost dancing
away to escape the coming morning. A faint breeze stirred and
cooled the sweat running down my sides. He went the back way,
through Deer's Pasture, across the schoolyard and around to the
fence, I thought- at least that was the way he was headed. It would
take longer, so it was not time to worry yet. I waited until
it was time to worry and listened for Mr. Radley's shotgun.
Then I thought I heard the back fence squeak. It was wishful
thinking. Then I heard Atticus cough. I held my breath.
Sometimes when we made a midnight pilgrimage to the bathroom
we would find him reading. He said he often woke up during
the night, checked on us, and read himself back to sleep. I waited
for his light to go on, straining my eyes to see it flood
the hall. It stayed off, and I breathed again. The night-crawlers
had retired, but ripe chinaberries drummed on the roof when
the wind stirred, and the darkness was desolate with the barking
of distant dogs. There he was, returning to me. His white shirt
bobbed over the back fence and slowly grew larger. He came up the back
steps, latched the door behind him, and sat on his cot.
Wordlessly, he held up his pants. He lay down, and for a
while I heard his cot trembling. Soon he was still. I did not hear him
stir again. 7 Jem stayed moody and silent for a week. As
Atticus had once advised me to do, I tried to climb into Jem's skin
and walk around in it: if I had gone alone to the Radley Place at two
in the morning, my funeral would have been held the next
afternoon. So I left Jem alone and tried not to bother him. School
started. The second grade was as bad as the first, only
worse- they still flashed cards at you and wouldn't let you
read or write. Miss Caroline's progress next door could be estimated
by the frequency of laughter; however, the usual crew had
flunked the first grade again, and were helpful in keeping
order. The only thing good about the second grade was that
this year I had to stay as late as Jem, and we usually walked
home together at three o'clock. One afternoon when we were
crossing the schoolyard toward home, Jem suddenly said:
"There's something I didn't tell you." As this was his first
complete sentence in several days, I encouraged him: "About
what?" "About that night." "You've never told me anything about that
night," I said. Jem waved my words away as if fanning gnats.
He was silent for a while, then he said, "When I went back
for my breeches- they were all in a tangle when I was gettin' out of
'em, I couldn't get 'em loose. When I went back-" Jem took a deep
breath. "When I went back, they were folded across the fence... like
they were expectin' me." "Across-" "And something else-" Jem's
voice was flat. "Show you when we get home. They'd been sewed up.
Not like a lady sewed 'em, like somethin' I'd try to do. All
crooked. It's almost like-" "-somebody knew you were comin' back for
'em." Jem shuddered. "Like somebody was readin' my mind... like
somebody could tell what I was gonna do. Can't anybody tell
what I'm gonna do lest they know me, can they, Scout?" Jem's
question was an appeal. I reassured him: "Can't anybody tell
what you're gonna do lest they live in the house with you, and
even I can't tell sometimes." We were walking past our tree. In its
knot-hole rested a ball of gray twine. "Don't take it, Jem," I
said. "This is somebody's hidin' place." "I don't think so,
Scout." "Yes it is. Somebody like Walter Cunningham comes
down here every recess and hides his things- and we come along and
take 'em away from him. Listen, let's leave it and wait a couple of
days. If it ain't gone then, we'll take it, okay?" "Okay, you might
be right," said Jem. "It must be some little kid's place- hides
his things from the bigger folks. You know it's only when school's in
that we've found things." "Yeah," I said, "but we never go by
here in the summertime." We went home. Next morning the twine was
where we had left it. When it was still there on the third
day, Jem pocketed it. From then on, we considered everything
we found in the knot-hole our property. The second grade was
grim, but Jem assured me that the older I got the better
school would be, that he started off the same way, and it
was not until one reached the sixth grade that one learned
anything of value. The sixth grade seemed to please him from the
beginning: he went through a brief Egyptian Period that baffled me- he
tried to walk flat a great deal, sticking one arm in front of
him and one in back of him, putting one foot behind the other. He
declared Egyptians walked that way; I said if they did I
didn't see how they they got anything done, but Jem said
accomplished more than the Americans ever did, they invented
toilet paper and perpetual embalming, and asked where would we
be today if they hadn't? Atticus told me to delete the adjectives and
I'd have the facts. There are no clearly defined seasons in
South Alabama; summer drifts into autumn, and autumn is sometimes
never followed by winter, but turns to a days-old spring that melts
into summer again. That fall was a long one, hardly cool
enough for a light jacket. Jem and I were trotting in our
orbit one mild October afternoon when our knot-hole stopped us
again. Something white was inside this time. Jem let me do the
honors: I pulled out two small images carved in soap. One was
the figure of a boy, the other wore a crude dress. Before I
remembered that there was no such thing as hoo- dooing, I shrieked and
threw them down. Jem snatched them up. "What's the matter with
you?" he yelled. He rubbed the figures free of red dust.
"These are good," he said. "I've never seen any these good." He
held them down to me. They were almost perfect miniatures of
two children. The boy had on shorts, and a shock of soapy hair
fell to his eyebrows. I looked up at Jem. A point of straight
brown hair kicked downwards from his part. I had never noticed it
before. Jem looked from the girl-doll to me.
The girl-doll
wore bangs. So did I. "These are us," he said. "Who did 'em, you
reckon?" "Who do we know around here who whittles?" he asked. "Mr.
Avery." "Mr. Avery just does like this. I mean carves." Mr. Avery
averaged a stick of stovewood per week; he honed it down to a
toothpick and chewed it. "There's old Miss Stephanie Crawford's
sweetheart," I said. "He carves all right, but he lives down
the country. When would he ever pay any attention to us?" "Maybe he
sits on the porch and looks at us instead of Miss Stephanie. If I was
him, I would." Jem stared at me so long I asked what was the matter,
but got Nothing, Scout for an answer. When we went home, Jem
put the dolls in his trunk. Less than two weeks later we found
a whole package of chewing gum, which we enjoyed, the fact
that everything on the Radley Place was poison having slipped
Jem's memory. The following week the knot-hole yielded a tarnished
medal. Jem showed it to Atticus, who said it was a spelling medal,
that before we were born the Maycomb County schools had spelling
contests and awarded medals to the winners. Atticus said
someone must have lost it, and had we asked around? Jem camel-
kicked me when I tried to say where we had found it. Jem asked Atticus
if he remembered anybody who ever won one, and Atticus said no. Our
biggest prize appeared four days later. It was a pocket watch that
wouldn't run, on a chain with an aluminum knife. "You reckon it's
white gold, Jem?" "Don't know. I'll show it to Atticus." Atticus
said it would probably be worth ten dollars, knife, chain and
all, if it were new. "Did you swap with somebody at school?" he asked.
"Oh, no sir!" Jem pulled out his grandfather's watch that
Atticus let him carry once a week if Jem were careful with
it. On the days he carried the watch, Jem walked on eggs.
"Atticus, if it's all right with you, I'd rather have this
one instead. Maybe I can fix it." When the new wore off his
grandfather's watch, and carrying it became a day's burdensome task,
Jem no longer felt the necessity of ascertaining the hour
every five minutes. He did a fair job, only one spring and
two tiny pieces left over, but the watch would not run.
"Oh-h," he sighed, "it'll never go. Scout-?" "Huh?" "You reckon
we oughta write a letter to whoever's leaving us these things?"
"That'd be right nice, Jem, we can thank 'em- what's wrong?"
Jem was holding his ears, shaking his head from side to
side. "I don't get it, I just don't get it- I don't know
why, Scout..." He looked toward the livingroom. "I've gotta good mind
to tell Atticus- no, I reckon not." "I'll tell him for you." "No,
don't do that, Scout. Scout?" "Wha-t?" He had been on the verge
of telling me something all evening; his face would brighten and
he would lean toward me, then he would change his mind. He
changed it again. "Oh, nothin'." "Here, let's write a letter."
I pushed a tablet and pencil under his nose. "Okay. Dear
Mister..." "How do you know it's a man? I bet it's Miss Maudie- been
bettin' that for a long time." "Ar-r, Miss Maudie can't chew gum-"
Jem broke into a grin. "You know, she can talk real pretty
sometimes. One time I asked her to have a chew and she said
no thanks, that- chewing gum cleaved to her palate and
rendered her speechless," said Jem carefully. "Doesn't that sound
nice?" "Yeah, she can say nice things sometimes. She wouldn't
have a watch and chain anyway." "Dear sir," said Jem. "We appreciate
the- no, we appreciate everything which you have put into the
tree for us. Yours very truly, Jeremy Atticus Finch." "He won't
know who you are if you sign it like that, Jem." Jem erased his
name and wrote, "Jem Finch." I signed, "Jean Louise Finch
(Scout)," beneath it. Jem put the note in an envelope. Next morning
on the way to school he ran ahead of me and stopped at the tree. Jem
was facing me when he looked up, and I saw him go stark white.
"Scout!" I ran to him. Someone had filled our knot-hole with cement.
"Don't you cry, now, Scout... don't cry now, don't you
worry-" he muttered at me all the way to school. When we went home
for dinner Jem bolted his food, ran to the porch and stood on the
steps. I followed him. "Hasn't passed by yet," he said. Next day
Jem repeated his vigil and was rewarded. "Hidy do, Mr. Nathan," he
said. "Morning Jem, Scout," said Mr. Radley, as he went by. "Mr.
Radley," said Jem. Mr. Radley turned around. "Mr. Radley, ah- did
you put cement in that hole in that tree down yonder?" "Yes," he
said. "I filled it up." "Why'd you do it, sir?" "Tree's dying. You
plug 'em with cement when they're sick. You ought to know that, Jem."
Jem said nothing more about it until late afternoon. When we
passed our tree he gave it a meditative pat on its cement,
and remained deep in thought. He seemed to be working himself
into a bad humor, so I kept my distance. As usual, we met Atticus
coming home from work that evening. When we were at our
steps Jem said, "Atticus, look down yonder at that tree, please
sir." "What tree, son?" "The one on the corner of the Radley
lot comin' from school." "Yes?" "Is that tree dyin'?" "Why no,
son, I don't think so. Look at the leaves, they're all green
and full, no brown patches anywhere-" "It ain't even sick?" "That
tree's as healthy as you are, Jem. Why?" "Mr. Nathan Radley said it
was dyin'." "Well maybe it is. I'm sure Mr. Radley knows more about
his trees than we do." Atticus left us on the porch. Jem leaned on a
pillar, rubbing his shoulders against it. "Do you itch, Jem?" I
asked as politely as I could. He did not answer. "Come on in,
Jem," I said. "After while." He stood there until nightfall,
and I waited for him. When we went in the house I saw he
had been crying; his face was dirty in the right places, but I
thought it odd that I had not heard him. 8 For reasons
unfathomable to the most experienced prophets in Maycomb County,
autumn turned to winter that year. We had two weeks of the
coldest weather since 1885, Atticus said. Mr. Avery said it was
written on the Rosetta Stone that when children disobeyed their
parents, smoked cigarettes and made war on each other, the
seasons would change: Jem and I were burdened with the guilt
of contributing to the aberrations of nature, thereby causing
unhappiness to our neighbors and discomfort to ourselves. Old Mrs.
Radley died that winter, but her death caused hardly a
ripple- the neighborhood seldom saw her, except when she watered
her cannas. Jem and I decided that Boo had got her at last, but
when Atticus returned from the Radley house he said she died
of natural causes, to our disappointment. "Ask him," Jem
whispered. "You ask him, you're the oldest." "That's why you oughta
ask him." "Atticus," I said, "did you see Mr. Arthur?" Atticus
looked sternly around his newspaper at me: "I did not." Jem
restrained me from further questions. He said Atticus was still
touchous about us and the Radleys and it wouldn't do to push him any.
Jem had a notion that Atticus thought our activities that night
last summer were not solely confined to strip poker. Jem had no
firm basis for his ideas, he said it was merely a twitch. Next
morning I awoke, looked out the window and nearly died of
fright. My screams brought Atticus from his bathroom half-
shaven. "The world's endin', Atticus! Please do something-!" I
dragged him to the window and pointed. "No it's not," he said. "It's
snowing." Jem asked Atticus would it keep up. Jem had never
seen snow either, but he knew what it was. Atticus said he didn't know
any more about snow than Jem did. "I think, though, if it's watery
like that, it'll turn to rain." The telephone rang and Atticus
left the breakfast table to answer it. "That was Eula May," he
said when he returned. "I quote- 'As it has not snowed in
Maycomb County since 1885, there will be no school today.'" Eula
May was Maycomb's leading telephone operator. She was entrusted
with issuing public announcements, wedding invitations, setting off
the fire siren, and giving first-aid instructions when Dr.
Reynolds was away. When Atticus finally called us to order and
bade us look at our plates instead of out the windows, Jem asked,
"How do you make a snowman?" "I haven't the slightest idea," said
Atticus. "I don't want you all to be disappointed, but I doubt
if there'll be enough snow for a snowball, even." Calpurnia came
in and said she thought it was sticking. When we ran to the
back yard, it was covered with a feeble layer of soggy snow. "We
shouldn't walk about in it," said Jem. "Look, every step you take's
wasting it." I looked back at my mushy footprints. Jem said if we
waited until it snowed some more we could scrape it all up
for a snowman. I stuck out my tongue and caught a fat flake. It
burned. "Jem, it's hot!" "No it ain't, it's so cold it burns.
Now don't eat it, Scout, you're wasting it. Let it come down."
"But I want to walk in it." "I know what, we can go walk over at Miss
Maudie's." Jem hopped across the front yard. I followed in
his tracks. When we were on the sidewalk in front of Miss Maudie's,
Mr. Avery accosted us. He had a pink face and a big stomach
below his belt. "See what you've done?" he said. "Hasn't
snowed in Maycomb since Appomattox. It's bad children like you
makes the seasons change." I wondered if Mr. Avery knew how
hopefully we had watched last summer for him to repeat his
performance, and reflected that if this was our reward, there
was something to say for sin. I did not wonder where Mr. Avery
gathered his meteorological statistics: they came straight from
the Rosetta Stone. "Jem Finch, you Jem Finch!" "Miss Maudie's
callin' you, Jem." "You all stay in the middle of the yard.
There's some thrift buried under the snow near the porch. Don't step
on it!" "Yessum!" called Jem. "It's beautiful, ain't it, Miss
Maudie?" "Beautiful my hind foot! If it freezes tonight it'll carry
off all my azaleas!" Miss Maudie's old sunhat glistened with
snow crystals. She was bending over some small bushes,
wrapping them in burlap bags. Jem asked her what she was doing that
for. "Keep 'em warm," she said. "How can flowers keep warm? They
don't circulate." "I cannot answer that question, Jem Finch. All I
know is if it freezes tonight these plants'll freeze, so you
cover 'em up. Is that clear?" "Yessum. Miss Maudie?" "What, sir?"
"Could Scout and me borrow some of your snow?" "Heavens alive, take
it all! There's an old peach basket under the house, haul it
off in that." Miss Maudie's eyes narrowed. "Jem Finch, what
are you going to do with my snow?" "You'll see," said Jem, and
we transferred as much snow as we could from Miss Maudie's yard
to ours, a slushy operation. "What are we gonna do, Jem?" I asked.
"You'll see," he said. "Now get the basket and haul all the
snow you can rake up from the back yard to the front. Walk back in
your tracks, though," he cautioned. "Are we gonna have a snow baby,
Jem?" "No, a real snowman. Gotta work hard, now." Jem ran to the
back yard, produced the garden hoe and began digging quickly
behind the woodpile, placing any worms he found to one side. He
went in the house, returned with the laundry hamper, filled it with
earth and carried it to the front yard. When we had five baskets
of earth and two baskets of snow, Jem said we were ready to
begin. "Don't you think this is kind of a mess?" I asked. "Looks
messy now, but it won't later," he said. Jem scooped up an armful of
dirt, patted it into a mound on which he added another load, and
another until he had constructed a torso. "Jem, I ain't ever heard
of a nigger snowman," I said. "He won't be black long," he grunted.
Jem procured some peachtree switches from the back yard, plaited them,
and bent them into bones to be covered with dirt. "He looks like
Stephanie Crawford with her hands on her hips," I said. "Fat in
the middle and little-bitty arms." "I'll make 'em bigger." Jem
sloshed water over the mud man and added more dirt. He looked
thoughtfully at it for a moment, then he molded a big
stomach below the figure's waistline. Jem glanced at me, his
eyes twinkling: "Mr. Avery's sort of shaped like a snowman, ain't
he?" Jem scooped up some snow and began plastering it on. He
permitted me to cover only the back, saving the public parts for
himself. Gradually Mr. Avery turned white. Using bits of wood for
eyes, nose, mouth, and buttons, Jem succeeded in making Mr. Avery
look cross. A stick of stovewood completed the picture. Jem
stepped back and viewed his creation. "It's lovely, Jem," I
said. "Looks almost like he'd talk to you." "It is, ain't it?"
he said shyly. We could not wait for Atticus to come home for dinner,
but called and said we had a big surprise for him. He
seemed surprised when he saw most of the back yard in the
front yard, but he said we had done a jim-dandy job. "I
didn't know how you were going to do it," he said to Jem,
"but from now on I'll never worry about what'll become of
you, son, you'll always have an idea." Jem's ears reddened from
Atticus's compliment, but he looked up sharply when he saw
Atticus stepping back. Atticus squinted at the snowman a while.
He grinned, then laughed. "Son, I can't tell what you're going
to be- an engineer, a lawyer, or a portrait painter. You've
perpetrated a near libel here in the front yard. We've got to disguise
this fellow." Atticus suggested that Jem hone down his creation's
front a little, swap a broom for the stovewood, and put an apron on
him. Jem explained that if he did, the snowman would become
muddy and cease to be a snowman. "I don't care what you do, so
long as you do something," said Atticus. "You can't go around
making caricatures of the neighbors." "Ain't a characterture," said
Jem. "It looks just like him." "Mr. Avery might not think so." "I
know what!" said Jem. He raced across the street, disappeared
into Miss Maudie's back yard and returned triumphant. He stuck
her sunhat on the snowman's head and jammed her hedge-clippers
into the crook of his arm. Atticus said that would be fine. Miss
Maudie opened her front door and came out on the porch. She
looked across the street at us. Suddenly she grinned. "Jem
Finch," she called. "You devil, bring me back my hat, sir!" Jem
looked up at Atticus, who shook his head. "She's just
fussing," he said. "She's really impressed with your-
accomplishments." Atticus strolled over to Miss Maudie's
sidewalk, where they engaged in an arm-waving conversation, the only
phrase of which I caught was "...erected an absolute morphodite
in that yard! Atticus, you'll never raise 'em!" The snow stopped
in the afternoon, the temperature dropped, and by nightfall
Mr. Avery's direst predictions came true: Calpurnia kept every
fireplace in the house blazing, but we were cold. When
Atticus came home that evening he said we were in for it, and asked
Calpurnia if she wanted to stay with us for the night.
Calpurnia glanced up at the high ceilings and long windows and
said she thought she'd be warmer at her house. Atticus drove
her home in the car. Before I went to sleep Atticus put more
coal on the fire in my room. He said the thermometer registered
sixteen, that it was the coldest night in his memory, and
that our snowman outside was frozen solid. Minutes later, it
seemed, I was awakened by someone shaking me. Atticus's overcoat
was spread across me. "Is it morning already?" "Baby, get up."
Atticus was holding out my bathrobe and coat. "Put your robe
on first," he said. Jem was standing beside Atticus, groggy and
tousled. He was holding his overcoat closed at the neck, his other
hand looked strangely was overweight. into his pocket. He
jammed "Hurry, hon," said Atticus. "Here're your shoes and socks."
Stupidly, I put them on. "Is it morning?" "No, it's a little after
one. Hurry now." That something was wrong finally got through
to me. "What's the matter?" By then he did not have to tell me.
Just as the birds know where to go when it rains, I knew when there
was trouble in our street. Soft taffeta-like sounds and muffled
scurrying sounds filled me with helpless dread. "Whose is it?"
"Miss Maudie's, hon," said Atticus gently. At the front door, we
saw fire spewing from Miss Maudie's diningroom windows. As if
to confirm what we saw, the town fire siren wailed up the
scale to a treble pitch and remained there, screaming. "It's
gone, ain't it?" moaned Jem. "I expect so," said Atticus. "Now
listen, both of you. Go down and stand in front of the Radley
Place. Keep out of the way, do you hear? See which way the wind's
blowing?" "Oh," said Jem. "Atticus, reckon we oughta start moving the
furniture out?" "Not yet, son. Do as I tell you. Run now. Take care
of Scout, you hear? Don't let her out of your sight." With a push,
Atticus started us toward the Radley front gate. We stood
watching the street fill with men and cars while fire silently
devoured Miss Maudie's house. "Why don't they hurry, why don't they
hurry..." muttered Jem. We saw why. The old fire truck, killed by the
cold, was being pushed from town by a crowd of men. When the
men attached its hose to a hydrant, the hose burst and water
shot up, tinkling down on the pavement. "Oh-h Lord, Jem..." Jem put
his arm around me. "Hush, Scout," he said. "It ain't time to worry
yet. I'll let you know when." The men of Maycomb, in all
degrees of dress and undress, took furniture from Miss
Maudie's house to a yard across the street. I saw Atticus
carrying Miss Maudie's heavy oak rocking chair, and thought it
sensible of him to save what she valued most. Sometimes we
heard shouts. Then Mr. Avery's face appeared in an upstairs
window. He pushed a mattress out the window into the street and
threw down furniture until men shouted, "Come down from there,
Dick! The stairs are going! Get outta there, Mr. Avery!" Mr. Avery
began climbing through the window. "Scout, he's stuck..." breathed
Jem. "Oh God..." Mr. Avery was wedged tightly. I buried my head under
Jem's arm and didn't look again until Jem cried, "He's got
loose, Scout! He's all right!" I looked up to see Mr. Avery
cross the upstairs porch. He swung his legs over the railing and
was sliding down a pillar when he slipped. He fell, yelled, and
hit Miss Maudie's shrubbery. Suddenly I noticed that the men
were backing away from Miss Maudie's house, moving down the
street toward us. They were no longer carrying furniture. The
fire was well into the second floor and had eaten its way
to the roof: window frames were black against a vivid orange center.
"Jem, it looks like a pumpkin-" "Scout, look!" Smoke was rolling
off our house and Miss Rachel's house like fog off a riverbank,
and men were pulling hoses toward them. Behind us, the fire
truck from Abbottsville screamed around the curve and stopped in
front of our house. "That book..." I said. "What?" said Jem. "That
Tom Swift book, it ain't mine, it's Dill's..." "Don't worry, Scout,
it ain't time to worry yet," said Jem. He pointed. "Looka yonder." In
a group of neighbors, Atticus was standing with his hands in
his overcoat pockets. He might have been watching a football
game. Miss Maudie was beside him. "See there, he's not worried yet,"
said Jem. "Why ain't he on top of one of the houses?" "He's too old,
he'd break his neck." "You think we oughta make him get our stuff
out?" "Let's don't pester him, he'll know when it's time," said Jem.
The Abbottsville fire truck began pumping water on our house;
a man on the roof pointed to places that needed it most. I
watched our Absolute Morphodite go black and crumble; Miss
Maudie's sunhat settled on top of the heap. I could not see her
hedge-clippers. In the heat between our house, Miss Rachel's
and Miss Maudie's, the men had long ago shed coats and
bathrobes. They worked in pajama tops and nightshirts stuffed into
their pants, but I became aware that I was slowly freezing where I
stood. Jem tried to keep me warm, but his arm was not enough.
I pulled free of it and clutched my shoulders. By dancing a
little, I could feel my feet. Another fire truck appeared and
stopped in front of Miss Stephanie Crawford's. There was no
hydrant for another hose, and the men tried to soak her
house with hand extinguishers. Miss Maudie's tin roof quelled
the flames. Roaring, the house collapsed; fire gushed
everywhere, followed by a flurry of blankets from men on top of the
adjacent houses, beating out sparks and burning chunks of wood. It
was dawn before the men began to leave, first one by one,
then in groups. They pushed the Maycomb fire truck back to
town, the Abbottsville truck departed, the third one remained. We
found out next day it had come from Clark's Ferry, sixty miles away.
Jem and I slid across the street. Miss Maudie was staring at the
smoking black hole in her yard, and Atticus shook his head
to tell us she did not want to talk. He led us home,
holding onto our shoulders to cross the icy street. He said
Miss Maudie would stay with Miss Stephanie for the time
being. "Anybody want some hot chocolate?" he asked. I shuddered when
Atticus started a fire in the kitchen stove. As we drank our cocoa I
noticed Atticus looking at me, first with curiosity, then with
sternness. "I thought I told you and Jem to stay put," he said. "Why,
we did. We stayed-" "Then whose blanket is that?" "Blanket?" "Yes
ma'am, blanket. It isn't ours." I looked down and found myself
clutching a brown woolen blanket I was wearing around my shoulders,
squaw-fashion. "Atticus, I don't know, sir... I-" I turned to Jem
for an answer, but Jem was even more bewildered than I. He said
he didn't know how it got there, we did exactly as Atticus had told
us, we stood down by the Radley gate away from everybody, we didn't
move an inch- Jem stopped. "Mr. Nathan was at the fire," he babbled,
"I saw him, I saw him, he was tuggin' that mattress- Atticus, I
swear..." "That's all right, son." Atticus grinned slowly. "Looks
like all of Maycomb was out tonight, in one way or another.
Jem, there's some wrapping paper in the pantry, I think. Go get it and
we'll-" "Atticus, no sir!" Jem seemed to have lost his mind.
He began pouring out our secrets right and left in total disregard
for my safety if not for his own, omitting nothing, knot-hole, pants
and all. "...Mr. Nathan put cement in that tree, Atticus, an' he did
it to stop us findin' things- he's crazy, I reckon, like they say, but
Atticus, I swear to God he ain't ever harmed us, he ain't ever hurt
us, he coulda cut my throat from ear to ear that night but he
tried to mend my pants instead... he ain't ever hurt us, Atticus-"
Atticus said, "Whoa, son," so gently that I was greatly
heartened. It was obvious that he had not followed a word Jem said,
for all Atticus said was, "You're right. We'd better keep this and
the blanket to ourselves. Someday, maybe, Scout can thank him for
covering her up." "Thank who?" I asked. "Boo Radley. You were so
busy looking at the fire you didn't know it when he put the blanket
around you." My stomach turned to water and I nearly threw
up when Jem held out the blanket and crept toward me. "He sneaked out
of the house- turn 'round- sneaked up, an' went like this!"
Atticus said dryly, "Do not let this inspire you to further
glory, Jeremy." Jem scowled, "I ain't gonna do anything to
him," but I watched the spark of fresh adventure leave his
eyes. "Just think, Scout," he said, "if you'd just turned
around, you'da seen him." Calpurnia woke us at noon. Atticus had
said we need not go to school that day, we'd learn nothing
after no sleep. Calpurnia said for us to try and clean up the front
yard. Miss Maudie's sunhat was suspended in a thin layer of
ice, like a fly in amber, and we had to dig under the dirt for her
hedge-clippers. We found her in her back yard, gazing at her
frozen charred azaleas. "We're bringing back your things, Miss
Maudie," said Jem. "We're awful sorry." Miss Maudie looked around,
and the shadow of her old grin crossed her face. "Always wanted a
smaller house, Jem Finch. Gives me more yard. Just think, I'll have
more room for my azaleas now!" "You ain't grievin', Miss Maudie?" I
asked, surprised. Atticus said her house was nearly all she had.
"Grieving, child? Why, I hated that old cow barn. Thought of settin'
fire to it a hundred times myself, except they'd lock me up."
"But-" "Don't you worry about me, Jean Louise Finch. There
are ways of doing things you don't know about. Why, I'll
build me a little house and take me a couple of roomers
and- gracious, I'll have the finest yard in Alabama. Those
Bellingraths'll look plain puny when I get started!" Jem and I
looked at each other. "How'd it catch, Miss Maudie?" he asked.
"I don't know, Jem. Probably the flue in the kitchen. I kept a fire in
there last night for my potted plants. Hear you had some unexpected
company last night, Miss Jean Louise." "How'd you know?" "Atticus
told me on his way to town this morning. Tell you the truth,
I'd like to've been with you. And I'd've had sense enough to turn
around, too." Miss Maudie puzzled me. With most of her possessions
gone and her beloved yard a shambles, she still took a lively and
cordial interest in Jem's and my affairs. She must have seen my
perplexity. She said, "Only thing I worried about last night was
all the danger and commotion it caused. This whole neighborhood could
have gone up. Mr. Avery'll be in bed for a week- he's right
stove up. He's too old to do things like that and I told
him so. Soon as I can get my hands clean and when Stephanie
Crawford's not looking, I'll make him a Lane cake. That
Stephanie's been after my recipe for thirty years, and if she thinks
I'll give it to her just because I'm staying with her she's
got another think coming." I reflected that if Miss Maudie
broke down and gave it to her, Miss Stephanie couldn't follow
it anyway. Miss Maudie had once let me see it: among other
things, the recipe called for one large cup of sugar. It was a
still day. The air was so cold and clear we heard the courthouse clock
clank, rattle and strain before it struck the hour. Miss Maudie's
nose was a color I had never seen before, and I inquired about
it. "I've been out here since six o'clock," she said. "Should be
frozen by now." She held up her hands. A network of tiny
lines crisscrossed her palms, brown with dirt and dried blood.
"You've ruined 'em," said Jem. "Why don't you get a colored man?"
There was no note of sacrifice in his voice when he added,
"Or Scout'n'me, we can help you." Miss Maudie said, "Thank you
sir, but you've got a job of your own over there." She pointed
to our yard. "You mean the Morphodite?" I asked. "Shoot, we
can rake him up in a jiffy." Miss Maudie stared down at me,
her lips moving silently. Suddenly she put her hands to her
head and whooped. When we left her, she was still chuckling. Jem
said he didn't know what was the matter with her- that was just Miss
Maudie. 9 "You can just take that back, boy!" This order, given
by me to Cecil Jacobs, was the beginning of a rather thin time
for Jem and me. My fists were clenched and I was ready to let
fly. Atticus had promised me he would wear me out if he
ever heard of me fighting any more; I was far too old and too big
for such childish things, and the sooner I learned to hold in, the
better off everybody would be. I soon forgot. Cecil Jacobs made me
forget. He had announced in the schoolyard the day before
that Scout Finch's daddy defended niggers. I denied it, but told
Jem. "What'd he mean sayin' that?" I asked. "Nothing," Jem said.
"Ask Atticus, he'll tell you." "Do you defend niggers, Atticus?" I
asked him that evening. "Of course I do. Don't say nigger, Scout.
That's common." "'s what everybody at school says." "From now on
it'll be everybody less one-" "Well if you don't want me to grow up
talkin' that way, why do you send me to school?" My father looked
at me mildly, amusement in his eyes. Despite our compromise, my
campaign to avoid school had continued in one form or another
since my first day's dose of it: the beginning of last
September had brought on sinking spells, dizziness, and mild
gastric complaints. I went so far as to pay a nickel for the
privilege of rubbing my head against the head of Miss Rachel's
cook's son, who was afflicted with a tremendous ringworm. It didn't
take. But I was worrying another bone. "Do all lawyers defend n-
Negroes, Atticus?" "Of course they do, Scout." "Then why did Cecil
say you defended niggers? He made it sound like you were runnin' a
still." Atticus sighed. "I'm simply defending a Negro- his
name's Tom Robinson. He lives in that little settlement beyond
the town dump. He's a member of Calpurnia's church, and Cal
knows his family well. She says they're clean-living folks.
Scout, you aren't old enough to understand some things yet,
but there's been some high talk around town to the effect
that I shouldn't do much about defending this man. It's a
peculiar case- it won't come to trial until summer session.
John Taylor was kind enough to give us a postponement..." "If
you shouldn't be defendin' him, then why are you doin' it?"
"For a number of reasons," said Atticus. "The main one is, if I
didn't I couldn't hold up my head in town, I couldn't
represent this county in the legislature, I couldn't even tell
you or Jem not to do something again." "You mean if you didn't
defend that man, Jem and me wouldn't have to mind you any more?"
"That's about right." "Why?" "Because I could never ask you
to mind me again. Scout, simply by the nature of the work, every
lawyer gets at least one case in his lifetime that affects him
personally. This one's mine, I guess. You might hear some ugly talk
about it at school, but do one thing for me if you will: you just hold
your head high and keep those fists down. No matter what anybody says
to you, don't you let 'em get your goat. Try fighting with
your head for a change... it's a good one, even if it does resist
learning." "Atticus, are we going to win it?" "No, honey." "Then
why-" "Simply because we were licked a hundred years before we
started is no reason for us not to try to win," Atticus said. "You
sound like Cousin Ike Finch," I said. Cousin Ike Finch was
Maycomb County's sole surviving Confederate veteran. He wore a
General Hood type beard of which he was inordinately vain. At
least once a year Atticus, Jem and I called on him, and I would
have to kiss him. It was horrible. Jem and I would listen respectfully
to Atticus and Cousin Ike rehash the war. "Tell you, Atticus,"
Cousin Ike would say, "the Missouri Compromise was what licked
us, but if I had to go through it agin I'd walk every step
of the way there an' every step back jist like I did before
an' furthermore we'd whip 'em this time... now in 1864, when
Stonewall Jackson came around by- I beg your pardon, young
folks. Ol' Blue Light was in heaven then, God rest his
saintly brow...." "Come here, Scout," said Atticus. I crawled into
his lap and tucked my head under his chin. He put his arms around me
and rocked me gently. "It's different this time," he said.
"This time we aren't fighting the Yankees, we're fighting our friends.
But remember this, no matter how bitter things get, they're still our
friends and this is still our home." With this in mind, I faced
Cecil Jacobs in the schoolyard next day: "You gonna take that
back, boy?" "You gotta make me first!" he yelled. "My folks
said your daddy was a disgrace an' that nigger oughta hang from the
water-tank!" I drew a bead on him, remembered what Atticus
had said, then dropped my fists and walked away, "Scout's a
cow- ward!" ringing in my ears. It was the first time I
ever walked away from a fight. Somehow, if I fought Cecil I would let
Atticus down. Atticus so rarely asked Jem and me to do
something for him, I could take being called a coward for
him. I felt extremely noble for having remembered, and remained
noble for three weeks. Then Christmas came and disaster struck. Jem
and I viewed Christmas with mixed feelings. The good side was the
tree and Uncle Jack Finch. Every Christmas Eve day we met
Uncle Jack at Maycomb Junction, and he would spend a week with
us. A flip of the coin revealed the uncompromising lineaments
of Aunt Alexandra and Francis. I suppose I should include Uncle
Jimmy, Aunt Alexandra's husband, but as he never spoke a word
to me in my life except to say, "Get off the fence," once,
I never saw any reason to take notice of him. Neither did
Aunt Alexandra. Long ago, in a burst of friendliness, Aunty and Uncle
Jimmy produced a son named Henry, who left home as soon as
was humanly possible, married, and produced Francis. Henry and
his wife deposited Francis at his grandparents' every Christmas,
then pursued their own pleasures. No amount of sighing could
induce Atticus to let us spend Christmas day at home. We
went to Finch's Landing every Christmas in my memory. The
fact that Aunty was a good cook was some compensation for
being forced to spend a religious holiday with Francis Hancock. He
was a year older than I, and I avoided him on principle: he
enjoyed everything I disapproved of, and disliked my ingenuous
diversions. Aunt Alexandra was Atticus's sister, but when Jem
told me about changelings and siblings, I decided that she had been
swapped at birth, that my grandparents had perhaps received a
Crawford instead of a Finch. Had I ever harbored the mystical
notions about mountains that seem to obsess lawyers and
judges, Aunt Alexandra would have been analogous to Mount
Everest: throughout my early life, she was cold and there. When
Uncle Jack jumped down from the train Christmas Eve day, we had
to wait for the porter to hand him two long packages. Jem and I
always thought it funny when Uncle Jack pecked Atticus on the
cheek; they were the only two men we ever saw kiss each
other. Uncle Jack shook hands with Jem and swung me high,
but not high enough: Uncle Jack was a head shorter than
Atticus; the baby of the family, he was younger than Aunt
Alexandra. He and Aunty looked alike, but Uncle Jack made better use
of his face: we were never wary of his sharp nose and chin. He was
one of the few men of science who never terrified me,
probably because he never behaved like a doctor. Whenever he
performed a minor service for Jem and me, as removing a splinter
from a foot, he would tell us exactly what he was going to
do, give us an estimation of how much it would hurt, and
explain the use of any tongs he employed. One Christmas I
lurked in corners nursing a twisted splinter in my foot,
permitting no one to come near me. When Uncle Jack caught me, he
kept me laughing about a preacher who hated going to church
so much that every day he stood at his gate in his
dressing-gown, smoking a hookah and delivering five-minute
sermons to any passers-by who desired spiritual comfort. I
interrupted to make Uncle Jack let me know when he would pull it out,
but he held up a bloody splinter in a pair of tweezers and
said he yanked it while I was laughing, that was what was
known as relativity. "What's in those packages?" I asked him,
pointing to the long thin parcels the porter had given him. "None
of your business," he said. Jem said, "How's Rose Aylmer?" Rose
Aylmer was Uncle Jack's cat. She was a beautiful yellow female
Uncle Jack said was one of the few women he could stand permanently.
He reached into his coat pocket and brought out some snapshots.
We admired them. "She's gettin' fat," I said. "I should think so.
She eats all the leftover fingers and ears from the hospital." "Aw,
that's a damn story," I said. "I beg your pardon?" Atticus said,
"Don't pay any attention to her, Jack. She's trying you out.
Cal says she's been cussing fluently for a week, now." Uncle
Jack raised his eyebrows and said nothing. I was proceeding
on the dim theory, aside from the innate attractiveness of such
words, that if Atticus discovered I had picked them up at school he
wouldn't make me go. But at supper that evening when I asked
him to pass the damn ham, please, Uncle Jack pointed at me.
"See me afterwards, young lady," he said. When supper was over,
Uncle Jack went to the livingroom and sat down. He slapped his
thighs for me to come sit on his lap. I liked to smell him: he was
like a bottle of alcohol and something pleasantly sweet. He pushed
back my bangs and looked at me. "You're more like Atticus than
your mother," he said. "You're also growing out of your pants
a little." "I reckon they fit all right." "You like words like damn
and hell now, don't you?" I said I reckoned so. "Well I don't," said
Uncle Jack, "not unless there's extreme provocation connected with
'em. I'll be here a week, and I don't want to hear any
words like that while I'm here. Scout, you'll get in trouble
if you go around saying things like that. You want to grow up to
be a lady, don't you?" I said not particularly. "Of course you do.
Now let's get to the tree." We decorated the tree until bedtime,
and that night I dreamed of the two long packages for Jem
and me. Next morning Jem and I dived for them: they were from
Atticus, who had written Uncle Jack to get them for us, and
they were what we had asked for. "Don't point them in the
house," said Atticus, when Jem aimed at a picture on the wall.
"You'll have to teach 'em to shoot," said Uncle Jack. "That's your
job," said Atticus. "I merely bowed to the inevitable." It
took Atticus's courtroom voice to drag us away from the tree. He
declined to let us take our air rifles to the Landing (I had already
begun to think of shooting Francis) and said if we made one false move
he'd take them away from us for good. Finch's Landing consisted of
three hundred and sixty-six steps down a high bluff and ending in a
jetty. Farther down stream, beyond the bluff, were traces of an
old cotton landing, where Finch Negroes had loaded bales and
produce, unloaded blocks of ice, flour and sugar, farm
equipment, and feminine apparel. A two-rut road ran from the
riverside and vanished among dark trees. At the end of the road was
a two-storied white house with porches circling it upstairs
and downstairs. In his old age, our ancestor Simon Finch had
built it to please his nagging wife; but with the porches all
resemblance to ordinary houses of its era ended. The internal
arrangements of the Finch house were indicative of Simon's
guilelessness and the absolute trust with which he regarded his
offspring. There were six bedrooms upstairs, four for the eight
female children, one for Welcome Finch, the sole son, and one
for visiting relatives. Simple enough; but the daughters' rooms could
be reached only by one staircase, Welcome's room and the
guestroom only by another. The Daughters' Staircase was in the
ground-floor bedroom of their parents, so Simon always knew the hours
of his daughters' nocturnal comings and goings. There was a
kitchen separate from the rest of the house, tacked onto it by
a wooden catwalk; in the back yard was a rusty bell on a pole,
used to summon field hands or as a distress signal; a
widow's walk was on the roof, but no widows walked there- from
it, Simon oversaw his overseer, watched the river-boats, and gazed
into the lives of surrounding landholders. it from raiders
There went with the house the usual legend about the Yankees:
one Finch female, recently engaged, donned her in the complete
trousseau to save neighborhood; she became stuck in the door
to the Daughters' Staircase but was doused with water and finally
pushed through. When we arrived at the Landing, Aunt Alexandra
kissed Uncle Jack, Francis kissed Uncle Jack, Uncle Jimmy shook
hands silently with Uncle Jack, Jem and I gave our presents to
Francis, who gave us a present. Jem felt his age and gravitated
to the adults, leaving me to entertain our cousin. Francis was
eight and slicked back his hair. "What'd you get for Christmas?" I
asked politely. "Just what I asked for," he said. Francis had
requested a pair of knee-pants, a red leather booksack, five
shirts and an untied bow tie. "That's nice," I lied. "Jem and me
got air rifles, and Jem got a chemistry set-" "A toy one, I reckon."
"No, a real one. He's gonna make me some invisible ink, and
I'm gonna write to Dill in it." Francis asked what was the use of
that. "Well, can't you just see his face when he gets a letter from
me with nothing in it? It'll drive him nuts." Talking to Francis
gave me the sensation of settling slowly to the bottom of the
ocean. He was the most boring child I ever met. As he lived in Mobile,
he could not inform on me to school authorities, but he managed to
tell everything he knew to Aunt Alexandra, who in turn unburdened
herself to Atticus, who either forgot it or gave me hell,
whichever struck his fancy. But the only time I ever heard
Atticus speak sharply to anyone was when I once heard him
say, "Sister, I do the best I can with them!" It had something to do
with my going around in overalls. Aunt Alexandra was fanatical on
the subject of my attire. I could not possibly hope to be a
lady if I wore breeches; when I said I could do nothing in a
dress, she said I wasn't supposed to be doing things that
required pants. Aunt Alexandra's vision of my deportment
involved playing with small stoves, tea sets, and wearing the
Add-A-Pearl necklace she gave me when I was born; furthermore,
I should be a ray of sunshine in my father's lonely life. I
suggested that one could be a ray of sunshine in pants just as well,
but Aunty said that one had to behave like a sunbeam, that I
was born good but had grown progressively worse every year. She
hurt my feelings and set my teeth permanently on edge, but when
I asked Atticus about it, he said there were already enough sunbeams
in the family and to go on about my business, he didn't mind
me much the way I was. At Christmas dinner, I sat at the
little table in the diningroom; Jem and Francis sat with the
adults at the dining table. Aunty had continued to isolate me
long after Jem and Francis graduated to the big table. I
often wondered what she thought I'd do, get up and throw
something? I sometimes thought of asking her if she would let me sit
at the big table with the rest of them just once, I would prove to
her how civilized I could be; after all, I ate at home every day
with no major mishaps. When I begged Atticus to use his influence, he
said he had none- we were guests, and we sat where she told us
to sit. He also said Aunt Alexandra didn't understand girls
much, she'd never had one. But her cooking made up for
everything: three kinds of meat, summer vegetables from her
pantry shelves; peach pickles, two kinds of cake and ambrosia
constituted a modest Christmas dinner. Afterwards, the adults
made for the livingroom and sat around in a dazed condition. Jem lay
on the floor, and I went to the back yard. "Put on your
coat," said Atticus dreamily, so I didn't hear him. Francis sat
beside me on the back steps. "That was the best yet," I said.
"Grandma's a wonderful cook," said Francis. "She's gonna teach
me how." "Boys don't cook." I giggled at the thought of Jem
in an apron. "Grandma says all men should learn to cook,
that men oughta be careful with their wives and wait on 'em
when they don't feel good," said my cousin. "I don't want Dill
waitin' on me," I said. "I'd rather wait on him." "Dill?" "Yeah.
Don't say anything about it yet, but we're gonna get married as soon
as we're big enough. He asked me last summer." Francis hooted.
"What's the matter with him?" I asked. "Ain't anything the
matter with him." "You mean that little runt Grandma says
stays with Miss Rachel every summer?" "That's exactly who I mean."
"I know all about him," said Francis. "What about him?" "Grandma
says he hasn't got a home-" "Has too, he lives in Meridian." "-he
just gets passed around from relative to relative, and Miss
Rachel keeps him every summer." "Francis, that's not so!" Francis
grinned at me. "You're mighty dumb sometimes, Jean Louise. Guess
you don't know any better, though." "What do you mean?" "If Uncle
Atticus lets you run around with stray dogs, that's his own business,
like Grandma says, so it ain't your fault. I guess it ain't your
fault if Uncle Atticus is a nigger-lover besides, but I'm here
to tell you it certainly does mortify the rest of the family-"
"Francis, what the hell do you mean?" "Just what I said. Grandma says
it's bad enough he lets you all run wild, but now he's turned
out a nigger-lover we'll never be able to walk the streets
of Maycomb agin. He's ruinin' the family, that's what he's doin'."
Francis rose and sprinted down the catwalk to the old
kitchen. At a safe distance he called, "He's nothin' but a
nigger-lover!" "He is not!" I roared. "I don't know what
you're talkin' about, but you better cut it out this red hot minute!"
I leaped off the steps and ran down the catwalk. It was
easy to collar Francis. I said take it back quick. Francis jerked
loose and sped into the old kitchen. "Nigger- lover!" he yelled. When
stalking one's prey, it is best to take one's time. Say nothing, and
as sure as eggs he will become curious and emerge. Francis
appeared at the kitchen door. "You still mad, Jean Louise?" he
asked tentatively. "Nothing to speak of," I said. Francis came out
on the catwalk. "You gonna take it back, Fra- ancis?" But I was too
quick on the draw. Francis shot back into the kitchen, so I retired to
the steps. I could wait patiently. I had sat there perhaps
five minutes when I heard Aunt Alexandra speak: "Where's Francis?"
"He's out yonder in the kitchen." "He knows he's not supposed to play
in there." Francis came to the door and yelled, "Grandma,
she's got me in here and she won't let me out!" "What is all this,
Jean Louise?" I looked up at Aunt Alexandra. "I haven't got him in
there, Aunty, I ain't holdin' him." "Yes she is," shouted Francis,
"she won't let me out!" "Have you all been fussing?" "Jean Louise
got mad at me, Grandma," called Francis. "Francis, come out of
there! Jean Louise, if I hear another word out of you I'll tell
your father. Did I hear you say hell a while ago?" "Nome." "I
thought I did. I'd better not hear it again." Aunt Alexandra was a
back-porch listener. The moment she was out of sight Francis came
out head up and grinning. "Don't you fool with me," he said. He
jumped into the yard and kept his distance, kicking tufts of grass,
turning around occasionally to smile at me. Jem appeared on
the porch, looked at us, and went away. Francis climbed the
mimosa tree, came down, put his hands in his pockets and strolled
around the yard. "Hah!" he said. I asked him who he thought he
was, Uncle Jack? Francis said he reckoned I got told, for me
to just sit there and leave him alone. "I ain't botherin' you," I
said. Francis looked at me carefully, concluded that I had
been sufficiently subdued, and crooned softly, "Nigger-lover..." This
time, I split my knuckle to the bone on his front teeth. My left
impaired, I sailed in with my right, but not for long. Uncle Jack
pinned my arms to my sides and said, "Stand still!" Aunt
Alexandra ministered to Francis, wiping his tears away with her
handkerchief, rubbing his hair, patting his cheek. Atticus, Jem,
and Uncle Jimmy had come to the back porch when Francis started
yelling. "Who started this?" said Uncle Jack. Francis and I pointed
at each other. "Grandma," he bawled, "she called me a whore-lady and
jumped on me!" "Is that true, Scout?" said Uncle Jack. "I reckon
so." When Uncle Jack looked down at me, his features were like Aunt
Alexandra's. "You know I told you you'd get in trouble if you used
words like that? I told you, didn't I?" "Yes sir, but-" "Well,
you're in trouble now. Stay there." I was debating whether to stand
there or run, and tarried in indecision a moment too long: I
turned to flee but Uncle Jack was quicker. I found myself suddenly
looking at a tiny ant struggling with a bread crumb in the grass.
"I'll never speak to you again as long as I live! I hate
you an' despise you an' hope you die tomorrow!" A statement
that seemed to encourage Uncle Jack, more than anything. I ran to
Atticus for comfort, but he said I had it coming and it was high time
we went home. I climbed into the back seat of the car without saying
good-bye to anyone, and at home I ran to my room and slammed
the door. Jem tried to say something nice, but I wouldn't let
him. When I surveyed the damage there were only seven or
eight red marks, and I was reflecting upon relativity when
someone knocked on the door. I asked who it was; Uncle Jack
answered. "Go away!" Uncle Jack said if I talked like that he'd lick
me again, so I was quiet. When he entered the room I retreated
to a corner and turned my back on him. "Scout," he said,
"do you still hate me?" "Go on, please sir." "Why, I didn't think
you'd hold it against me," he said. "I'm disappointed in you- you had
that coming and you know it." "Didn't either." "Honey, you can't go
around calling people-" "You ain't fair," I said, "you ain't fair."
Uncle Jack's eyebrows went up. "Not fair? How not?" "You're real
nice, Uncle Jack, an' I reckon I love you even after what
you did, but you don't understand children much." Uncle Jack
put his hands on his hips and looked down at me. "And why
do I not understand children, Miss Jean Louise? Such conduct as
yours required little understanding. It was obstreperous, disorderly
and abusive-" "You gonna give me a chance to tell you? I
don't mean to sass you, I'm just tryin' to tell you." Uncle Jack
sat down on the bed. His eyebrows came together, and he
peered up at me from under them. "Proceed," he said. I took a
deep breath. "Well, in the first place you never stopped to
gimme a chance to tell you my side of it- you just lit
right into me. When Jem an' I fuss Atticus doesn't ever just
listen to Jem's side of it, he hears mine too, an' in the second
place you told me never to use words like that except in
ex-extreme provocation, and Francis provocated me enough to knock
his block off-" Uncle Jack scratched his head. "What was your
side of it, Scout?" "Francis called Atticus somethin', an' I wasn't
about to take it off him." "What did Francis call him?" "A nigger-
lover. I ain't very sure what it means, but the way Francis said it-
tell you one thing right now, Uncle Jack, I'll be- I swear before
God if I'll sit there and let him say somethin' about
Atticus." "He called Atticus that?" "Yes sir, he did, an' a
lot more. Said Atticus'd be the ruination of the family an' he
let Jem an me run wild...." From the look on Uncle Jack's face, I
thought I was in for it again. When he said, "We'll see about this," I
knew Francis was in for it. "I've a good mind to go out there
tonight." "Please sir, just let it go. Please." "I've no intention
of letting it go," he said. "Alexandra should know about this.
The idea of- wait'll I get my hands on that boy...." "Uncle Jack,
please promise me somethin', please sir. Promise you won't tell
Atticus about this. He- he asked me one time not to let anything
I heard about him make me mad, an' I'd ruther him think we
were fightin' about somethin' else instead. Please promise..." "But
I don't like Francis getting away with something like that-"
"He didn't. You reckon you could tie up my hand? It's still
bleedin' some." "Of course I will, baby. I know of no hand I would be
more delighted to tie up. Will you come this way?" Uncle Jack
gallantly bowed me to the bathroom. While he cleaned and
bandaged my knuckles, he entertained me with a tale about a funny
nearsighted old gentleman who had a cat named Hodge, and who
counted all the cracks in the sidewalk when he went to
town. "There now," he said. "You'll have a very unladylike
scar on your wedding-ring finger." "Thank you sir. Uncle Jack?"
"Ma'am?" "What's a whore-lady?" Uncle Jack plunged into another
long tale about an old Prime Minister who sat in the House of
Commons and blew feathers in the air and tried to keep them
there when all about him men were losing their heads. I
guess he was trying to answer my question, but he made no
sense whatsoever. Later, when I was supposed to be in bed, I went
down the hall for a drink of water and heard Atticus and Uncle Jack
in the livingroom: "I shall never marry, Atticus." "Why?" "I might
have children." Atticus said, "You've a lot to learn, Jack." "I
know. Your daughter gave me my first lessons this afternoon.
She said I didn't understand children much and told me why. She
was quite right. Atticus, she told me how I should have treated
her- oh dear, I'm so sorry I romped on her." Atticus
chuckled. "She earned it, so don't feel too remorseful." I
waited, on tenterhooks, for Uncle Jack to tell Atticus my
side of it. But he didn't. He simply murmured, "Her use of
bathroom invective leaves nothing to the imagination. But she
doesn't know the meaning of half she says- she asked me what
a whore-lady was..." "Did you tell her?" "No, I told her about Lord
Melbourne." "Jack! When a child asks you something, answer
him, for goodness' sake. But don't make a production of it. Children
are children, but they can spot an evasion quicker than
adults, and evasion simply muddles 'em. No," my father mused,
"you had the right answer this afternoon, but the wrong
reasons. Bad language is a stage all children go through, and
it dies with time when they learn they're not attracting
attention with it. Hotheadedness isn't. Scout's got to learn to
keep her head and learn soon, with what's in store for her
these next few months. She's coming along, though. Jem's
getting older and she follows his example a good bit now. All
she needs is assistance sometimes." "Atticus, you've never laid a
hand on her." "I admit that. So far I've been able to get by with
threats. Jack, she minds me as well as she can. Doesn't come up to
scratch half the time, but she tries." "That's not the answer," said
Uncle Jack. "No, the answer is she knows I know she tries. That's
what makes the difference. What bothers me is that she and Jem will
have to absorb some ugly things pretty soon. I'm not worried
about Jem keeping his head, but Scout'd just as soon jump on
someone as look at him if her pride's at stake...." I waited
for Uncle Jack to break his promise. He still didn't. "Atticus, how
bad is this going to be? You haven't had too much chance to
discuss it." "It couldn't be worse, Jack. The only thing
we've got is a black man's word against the Ewells'. The
evidence boils down to you-did- I-didn't. The jury couldn't
possibly be expected to take Tom Robinson's word against the
Ewells'- are you acquainted with the Ewells?" Uncle Jack said yes,
he remembered them. He described them to Atticus, but Atticus
said, "You're a generation off. The present ones are the same,
though." "What are you going to do, then?" "Before I'm through, I
intend to jar the jury a bit- I think we'll have a
reasonable chance on appeal, though. I really can't tell at
this stage, Jack. You know, I'd hoped to get through life
without a case of this kind, but John Taylor pointed at me and
said, 'You're It.'" "Let this cup pass from you, eh?" "Right. But do
you think I could face my children otherwise? You know what's going to
happen as well as I do, Jack, and I hope and pray I can get Jem and
Scout through it without bitterness, and most of all, without
catching Maycomb's usual disease. Why reasonable people go
stark raving mad when anything involving a Negro comes up, is
something I don't pretend to understand... I just hope that
Jem and Scout come to me for their answers instead of
listening to the town. I hope they trust me enough.... Jean Louise?"
My scalp jumped. I stuck my head around the corner. "Sir?" "Go to
bed." I scurried to my room and went to bed. Uncle Jack
was a prince of a fellow not to let me down. But I never
figured out how Atticus knew I was listening, and it was not
until many years later that I realized he wanted me to hear every word
he said. 10 Atticus was feeble: he was nearly fifty. When
Jem and I asked him why he was so old, he said he got
started late, which we felt reflected upon his abilities and
manliness. He was much older the parents of our school
contemporaries, and there was nothing Jem or I could say
about him when our classmates said, "My father-" than Jem was
football crazy. Atticus was never too tired to play keep-away,
but when Jem wanted to tackle him Atticus would say, "I'm too
old for that, son." Our father didn't do anything. He worked in an
office, not in a drugstore. Atticus did not drive a dump-truck
for the county, he was not the sheriff, he did not farm,
work in a garage, or do anything that could possibly arouse
the admiration of anyone.
Besides that, he wore glasses. He was
nearly blind in his left eye, and said left eyes were the
tribal curse of the Finches. Whenever he wanted to see
something well, he turned his head and looked from his right eye.
He did not do the things our schoolmates' fathers did: he
never went hunting, he did not play poker or fish or drink or smoke.
He sat in the livingroom and read. With these attributes, however,
he would not remain as inconspicuous as we wished him to:
that year, the school buzzed with talk about him defending
Tom Robinson, none of which was complimentary. After my bout
with Cecil Jacobs when I committed myself to a policy of
cowardice, word got around that Scout Finch wouldn't fight any
more, her daddy wouldn't let her. This was not entirely
correct: I wouldn't fight publicly for Atticus, but the family was
private ground. I would fight anyone from a third cousin
upwards tooth and nail. Francis Hancock, for example, knew that. When
he gave us our air-rifles Atticus wouldn't teach us to shoot. Uncle
Jack instructed us in the rudiments thereof; he said Atticus wasn't
interested in guns. Atticus said to Jem one day, "I'd rather
you shot at tin cans in the back yard, but I know you'll
go after birds. Shoot all the bluejays you want, if you can
hit 'em, but remember it's a sin to kill a mockingbird."
That was the only time I ever heard Atticus say it was a sin to do
something, and I asked Miss Maudie about it. "Your father's right,"
she said. "Mockingbirds don't do one thing but make music for
us to enjoy. They don't eat up people's gardens, don't nest in
corncribs, they don't do one thing but sing their hearts out for us.
That's why it's a sin to kill a mockingbird." "Miss Maudie, this is
an old neighborhood, ain't it?" "Been here longer than the town."
"Nome, I mean the folks on our street are all old. Jem and me's the
only children around here. Mrs. Dubose is close on to a hundred and
Miss Rachel's old and so are you and Atticus." "I don't call
fifty very old," said Miss Maudie tartly. "Not being wheeled
around yet, am I? Neither's your father. But I must say Providence was
kind enough to burn down that old mausoleum of mine, I'm too old to
keep it up- maybe you're right, Jean Louise, this is a settled
neighborhood. You've never been around young folks much, have you?"
"Yessum, at school." "I mean young grown-ups. You're lucky, you know.
You and Jem have the benefit of your father's age. If your father was
thirty you'd find life quite different." "I sure would. Atticus can't
do anything...." "You'd be surprised," said Miss Maudie.
"There's life in him yet." "What can he do?" "Well, he can
make somebody's will so airtight can't anybody meddle with it."
"Shoot..." "Well, did you know he's the best checker-player
in this town? Why, down at the Landing when we were coming up,
Atticus Finch could beat everybody on both sides of the
river." "Good Lord, Miss Maudie, Jem and me beat him all
the time." "It's about time you found out it's because he lets you.
Did you know he can play a Jew's Harp?" This modest accomplishment
served to make me even more ashamed of him. "Well..." she said.
"Well, what, Miss Maudie?" "Well nothing. Nothing- it seems with
all that you'd be proud of him. Can't everybody play a Jew's Harp.
Now keep out of the way of the carpenters. You'd better go home,
I'll be in my azaleas and can't watch you. Plank might hit you." I
went to the back yard and found Jem plugging away at a tin can, which
seemed stupid with all the bluejays around. I returned to the front
yard and busied myself for two hours erecting a complicated
breastworks at the side of the porch, consisting of a tire, an
orange crate, the laundry hamper, the porch chairs, and a small
U.S. flag Jem gave me from a popcorn box. When Atticus came home
to dinner he found me crouched down aiming across the street.
"What are you shooting at?" "Miss Maudie's rear end." Atticus
turned and saw my generous target bending over her bushes. He
pushed his hat to the back of his head and crossed the street.
"Maudie," he called, "I thought I'd better warn you. You're in
considerable peril." Miss Maudie straightened up and looked
toward me. She said, "Atticus, you are a devil from hell." When
Atticus returned he told me to break camp. "Don't you ever
let me catch you pointing that gun at anybody again," he said.
I wished my father was a devil from hell. I sounded out
Calpurnia on the subject. "Mr. Finch? Why, he can do lots of things."
"Like what?" I asked. Calpurnia scratched her head. "Well, I
don't rightly know," she said. Jem underlined it when he asked
Atticus if he was going out for the Methodists and Atticus said he'd
break his neck if he did, he was just too old for that sort
of thing. The Methodists were trying to pay off their church
mortgage, and had challenged the Baptists to a game of touch football.
Everybody in town's father was playing, it seemed, except
Atticus. Jem said he didn't even want to go, but he was
unable to resist football in any form, and he stood gloomily on the
sidelines with Atticus and me watching Cecil Jacobs's father make
touchdowns for the Baptists. One Saturday Jem and I decided to
go exploring with our air-rifles to see if we could find a
rabbit or a squirrel. We had gone about five hundred yards beyond
the Radley Place when I noticed Jem squinting at something down the
street. He had turned his head to one side and was looking out of the
corners of his eyes. "Whatcha looking at?" "That old dog down
yonder," he said. "That's old Tim Johnson, ain't it?" "Yeah." Tim
Johnson was the property of Mr. Harry Johnson who drove the
Mobile bus and lived on the southern edge of town. Tim was a
liver-colored bird dog, the pet of Maycomb. "What's he doing?" "I
don't know, Scout. We better go home." "Aw Jem, it's February." "I
don't care, I'm gonna tell Cal." We raced home and ran to the
kitchen. "Cal," said Jem, "can you come down the sidewalk a
minute?" "What for, Jem? I can't come down the sidewalk every time
you want me." "There's somethin' wrong with an old dog down yonder."
Calpurnia sighed. "I can't wrap up any dog's foot now.
There's some gauze in the bathroom, go get it and do it
yourself." Jem shook his head. "He's sick, Cal. Something's
wrong with him." "What's he doin', trying to catch his tail?" "No,
he's doin' like this." Jem gulped like a goldfish, hunched his
shoulders and twitched his torso. "He's goin' like that, only
not like he means to." "Are you telling me a story, Jem
Finch?" Calpurnia's voice hardened. "No Cal, I swear I'm not."
"Was he runnin'?" "No, he's just moseyin' along, so slow you
can't hardly tell it. He's comin' this way." Calpurnia rinsed her
hands and followed Jem into the yard. "I don't see any dog," she said.
She followed us beyond the Radley Place and looked where Jem pointed.
Tim Johnson was not much more than a speck in the distance, but he
was closer to us. He walked erratically, as if his right legs
were shorter than his left legs. He reminded me of a car stuck in a
sandbed. "He's gone lopsided," said Jem. Calpurnia stared, then
grabbed us by the shoulders and ran us home. She shut the wood
door behind us, went to the telephone and shouted, "Gimme Mr.
Finch's office!" "Mr. Finch!" she shouted. "This is Cal. I swear to
God there's a mad dog down the street a piece- he's comin'
this way, yes sir, he's- Mr. Finch, I declare he is- old Tim Johnson,
yes sir... yessir... yes-" She hung up and shook her head when we
tried to ask her what Atticus had said. She rattled the
telephone hook and said, "Miss Eula May- now ma'am, I'm through
talkin' to Mr. Finch, please don't connect me no more- listen,
Miss Eula May, can you call Miss Rachel and Miss Stephanie Crawford
and whoever's got a phone on this street and tell 'em a mad dog's
comin'? Please ma'am!" Calpurnia listened. "I know it's February,
Miss Eula May, but I know a mad dog when I see one. Please ma'am
hurry!" Calpurnia asked Jem, "Radleys got a phone?" Jem looked in
the book and said no. "They won't come out anyway, Cal." "I don't
care, I'm gonna tell 'em." She ran to the front porch, Jem and
I at her heels. "You stay in that house!" she yelled. received
by the Calpurnia's message had been neighborhood. Every wood
door within our range of vision was closed tight. We saw no
trace of Tim Johnson. We watched Calpurnia running toward the
Radley Place, holding her skirt and apron above her knees. She
went up to the front steps and banged on the door. She got no
answer, and she shouted, "Mr. Nathan, Mr. Arthur, mad dog's
comin'! Mad dog's comin'!" "She's supposed to go around in back," I
said. Jem shook his head. "Don't make any difference now,"
he said. in vain. No one Calpurnia pounded on acknowledged her
warning; no one seemed to have heard it. the door As
Calpurnia sprinted to the back porch a black Ford swung into the
driveway. Atticus and Mr. Heck Tate got out. Mr. Heck Tate was
the sheriff of Maycomb County. He was as tall as Atticus,
but thinner. He was long-nosed, wore boots with shiny metal eye-
holes, boot pants and a lumber jacket. His belt had a row of bullets
sticking in it. He carried a heavy rifle. When he and Atticus reached
the porch, Jem opened the door. "Stay inside, son," said Atticus.
"Where is he, Cal?" "He oughta be here by now," said Calpurnia,
pointing down the street. "Not runnin', is he?" asked Mr. Tate. "Naw
sir, he's in the twitchin' stage, Mr. Heck." "Should we go after
him, Heck?" asked Atticus. "We better wait, Mr. Finch. They usually
go in a straight line, but you never can tell. He might follow the
curve- hope he does or he'll go straight in the Radley back yard.
Let's wait a minute." "Don't think he'll get in the Radley
yard," said Atticus. "Fence'll stop him. He'll probably follow the
road...." I thought mad dogs foamed at the mouth, galloped, leaped
and lunged at throats, and I thought they did it in August. Had Tim
Johnson behaved thus, I would have been less frightened.
Nothing is more deadly than a deserted, waiting street. The trees were
still, the mockingbirds were silent, the carpenters at Miss Maudie's
house had vanished. I heard Mr. Tate sniff, then blow his nose. I saw
him shift his gun to the crook of his arm. I saw Miss Stephanie
Crawford's face framed in the glass window of her front door. Miss
Maudie appeared and stood beside her. Atticus put his foot on the rung
of a chair and rubbed his hand slowly down the side of his thigh.
"There he is," he said softly. Tim Johnson came into sight,
walking dazedly in the inner rim of the curve parallel to the
Radley house. "Look at him," whispered Jem. "Mr. Heck said
they walked in a straight line. He can't even stay in the road." "He
looks more sick than anything," I said. "Let anything get in front of
him and he'll come straight at it." Mr. Tate put his hand to
his forehead and leaned forward. "He's got it all right, Mr.
Finch." Tim Johnson was advancing at a snail's pace, but he
was not playing or sniffing at foliage: he seemed dedicated
to one course and motivated by an invisible force that was
inching him toward us. We could see him shiver like a horse shedding
flies; his jaw opened and shut; he was alist, but he was
being pulled gradually toward us. "He's lookin' for a place to die,"
said Jem. Mr. Tate turned around. "He's far from dead, Jem, he hasn't
got started yet." Tim Johnson reached the side street that ran in
front of the Radley Place, and what remained of his poor mind
made him pause and seem to consider which road he would take. He made
a few hesitant steps and stopped in front of the Radley
gate; then he tried to turn around, but was having
difficulty. Atticus said, "He's within range, Heck. You better
get him before he goes down the side street- Lord knows
who's around the corner. Go inside, Cal." Calpurnia opened the
screen door, latched it behind her, then unlatched it and held
onto the hook. She tried to block Jem and me with her body, but we
looked out from beneath her arms. "Take him, Mr. Finch." Mr.
Tate handed the rifle to Atticus; Jem and I nearly fainted.
"Don't waste time, Heck," said Atticus. "Go on." "Mr. Finch, this is
a one-shot job." Atticus shook his head vehemently: "Don't just
stand there, Heck! He won't wait all day for you-" "For God's sake,
Mr. Finch, look where he is! Miss and you'll go straight into the
Radley house! I can't shoot that well and you know it!" "I
haven't shot a gun in thirty years-" Mr. Tate almost threw the
rifle at Atticus. "I'd feel mighty comfortable if you did now,"
he said. In a fog, Jem and I watched our father take the
gun and walk out into the middle of the street. He walked
quickly, but I thought he moved like an underwater swimmer: time had
slowed to a nauseating crawl. When Atticus raised his glasses
Calpurnia murmured, "Sweet Jesus help him," and put her hands to her
cheeks. Atticus pushed his glasses to his forehead; they
slipped down, and he dropped them in the street. In the
silence, I heard them crack. Atticus rubbed his eyes and chin; we saw
him blink hard. In front of the Radley gate, Tim Johnson had made up
what was left of his mind. He had finally turned himself
around, to pursue his original course up our street. He made
two steps forward, then stopped and raised his head. We saw
his body go rigid. With movements so swift they seemed
simultaneous, Atticus's hand yanked a ball-tipped lever as he brought
the gun to his shoulder. The rifle cracked. Tim Johnson leaped,
flopped over and crumpled on the sidewalk in a brown-and-white
heap. He didn't know what hit him. Mr. Tate jumped off the porch
and ran to the Radley Place. He stopped in front of the dog,
squatted, turned around and tapped his finger on his forehead
above his left eye. "You were a little to the right, Mr. Finch,"
he called. "Always was," answered Atticus. "If I had my
'druthers I'd take a shotgun." He stooped and picked up his
glasses, ground the broken lenses to powder under his heel,
and went to Mr. Tate and stood looking down at Tim Johnson.
Doors opened one by one, and the neighborhood slowly came
alive. Miss Maudie walked down the steps with Miss Stephanie
Crawford. Jem was paralyzed. I pinched him to get him
moving, but when Atticus saw us coming he called, "Stay where
you are." When Mr. Tate and Atticus returned to the yard,
Mr. Tate was smiling. "I'll have Zeebo collect him," he said.
"You haven't forgot much, Mr. Finch. They say it never leaves
you." Atticus was silent. "Atticus?" said Jem. "Yes?" "Nothin'."
"I saw that, One-Shot Finch!" Atticus wheeled around and faced Miss
Maudie. They looked at one another without saying anything, and
Atticus got into the sheriff's car. "Come here," he said to Jem.
"Don't you go near that dog, you understand? Don't go near him, he's
just as dangerous dead as alive." "Yes sir," said Jem. "Atticus-"
"What, son?" "Nothing." "What's the matter with you, boy,
can't you talk?" said Mr. Tate, grinning at Jem. "Didn't you know
your daddy's-" "Hush, Heck," said Atticus, "let's go back to town."
When they drove away, Jem and I went to Miss Stephanie's front steps.
We sat waiting for Zeebo to arrive in the garbage truck. Jem
sat in numb confusion, and Miss Stephanie said, "Uh, uh, uh,
who'da thought of a mad dog in February? Maybe he wadn't
mad, maybe he was just crazy. I'd hate to see Harry
Johnson's face when he gets in from the Mobile run and finds
Atticus Finch's shot his dog. Bet he was just full of fleas from
somewhere-" Miss Maudie said Miss Stephanie'd be singing a
different tune if Tim Johnson was still coming up the street,
that they'd find out soon enough, they'd send his head to
Montgomery. Jem became vaguely articulate: "'d you see him,
Scout? 'd you see him just standin' there?... 'n' all of a sudden he
just relaxed all over, an' it looked like that gun was a
part of him... an' he did it so quick, like... I hafta
aim for ten minutes 'fore I can hit somethin'...." Miss Maudie
grinned wickedly. "Well now, Miss Jean Louise," she said, "still
think your father can't do anything? Still ashamed of him?"
"Nome," I said meekly. "Forgot to tell you the other day that
besides playing the Jew's Harp, Atticus Finch was the deadest shot
in Maycomb County in his time." "Dead shot..." echoed Jem. "That's
what I said, Jem Finch. Guess you'll change your tune now. The
very idea, didn't you know his nickname was Ol' One-Shot when he was a
boy? Why, down at the Landing when he was coming up, if he shot
fifteen times and hit fourteen doves he'd complain about wasting
ammunition." "He never said anything about that," Jem muttered.
"Never said anything about it, did he?" "No ma'am." "Wonder why he
never goes huntin' now," I said. "Maybe I can tell you," said
Miss Maudie. "If your father's anything, he's civilized in his
heart. Marksmanship's a gift of God, a talent- oh, you have to
practice to make it perfect, but shootin's different from
playing the piano or the like. I think maybe he put his gun down
when he realized that God had given him an unfair advantage over most
living things. I guess he decided he wouldn't shoot till he had to,
and he had to today." "Looks like he'd be proud of it," I said.
"People in their right minds never take pride in their
talents," said Miss Maudie. We saw Zeebo drive up. He took a
pitchfork from the back of the garbage truck and gingerly
lifted Tim Johnson. He pitched the dog onto the truck, then poured
something from a gallon jug on and around the spot where Tim
fell. "Don't yawl come over here for a while," he called. When we
went home I told Jem we'd really have something to talk about at
school on Monday. Jem turned on me. "Don't say anything about it,
Scout," he said. "What? I certainly am. Ain't everybody's daddy the
deadest shot in Maycomb County." Jem said, "I reckon if he'd wanted
us to know it, he'da told us. If he was proud of it, he'da told us."
"Maybe it just slipped his mind," I said. "Naw, Scout, it's
something you wouldn't understand. Atticus is real old, but I
wouldn't care if he couldn't do anything- I wouldn't care if he
couldn't do a blessed thing." Jem picked up a rock and threw
it jubilantly at the carhouse. Running after it, he called
back: "Atticus is a gentleman, just like me!" 11 When we were
small, Jem and I confined our activities to the southern
neighborhood, but when I was well into the second grade at
school and tormenting Boo Radley became passe, the business section of
Maycomb drew us frequently up the street past the real property of
Mrs. Henry Lafayette Dubose. It was impossible to go to town
without passing her house unless we wished to walk a mile out of the
way. Previous minor encounters with her left me with no
desire for more, but Jem said I had to grow up some time. Mrs. Dubose
lived alone except for a Negro girl in constant attendance, two doors
up the street from us in a house with steep front steps and a dog-trot
hall. She was very old; she spent most of each day in bed and
the rest of it in a wheelchair. It was rumored that she
kept a CSA pistol concealed among her numerous shawls and wraps.
Jem and I hated her. If she was on the porch when we
passed, we would be raked by her wrathful gaze, subjected to ruthless
interrogation regarding our behavior, and given a melancholy
prediction on what we would amount to when we grew up, which
was always nothing. We had long ago given up the idea of walking
past her house on the opposite side of the street; that only made her
raise her voice and let the whole neighborhood in on it. We could do
nothing to please her. If I said as sunnily as I could, "Hey, Mrs.
Dubose," I would receive for an answer, "Don't you say hey
to me, you ugly girl! You say good afternoon, Mrs. Dubose!"
She was vicious. Once she heard Jem refer to our father as "Atticus"
and her reaction was apoplectic. Besides being the sassiest, most
disrespectful mutts who ever passed her way, we were told that it
was quite a pity our father had not remarried after our mother's
death. A lovelier lady than our mother never lived, she said, and
it was heartbreaking the way Atticus Finch let her children
run wild. I did not remember our mother, but Jem did- he would
tell me about her sometimes- and he went livid when Mrs. Dubose shot
us this message. Jem, having survived Boo Radley, a mad dog
and other terrors, had concluded that it was cowardly to stop at Miss
Rachel's front steps and wait, and had decreed that we must
run as far as the post office corner each evening to meet
Atticus coming from work. Countless evenings Atticus would find Jem
furious at something Mrs. Dubose had said when we went by.
"Easy does it, son," Atticus would say. "She's an old lady
and she's ill. You just hold your head high and be a
gentleman. Whatever she says to you, it's your job not to
let her make you mad." Jem would say she must not be very sick, she
hollered so. When the three of us came to her house, Atticus
would sweep off his hat, wave gallantly to her and say,
"Good evening, Mrs. Dubose! You look like a picture this evening." I
never heard Atticus say like a picture of what. He would
tell her the courthouse news, and would say he hoped with all his
heart she'd have a good day tomorrow. He would return his hat
to his head, swing me to his shoulders in her very presence, and we
would go home in the twilight. It was times like these when I thought
my father, who hated guns and had never been to any wars, was the
bravest man who ever lived. The day after Jem's twelfth birthday his
money was burning up his pockets, so we headed for town in
the early afternoon. Jem thought he had enough to buy a
miniature steam engine for himself and a twirling baton for me. I
had long had my eye on that baton: it was at V. J.
Elmore's, it was bedecked with sequins and tinsel, it cost
seventeen cents. It was then my burning ambition to grow up and
twirl with the Maycomb County High School band. Having
developed my talent to where I could throw up a stick and
almost catch it coming down, I had caused Calpurnia to deny me
entrance to the house every time she saw me with a stick in my hand. I
felt that I could overcome this defect with a real baton, and I
thought it generous of Jem to buy one for me. Mrs. Dubose was
stationed on her porch when we went by. "Where are you two going at
this time of day?" she shouted. "Playing hooky, I suppose. I'll just
call up the principal and tell him!" She put her hands on the wheels
of her chair and executed a perfect right face. "Aw, it's Saturday,
Mrs. Dubose," said Jem. "Makes no difference if it's Saturday," she
said obscurely. "I wonder if your father knows where you are?" "Mrs.
Dubose, we've been goin' to town by ourselves since we were
this high." Jem placed his hand palm down about two feet above
the sidewalk. "Don't you lie to me!" she yelled. "Jeremy
Finch, Maudie Atkinson told me you broke down her scuppernong
arbor this morning. She's going to tell your father and then you'll
wish you never saw the light of day! If you aren't sent to
the reform school before next week, my name's not Dubose!"
Jem, who hadn't been near Miss Maudie's scuppernong arbor
since last summer, and who knew Miss Maudie wouldn't tell
Atticus if he had, issued a general denial. v "Don't you contradict
me!" Mrs. Dubose bawled. "And you-" she pointed an arthritic finger at
me- "what are you doing in those overalls? You should be in a
dress and camisole, young lady! You'll grow up waiting on
tables if somebody doesn't change your ways- a Finch waiting on
tables at the O.K. Cafe- hah!" I was terrified. The O.K. Cafe was a
dim organization on the north side of the square. I grabbed
Jem's hand but he shook me loose. "Come on, Scout," he
whispered. "Don't pay any attention to her, just hold your head
high and be a gentleman." But Mrs. Dubose held us: "Not only a
Finch waiting on tables but one in the courthouse lawing for
niggers!" Jem stiffened. Mrs. Dubose's shot had gone home and
she knew it: "Yes indeed, what has this world come to when a Finch
goes against his raising? I'll tell you!" She put her hand
to her mouth. When she drew it away, it trailed a long
silver thread of saliva. "Your father's no better than the
niggers and trash he works for!" Jem was scarlet. I pulled at
his sleeve, and we were followed up the sidewalk by a philippic on
our family's moral degeneration, the major premise of which was that
half the Finches were in the asylum anyway, but if our mother were
living we would not have come to such a state. I wasn't sure what Jem
resented most, but I took umbrage at Mrs. Dubose's assessment of
the family's mental hygiene. I had become almost accustomed to
hearing insults aimed at Atticus. But this was the first one
coming from an adult. Except for her remarks about Atticus,
Mrs. Dubose's attack was only routine. There was a hint of
summer in the air- in the shadows it was cool, but the sun was warm,
which meant good times coming: no school and Dill. Jem bought his
steam engine and we went by Elmore's for my baton. Jem took no
pleasure in his acquisition; he jammed it in his pocket and
walked silently beside me toward home. On the way home I nearly hit
Mr. Link Deas, who said, "Look out now, Scout!" when I missed a toss,
and when we approached Mrs. Dubose's house my baton was grimy
from having picked it up out of the dirt so many times. She
was not on the porch. In later years, I sometimes wondered
exactly what made Jem do it, what made him break the bonds of "You
just be a gentleman, son," and the phase of self-conscious
rectitude he had recently entered. Jem had probably stood as
much guff about Atticus lawing for niggers as had I, and I took it for
granted that he kept his temper- he had a naturally tranquil
disposition and a slow fuse. At the time, however, I thought the only
explanation for what he did was that for a few minutes he simply went
mad. What Jem did was something I'd do as a matter of
course had I not been under Atticus's interdict, which I
assumed included not fighting horrible old ladies. We had just
come to her gate when Jem snatched my baton and ran flailing
wildly up the steps into Mrs. Dubose's front yard, forgetting
everything Atticus had said, forgetting that she packed a
pistol under her shawls, forgetting that if Mrs. Dubose
missed, her girl Jessie probably wouldn't. He did not begin to calm
down until he had cut the tops off every camellia bush Mrs. Dubose
owned, until the ground was littered with green buds and leaves. He
bent my baton against his knee, snapped it in two and threw it down.
By that time I was shrieking. Jem yanked my hair, said he
didn't care, he'd do it again if he got a chance, and if
I didn't shut up he'd pull every hair out of my head. I didn't
shut up and he kicked me. I lost my balance and fell on my face. Jem
picked me up roughly but looked like he was sorry. There was
nothing to say. We did not choose to meet Atticus coming home
that evening. We skulked around the kitchen until Calpurnia
threw us out. By some voo-doo system Calpurnia seemed to know all
about it. She was a less than satisfactory source of palliation, but
she did give Jem a hot biscuit-and-butter which he tore in
half and shared with me. It tasted like cotton. We went to the
livingroom. I picked up a football magazine, found a picture of Dixie
Howell, showed it to Jem and said, "This looks like you." That was the
nicest thing I could think to say to him, but it was no help.
He sat by the windows, hunched down in a rocking chair, scowling,
waiting. Daylight faded. Two geological ages later, we heard
the soles of Atticus's shoes scrape the front steps. The
screen door slammed, there was a pause- Atticus was at the hat
rack in the hall- and we heard him call, "Jem!" His voice was like
the winter wind. Atticus switched on the ceiling light in the
livingroom and found us there, frozen still. He carried my
baton in one hand; its filthy yellow tassel trailed on the rug. He
held out his other hand; it contained fat camellia buds. "Jem," he
said, "are you responsible for this?" "Yes sir." "Why'd you do it?"
Jem said softly, "She said you lawed for niggers and trash." "You did
this because she said that?" Jem's lips moved, but his, "Yes sir,"
was inaudible. "Son, I have no doubt that you've been annoyed
by your contemporaries about me lawing for niggers, as you
say, but to do something like this to a sick old lady is
inexcusable. I strongly advise you to go down and have a
talk with Mrs. Dubose," said Atticus. "Come straight home
afterward." Jem did not move. "Go on, I said." I followed Jem
out of the livingroom. "Come back here," Atticus said to me. I
came back. Atticus picked up the Mobile Press and sat down
in the rocking chair Jem had vacated. For the life of me, I did not
understand how he could sit there in cold blood and read a newspaper
when his only son stood an excellent chance of being murdered
with a Confederate Army relic. Of course Jem antagonized me
sometimes until I could kill him, but when it came down to
it he was all I had. Atticus did not seem to realize this, or
if he did he didn't care. I hated him for that, but when you
are in trouble you become easily tired: soon I was hiding in
his lap and his arms were around me. "You're mighty big to be
rocked," he said. "You don't care what happens to him," I said. "You
just send him on to get shot at when all he was doin' was standin' up
for you." Atticus pushed my head under his chin. "It's not
time to worry yet," he said. "I never thought Jem'd be the
one to lose his head over this- thought I'd have more trouble with
you." I said I didn't see why we had to keep our heads
anyway, that nobody I knew at school had to keep his head
about anything. "Scout," said Atticus, "when summer comes
you'll have to keep your head about far worse things... it's not
fair for you and Jem, I know that, but sometimes we have to make the
best of things, and the way we conduct ourselves when the chips are
down- well, all I can say is, when you and Jem are grown, maybe
you'll look back on this with some compassion and some
feeling that I didn't let you down. This case, Tom Robinson's
case, is something that goes to the essence of a man's
conscience- Scout, I couldn't go to church and worship God if I
didn't try to help that man." "Atticus, you must be wrong...."
"How's that?" "Well, most folks seem to think they're right
and you're wrong...." "They're certainly entitled to think that, and
they're entitled to full respect for their opinions," said Atticus,
"but before I can live with other folks I've got to live with myself.
The one thing that doesn't abide by majority rule is a
person's conscience." When Jem returned, he found me still in
Atticus's lap, "Well, son?" said Atticus. He set me on my
feet, and I made a secret reconnaissance of Jem. He seemed
to be all in one piece, but he had a queer look on his face.
Perhaps she had given him a dose of calomel. "I cleaned it up for her
and said I was sorry, but I ain't, and that I'd work on 'em ever
Saturday and try to make 'em grow back out." "There was no point
in saying you were sorry if you aren't," said Atticus. "Jem, she's
old and ill. You can't hold her responsible for what she
says and does. Of course, I'd rather she'd have said it to me
than to either of you, but we can't always have our 'druthers." Jem
seemed fascinated by a rose in the carpet. "Atticus," he said, "she
wants me to read to her." "Read to her?" "Yes sir. She wants me to
come every afternoon after school and Saturdays and read to her
out loud for two hours. Atticus, do I have to?" "Certainly."
"But she wants me to do it for a month." "Then you'll do it for a
month." Jem planted his big toe delicately in the center of
the rose and pressed it in. Finally he said, "Atticus, it's
all right on the sidewalk but inside it's- it's all dark and creepy.
There's shadows and things on the ceiling...." Atticus smiled
grimly. "That should appeal to your imagination. Just pretend
you're inside the Radley house." The following Monday afternoon
Jem and I climbed the steep front steps to Mrs. Dubose's house and
padded down the open hallway. Jem, armed with Ivanhoe and full
of superior knowledge, knocked at the second door on the left. "Mrs.
Dubose?" he called. Jessie opened the wood door and unlatched the
screen door. "Is that you, Jem Finch?" she said. "You got your sister
with you. I don't know-" "Let 'em both in, Jessie," said Mrs. Dubose.
Jessie admitted us and went off to the kitchen. An oppressive odor
met us when we crossed the threshold, an odor I had met many
times in rain-rotted gray houses lamps, water dippers, and
where there are coal-oil unbleached domestic sheets. It
always made me afraid, expectant, watchful. In the corner of the
room was a brass bed, and in the bed was Mrs. Dubose. I wondered if
Jem's activities had put her there, and for a moment I felt sorry for
her. She was lying under a pile of quilts and looked almost friendly.
There was a marble-topped washstand by her bed; on it were a
glass with a teaspoon in it, a red ear syringe, a box of absorbent
cotton, and a steel alarm clock standing on three tiny legs.
"So you brought that dirty little sister of yours, did you?"
was her greeting. Jem said quietly, "My sister ain't dirty and
I ain't scared of you," although I noticed his knees shaking. I
was expecting a tirade, but all she said was, "You may
commence reading, Jeremy." Jem sat down in a cane-bottom chair and
opened Ivanhoe. I pulled up another one and sat beside him. "Come
closer," said Mrs. Dubose. "Come to the side of the bed." We
moved our chairs forward. This was the nearest I had ever
been to her, and the thing I wanted most to do was move my
chair back again. She was horrible. Her face was the color of
a dirty pillowcase, and the corners of her mouth glistened with wet,
which inched like a glacier down the deep grooves enclosing her chin.
Old-age liver spots dotted her cheeks, and her pale eyes had
black pinpoint pupils. Her hands were knobby, and the
cuticles were grown up over her fingernails. Her bottom plate
was not in, and her upper lip protruded; from time to time she
would draw her nether lip to her upper plate and carry her chin with
it. This made the wet move faster. I didn't look any more than I had
to. Jem reopened Ivanhoe and began reading. I tried to keep up with
him, but he read too fast. When Jem came to a word he didn't
know, he skipped it, but Mrs. Dubose would catch him and make him
spell it out. Jem read for perhaps twenty minutes, during
which time I looked at the soot-stained mantelpiece, out the window,
anywhere to keep from looking at her. As he read along, I
noticed that Mrs. Dubose's corrections grew fewer and farther
between, that Jem had even left one sentence dangling in mid-
air. She was not listening. I looked toward the bed. Something had
happened to her. She lay on her back, with the quilts up to her chin.
Only her head and shoulders were visible. Her head moved slowly from
side to side. From time to time she would open her mouth wide, and I
could see her tongue undulate faintly. Cords of saliva would collect
on her lips; she would draw them in, then open her mouth
again. Her mouth seemed to have a private existence of its own. It
worked separate and apart from the rest of her, out and in, like a
clam hole at low tide. Occasionally it would say, "Pt," like some
viscous substance coming to a boil. I pulled Jem's sleeve. He
looked at me, then at the bed. Her head made its regular
sweep toward us, and Jem said, "Mrs. Dubose, are you all
right?" She did not hear him. The alarm clock went off and scared us
stiff. A minute later, nerves still tingling, Jem and I were on the
sidewalk headed for home. We did not run away, Jessie sent
us: before the clock wound down she was in the room pushing
Jem and me out of it. "Shoo," she said, "you all go home." Jem
hesitated at the door. "It's time for her medicine," Jessie said. As
the door swung shut behind us I saw Jessie walking quickly
toward Mrs. Dubose's bed. It was only three forty-five when we got
home, so Jem and I drop-kicked in the back yard until it was
time to meet Atticus. Atticus had two yellow pencils for me and a
football magazine for Jem, which I suppose was a silent reward for our
first day's session with Mrs. Dubose. Jem told him what happened.
"Did she frighten you?" asked Atticus. "No sir," said Jem, "but
she's so nasty. She has fits or somethin'. She spits a lot."
"She can't help that. When people are sick they don't look
nice sometimes." "She scared me," I said. Atticus looked at me over
his glasses. "You don't have to go with Jem, you know." The next
afternoon at Mrs. Dubose's was the same as the first, and so
was the next, until gradually a pattern emerged: everything
would begin normally- that is, Mrs. Dubose would hound Jem
for a while on her favorite subjects, her camellias and our
father's nigger-loving propensities; she would grow increasingly
silent, then go away from us. The alarm clock would ring,
Jessie would shoo us out, and the rest of the day was ours.
"Atticus," I said one evening, "what exactly is a nigger-
lover?" Atticus's face was grave. "Has somebody been calling
you that?" "No sir, Mrs. Dubose calls you that. She warms up
every afternoon calling you that. Francis called me that last
Christmas, that's where I first heard it." "Is that the reason you
jumped on him?" asked Atticus. "Yes sir..." "Then why are you asking
me what it means?" I tried to explain to Atticus that it
wasn't so much what Francis said that had infuriated me as the way
he had said it. "It was like he'd said snot-nose or somethin'."
"Scout," said Atticus, "nigger-lover is just one of those
terms that don't mean anything- like snot-nose. It's hard to explain-
ignorant, trashy people use it when they think somebody's
favoring Negroes over and above themselves. It's slipped into
usage with some people like ourselves, when they want a common,
ugly term to label somebody." "You aren't really a nigger-lover,
then, are you?" "I certainly am. I do my best to love everybody...
I'm hard put, sometimes- baby, it's never an insult to be called what
somebody thinks is a bad name. It just shows you how poor that person
is, it doesn't hurt you. So don't let Mrs. Dubose get you down. She
has enough troubles of her own." One afternoon a month later Jem
was ploughing his way through Sir Walter Scout, as Jem called
him, and Mrs. Dubose was correcting him at every turn, when there
was a knock on the door. "Come in!" she screamed. Atticus came in. He
went to the bed and took Mrs. Dubose's hand. "I was coming from
the office and didn't see the children," he said. "I thought they
might still be here." Mrs. Dubose smiled at him. For the life
of me I could not figure out how she could bring herself to speak
to him when she seemed to hate him so. "Do you know what
time it is, Atticus?" she said. "Exactly fourteen minutes past five.
The alarm clock's set for five-thirty. I want you to know that." It
suddenly came to me that each day we had been staying a little
longer at Mrs. Dubose's, that the alarm clock went off a few
minutes later every day, and that she was well into one of her fits
by the time it sounded. Today she had antagonized Jem for
nearly two hours with no intention of having a fit, and I
felt hopelessly trapped. The alarm clock was the signal for
our release; if one day it did not ring, what would we do? "I
have a feeling that Jem's reading days are numbered," said
Atticus. "Only a week longer, I think," she said, "just to
make sure..." Jem rose. "But-" Atticus put out his hand and
Jem was silent. On the way home, Jem said he had to do it
just for a month and the month was up and it wasn't fair. "Just
one more week, son," said Atticus. "No," said Jem. "Yes," said
Atticus. The following week found us back at Mrs. Dubose's.
The alarm clock had ceased sounding, but Mrs. Dubose would
release us with, "That'll do," so late in the afternoon Atticus would
be home reading the paper when we returned. Although her fits
had passed off, she was in every other way her old self: when Sir
Walter Scott became involved in lengthy descriptions of moats
and castles, Mrs. Dubose would become bored and pick on us:
"Jeremy Finch, I told you you'd live to regret tearing up my
camellias. You regret it now, don't you?" Jem would say he certainly
did. "Thought you could kill my Snow-on-the-Mountain, did you? Well,
Jessie says the top's growing back out. Next time you'll know
how to do it right, won't you? You'll pull it up by the roots, won't
you?" Jem would say he certainly would. "Don't you mutter at me,
boy! You hold up your head and say yes ma'am. Don't guess
you feel like holding it up, though, with your father what he
is." Jem's chin would come up, and he would gaze at Mrs.
Dubose with a face devoid of resentment. Through the weeks
he had cultivated an expression of polite and detached
interest, which he would present to her in answer to her most blood-
curdling inventions. At last the day came. When Mrs. Dubose said,
"That'll do," one afternoon, she added, "And that's all. Good-
day to you." It was over. We bounded down the sidewalk on a
spree of sheer relief, leaping and howling. That spring was a good
one: the days grew longer and gave us more playing time. Jem's mind
was occupied mostly with the vital statistics of every college
football player in the nation. Every night Atticus would read
us the sports pages of the newspapers. Alabama might go to
the Rose Bowl again this year, judging from its prospects,
not one of whose names we could pronounce. Atticus was in
the middle of Windy Seaton's column one evening when the
telephone rang. He answered it, then went to the hat rack in
the hall. "I'm going down to Mrs. Dubose's for a while," he said. "I
won't be long." But Atticus stayed away until long past my
bedtime. When he returned he was carrying a candy box. Atticus sat
down in the livingroom and put the box on the floor beside
his chair. "What'd she want?" asked Jem. We had not seen Mrs.
Dubose for over a month. She was never on the porch any more
when we passed. "She's dead, son," said Atticus. "She died a
few minutes ago." "Oh," said Jem. "Well." "Well is right," said
Atticus. "She's not suffering any more. She was sick for a long
time. Son, didn't you know what her fits were?" Jem shook his head.
"Mrs. Dubose was a morphine addict," said Atticus. "She took
it as a pain-killer for years. The doctor put her on it.
She'd have spent the rest of her life on it and died without so much
agony, but she was too contrary-" "Sir?" said Jem. Atticus said,
"Just before your escapade she called me to make her will.
Dr. Reynolds told her she had only a few months left. Her
business affairs were in perfect order but she said, 'There's
still one thing out of order.'" "What was that?" Jem was perplexed.
"She said she was going to leave this world beholden to
nothing and nobody. Jem, when you're sick as she was, it's all right
to take anything to make it easier, but it wasn't all right for her.
She said she meant to break herself of it before she died, and
that's what she did." Jem said, "You mean that's what her fits were?"
"Yes, that's what they were. Most of the time you were
reading to her I doubt if she heard a word you said. Her
whole mind and body were concentrated on that alarm clock. If
you hadn't fallen into her hands, I'd have made you go read to her
anyway. It may have been some distraction. There was another reason-"
"Did she die free?" asked Jem. "As the mountain air," said
Atticus. "She was conscious to the last, almost. Conscious," he
smiled, "and cantankerous. She still disapproved heartily of my
doings, and said I'd probably spend the rest of my life
bailing you out of jail. She had Jessie fix you this box-"
Atticus reached down and picked up the candy box. He handed
it to Jem. Jem opened the box. Inside, surrounded by wads of
damp cotton, was a white, waxy, perfect camellia. It was a Snow- on-
the-Mountain. Jem's eyes nearly popped out of his head. "Old
hell-devil, old hell-devil!" he screamed, flinging it down.
"Why can't she leave me alone?" In a flash Atticus was up and
standing over him. Jem buried his face in Atticus's shirt front.
"Sh-h," he said. "I think that was her way of telling you-
everything's all right now, Jem, everything's all right. You know, she
was a great lady." "A lady?" Jem raised his head. His face
was scarlet. "After all those things she said about you, a lady?"
"She was. She had her own views about things, a lot
different from mine, maybe... son, I told you that if you
hadn't lost your head I'd have made you go read to her. I
wanted you to see something about her- I wanted you to see
what real courage is, instead of getting the idea that
courage is a man with a gun in his hand. It's when you
know you're licked before you begin but you begin anyway and
you see it through no matter what. You rarely win, but sometimes you
do. Mrs. Dubose won, all ninety-eight pounds of her. According to
her views, she died beholden to nothing and nobody. She was the
bravest person I ever knew." Jem picked up the candy box and
threw it in the fire. He picked up the camellia, and when I
went off to bed I saw him fingering the wide petals. Atticus
was reading the paper. PART TWO 12 Jem was twelve. He was
difficult to live with, inconsistent, moody. His appetite was
appalling, and he told me so many times to stop pestering him I
consulted Atticus: "Reckon he's got a tapeworm?" Atticus said no,
Jem was growing. I must be patient with him and disturb him as
little as possible. This change in Jem had come about in a
matter of weeks. Mrs. Dubose was not cold in her grave- Jem
had seemed grateful enough for my company when he went to
read to her. Overnight, it seemed, Jem had acquired an alien set of
values and was trying to impose them on me: several times he went so
far as to tell me what to do. After one altercation when Jem
hollered, "It's time you started bein' a girl and acting right!" I
burst into tears and fled to Calpurnia. "Don't you fret too much
over Mister Jem-" she began. "Mister Jem?" "Yeah, he's just about
Mister Jem now." "He ain't that old," I said. "All he needs is
somebody to beat him up, and I ain't big enough." "Baby," said
Calpurnia, "I just can't help it if Mister Jem's growin' up.
He's gonna want to be off to himself a lot now, doin' whatever boys
do, so you just come right on in the kitchen when you feel
lonesome. We'll find lots of things to do in here." The beginning of
that summer boded well: Jem could do as he pleased; Calpurnia would do
until Dill came. She seemed glad to see me when I appeared in
the kitchen, and by watching her I began to think there was some
skill involved in being a girl. But summer came and Dill was not
there. I received a letter and a snapshot from him. The letter
said he had a new father whose picture was enclosed, and he
would have to stay in Meridian because they planned to build
a fishing boat. His father was a lawyer like Atticus, only
much younger. Dill's new father had a pleasant face, which made me
glad Dill had captured him, but I was crushed. Dill concluded
by saying he would love me forever and not to worry, he would
come get me and marry me as soon as he got enough money together, so
please write. The fact that I had a permanent fiance was
little compensation for his absence: I had never thought about it, but
summer was Dill by the fishpool smoking string, Dill's eyes
alive with complicated plans to make Boo Radley emerge; summer
was the swiftness with which Dill would reach up and kiss me
when Jem was not looking, the longings we sometimes felt each
other feel. With him, life was routine; without him, life was
unbearable. I stayed miserable for two days. As if that were not
enough, the state legislature was called into emergency session and
Atticus left us for two weeks. The Governor was eager to
scrape a few barnacles off the ship of state; there were
sit-down strikes in Birmingham; bread lines in the cities grew
longer, people in the country grew poorer. But these were events
remote from the world of Jem and me. We were surprised one
morning to see a cartoon in the Montgomery Advertiser above
the caption, "Maycomb's Finch." It showed Atticus barefooted
and in short pants, chained to a desk: he was diligently writing on
a slate while some frivolous-looking girls yelled, "Yoo-hoo!" at him.
"That's a compliment," explained Jem. "He spends his time doin' things
that wouldn't get done if nobody did 'em." "Huh?" In addition to
Jem's newly developed characteristics, he had acquired a maddening air
of wisdom. "Oh, Scout, it's like reorganizing the tax systems
of the counties and things. That kind of thing's pretty dry to most
men." "How do you know?" "Oh, go on and leave me alone. I'm readin'
the paper." Jem got his wish. I departed for the kitchen. While she
was shelling peas, Calpurnia suddenly said, "What am I gonna do about
you all's church this Sunday?" "Nothing, I reckon. Atticus left us
collection." Calpurnia's eyes narrowed and I could tell what
was going through her mind. "Cal," I said, "you know we'll behave. We
haven't done anything in church in years." Calpurnia evidently
remembered a rainy Sunday when we were both fatherless and
teacherless. Left to its own devices, the class tied Eunice
Ann Simpson to a chair and placed her in the furnace room.
We forgot her, trooped upstairs to church, and were listening
quietly to the sermon when a dreadful banging issued from the
radiator pipes, persisting until someone investigated and
brought forth Eunice Ann saying she didn't want to play
Shadrach any more- Jem Finch said she wouldn't get burnt if
she had enough faith, but it was hot down there. "Besides, Cal,
this isn't the first time Atticus has left us," I protested.
"Yeah, but he makes certain your teacher's gonna be there. I didn't
hear him say this time- reckon he forgot it." Calpurnia
scratched her head. Suddenly she smiled. "How'd you and Mister Jem
like to come to church with me tomorrow?" "Really?" "How 'bout
it?" grinned Calpurnia. If Calpurnia had ever bathed me roughly
before, it was nothing compared to her supervision of that
Saturday night's routine. She made me soap all over twice,
drew fresh water in the tub for each rinse; she stuck my head in the
basin and washed it with Octagon soap and castile. She had trusted
Jem for years, but that night she invaded his privacy and
provoked an outburst: "Can't anybody take a bath in this house
without the whole family lookin'?" Next morning she began earlier
than usual, to "go over our clothes." When Calpurnia stayed overnight
with us she slept on a folding cot in the kitchen; that morning it was
covered with our Sunday habiliments. She had put so much starch in my
dress it came up like a tent when I sat down. She made me wear a
petticoat and she wrapped a pink sash tightly around my
waist. She went over my patent-leather shoes with a cold biscuit
until she saw her face in them. "It's like we were goin' to Mardi
Gras," said Jem. "What's all this for, Cal?" "I don't want anybody
sayin' I don't look after my children," she muttered. "Mister Jem,
you absolutely can't wear that tie with that suit. It's green."
"'smatter with that?" "Suit's blue. Can't you tell?" "Hee hee," I
howled, "Jem's color blind." His face flushed angrily, but
Calpurnia said, "Now you all quit that. You're gonna go to
First Purchase with smiles on your faces." First Purchase
African M.E. Church was in the Quarters outside the southern
town limits, across the old sawmill tracks. It was an ancient
paint-peeled frame building, the only church in Maycomb with a
steeple and bell, called First Purchase because it was paid for
from the first earnings of freed slaves. Negroes worshiped in it
on Sundays and white men gambled in it on weekdays. The churchyard
was brick-hard clay, as was the cemetery beside it. If someone
died during a dry spell, the body was covered with chunks of ice
until rain softened the earth. A few graves in the cemetery
were marked with crumbling tombstones; newer ones were outlined
with brightly colored glass and broken Coca-Cola bottles. Lightning
rods guarding some graves denoted dead who rested uneasily; stumps of
burned-out candles stood at the heads of infant graves. It
was a happy cemetery. The warm bittersweet smell of clean Negro
welcomed us as we entered the churchyard- Hearts of Love
hairdressing mingled with asafoetida, snuff, Hoyt's Cologne,
Brown's Mule, peppermint, and lilac talcum. When they saw Jem and
me with Calpurnia, the men stepped back and took off their
hats; the women crossed their arms at their waists, weekday
gestures of respectful attention. They parted and made a small
pathway to the church door for us. Calpurnia walked between Jem and
me, responding to the greetings of her brightly clad neighbors. "What
you up to, Miss Cal?" said a voice behind us. Calpurnia's hands
went to our shoulders and we stopped and looked around:
standing in the path behind us was a tall Negro woman. Her
weight was on one leg; she rested her left elbow in the
curve of her hip, pointing at us with upturned palm. She was
bullet-headed with strange almond-shaped eyes, straight nose,
and an Indian-bow mouth. She seemed seven feet high. I felt
Calpurnia's hand dig into my shoulder. "What you want, Lula?"
she asked, in tones I had never heard her use. She spoke quietly,
contemptuously. "I wants to know why you bringin' white
chillun to nigger church." "They's my comp'ny," said Calpurnia.
Again I thought her voice strange: she was talking like the rest of
them. "Yeah, an' I reckon you's comp'ny at the Finch house durin' the
week." A murmur ran through the crowd. "Don't you fret,"
Calpurnia whispered to me, but the roses on her hat trembled
indignantly. When Lula came up the pathway toward us Calpurnia said,
"Stop right there, nigger." Lula stopped, but she said, "You
ain't got no business bringin' white chillun here- they got
their church, we got our'n. It is our church, ain't it, Miss Cal?"
Calpurnia said, "It's the same God, ain't it?" Jem said, "Let's go
home, Cal, they don't want us here-" I agreed: they did not want
us here. I sensed, rather than saw, that we were being
advanced upon. They seemed to be drawing closer to us, but when I
looked up at Calpurnia there was amusement in her eyes. When I looked
down the pathway again, Lula was gone. In her place was a
solid mass of colored people. One of them stepped from the
crowd. It was Zeebo, the garbage collector. "Mister Jem," he said,
"we're mighty glad to have you all here. Don't pay no 'tention
to Lula, she's contentious because Reverend Sykes threatened to
church her. She's a troublemaker from way back, got fancy
ideas an' haughty ways- we're mighty glad to have you all." With
that, Calpurnia led us to the church door where we were
greeted by Reverend Sykes, who led us to the front pew.
First Purchase was unceiled and unpainted within. Along its walls
unlighted kerosene lamps hung on brass brackets; pine benches
served as pews. Behind the rough oak pulpit a faded pink silk banner
proclaimed God Is Love, the church's only decoration except a
rotogravure print of Hunt's The Light of the World. There was
no sign of piano, organ, hymn-books, church programs- the
familiar ecclesiastical impedimenta we saw every Sunday. It was dim
inside, with a damp coolness slowly dispelled by the
gathering congregation. At each seat was a cheap cardboard fan
bearing a garish Garden of Gethsemane, courtesy Tyndal's
Hardware Co. (You-Name-It-We-Sell-It). Calpurnia motioned Jem and me
to the end of the row and placed herself between us. She fished
in her purse, drew out her handkerchief, and untied the hard wad of
change in its corner. She gave a dime to me and a dime to
Jem. "We've got ours," he whispered. "You keep it," Calpurnia
said, "you're my company." Jem's face showed brief indecision
on the ethics of withholding his own dime, but his innate courtesy won
and he shifted his dime to his pocket.
I did likewise with no qualms.
"Cal," I whispered, "where are the hymn-books?" "We don't have any,"
she said. "Well how-?" "Sh-h," she said. Reverend Sykes was
standing behind the pulpit staring the congregation to silence.
He was a short, stocky man in a black suit, black tie, white shirt,
and a gold watch-chain that glinted in the light from the
frosted windows. He said, "Brethren and sisters, we are
particularly glad to have company with us this morning. Mister and
Miss Finch. You all know their father. Before I begin I will
read some announcements." Reverend Sykes shuffled some papers,
chose one and held it at arm's length. "The Missionary
Society meets in the home of Sister Annette Reeves next
Tuesday. Bring your sewing." He read from another paper. "You
all know of Brother Tom Robinson's trouble. He has been a
faithful member of First Purchase since he was a boy. The
collection taken up today and for the next three Sundays will go to
Helen- his wife, to help her out at home." I punched Jem. "That's the
Tom Atticus's de-" "Sh-h!" I turned to Calpurnia but was
hushed before I opened my mouth. Subdued, I fixed my
attention upon Reverend Sykes, who seemed to be waiting for
me to settle down. "Will the music superintendent lead us in the
first hymn," he said. Zeebo rose from his pew and walked down the
center aisle, stopping in front of us and facing the congregation. He
was carrying a battered hymn-book. He opened it and said,
"We'll sing number two seventy-three." This was too much for me.
"How're we gonna sing it if there ain't any hymn-books?" Calpurnia
smiled. "Hush baby," she whispered, "you'll see in a minute." Zeebo
cleared his throat and read in a voice like the rumble of distant
artillery: "There's a land beyond the river." Miraculously on
pitch, a hundred voices sang out Zeebo's words. The last
syllable, held to a husky hum, was followed by Zeebo saying, "That we
call the sweet forever." Music again swelled around us; the
last note lingered and Zeebo met it with the next line: "And
we only reach that shore by faith's decree." The congregation
hesitated, Zeebo repeated the line carefully, and it was sung.
At the chorus Zeebo closed the book, a signal for the
congregation to proceed without his help. On the dying notes of
"Jubilee," Zeebo said, "In that far-off sweet forever, just beyond the
shining river." Line for line, voices followed in simple
harmony until the hymn ended in a melancholy murmur. I looked at
Jem, who was looking at Zeebo from the corners of his eyes. I didn't
believe it either, but we had both heard it. Reverend Sykes then
called on the Lord to bless the sick and the suffering, a
procedure no different from our church practice, except Reverend
Sykes directed the Deity's attention to several specific cases.
His sermon was a forthright denunciation of sin, an austere
declaration of the motto on the wall behind him: he warned his flock
against the evils of heady brews, gambling, and strange women.
Bootleggers caused enough trouble in the Quarters, but women were
worse. Again, as I had often met it in my own church, I was confronted
with the Impurity of Women doctrine that seemed to preoccupy all
clergymen. Jem and I had heard the same sermon Sunday after
Sunday, with only one exception. Reverend Sykes used his
pulpit more freely to express his views on individual lapses from
grace: Jim Hardy had been absent from church for five Sundays and he
wasn't sick; Constance Jackson had better watch her ways- she
was in grave danger for quarreling with her neighbors; she had
erected the only spite fence in the history of the Quarters. Reverend
Sykes closed his sermon. He stood beside a table in front of the
pulpit and requested the morning offering, a proceeding that was
strange to Jem and me. One by one, the congregation came
forward and dropped nickels and dimes into a black enameled coffee
can. Jem and I followed suit, and received a soft, "Thank you,
thank you," as our dimes clinked. To our amazement, Reverend
Sykes emptied the can onto the table and raked the coins into his
hand. He straightened up and said, "This is not enough, we must have
ten dollars." The congregation stirred. "You all know what it's for-
Helen can't leave those children to work while Tom's in jail.
If everybody gives one more dime, we'll have it-" Reverend
Sykes waved his hand and called to someone in the back of the church.
"Alec, shut the doors. Nobody leaves here till we have ten
dollars." Calpurnia scratched in her handbag and brought forth
a battered leather coin purse. "Naw Cal," Jem whispered, when
she handed him a shiny quarter, "we can put ours in. Gimme your dime,
Scout." The church was becoming stuffy, and it occurred to me that
Reverend Sykes intended to sweat the amount due out of his
flock. Fans crackled, feet shuffled, tobacco-chewers were in
agony. Reverend Sykes startled me by saying sternly, "Carlow
Richardson, I haven't seen you up this aisle yet." A thin man in
khaki pants came up the aisle and deposited a coin. The congregation
murmured approval. Reverend Sykes then said, "I want all of
you with no children to make a sacrifice and give one more dime
apiece. Then we'll have it." Slowly, painfully, the ten dollars was
collected. The door was opened, and the gust of warm air
revived us. Zeebo lined On Jordan's Stormy Banks, and church was
over. I wanted to stay and explore, but Calpurnia propelled me up the
aisle ahead of her. At the church door, while she paused to talk
with Zeebo and his family, Jem and I chatted with Reverend
Sykes. I was bursting with questions, but decided I would wait and let
Calpurnia answer them. "We were 'specially glad to have you
all here," said Reverend Sykes. "This church has no better friend
than your daddy." My curiosity burst: "Why were you all takin' up
collection for Tom Robinson's wife?" "Didn't you hear why?" asked
Reverend Sykes. "Helen's got three little'uns and she can't go out to
work-" "Why can't she take 'em with her, Reverend?" I asked.
It was customary for field Negroes with tiny children to
deposit them in whatever shade there was while their parents
worked- usually the babies sat in the shade between two rows
of cotton. Those unable to sit were strapped papoose-style on
their mothers' backs, or resided in extra cotton bags. Reverend
Sykes hesitated. "To tell you the truth, Miss Jean Louise, Helen's
finding it hard to get work these days... when it's picking
time, I think Mr. Link Deas'll take her." "Why not, Reverend?"
Before he could answer, I felt Calpurnia's hand on my
shoulder. At its pressure I said, "We thank you for lettin' us come."
Jem echoed me, and we made our way homeward. "Cal, I know Tom
Robinson's in jail an' he's done somethin' awful, but why won't folks
hire Helen?" I asked. Calpurnia, in her navy voile dress and tub of a
hat, walked between Jem and me. "It's because of what folks say Tom's
done," she said. "Folks aren't anxious to- to have anything to do
with any of his family." "Just what did he do, Cal?" Calpurnia
sighed. "Old Mr. Bob Ewell accused him of rapin' his girl an'
had him arrested an' put in jail-" "Mr. Ewell?" My memory stirred.
"Does he have anything to do with those Ewells that come every first
day of school an' then go home? Why, Atticus said they were absolute
trash- I never heard Atticus talk about folks the way he
talked about the Ewells. He said-" "Yeah, those are the ones."
"Well, if everybody in Maycomb knows what kind of folks the
Ewells are they'd be glad to hire Helen... what's rape, Cal?"
"It's somethin' you'll have to ask Mr. Finch about," she said. "He
can explain it better than I can. You all hungry? The
Reverend took a long time unwindin' this morning, he's not usually so
tedious." "He's just like our preacher," said Jem, "but why do you
all sing hymns that way?" "Linin'?" she asked. "Is that what it is?"
"Yeah, it's called linin'. They've done it that way as long as I can
remember." Jem said it looked like they could save the collection
money for a year and get some hymn-books. Calpurnia laughed.
"Wouldn't do any good," she said. "They can't read." "Can't read?" I
asked. "All those folks?" "That's right," Calpurnia nodded. "Can't
but about four folks in First Purchase read... I'm one of 'em."
"Where'd you go to school, Cal?" asked Jem. "Nowhere. Let's see now,
who taught me my letters? It was Miss Maudie Atkinson's aunt, old Miss
Buford-" "Are you that old?" "I'm older than Mr. Finch, even."
Calpurnia grinned. "Not sure how much, though. We started
rememberin' one time, trying to figure out how old I was- I
can remember back just a few years more'n he can, so I'm
not much older, when you take off the fact that men can't remember
as well as women." "What's your birthday, Cal?" "I just have it
on Christmas, it's easier to remember that way- I don't have a
real birthday." "But Cal," Jem protested, "you don't look even
near as old as Atticus." "Colored folks don't show their ages so
fast," she said. "Maybe because they can't read. Cal, did you teach
Zeebo?" "Yeah, Mister Jem. There wasn't a school even when he was a
boy. I made him learn, though." Zeebo was Calpurnia's eldest son.
If I had ever thought about it, I would have known that Calpurnia
was of mature years- Zeebo had half-grown children- but then I had
never thought about it. "Did you teach him out of a primer, like us?"
I asked. "No, I made him get a page of the Bible every
day, and there was a book Miss Buford taught me out of- bet
you don't know where I got it," she said. We didn't know. Calpurnia
said, "Your Granddaddy Finch gave it to me." "Were you from the
Landing?" Jem asked. "You never told us that." "I certainly
am, Mister Jem. Grew up down there between the Buford Place
and the Landin'. I've spent all my days workin' for the
Finches or the Bufords, an' I moved to Maycomb when your daddy
and your mamma married." "What was the book, Cal?" I asked.
"Blackstone's Commentaries." Jem was thunderstruck. "You mean
you taught Zeebo outa that?" "Why yes sir, Mister Jem." Calpurnia
timidly put her fingers to her mouth. "They were the only books
I had. Your grandaddy said Mr. Blackstone wrote fine English-"
"That's why you don't talk like the rest of 'em," said Jem. "The rest
of who?" "Rest of the colored folks. Cal, but you talked like
they did in church...." That Calpurnia led a modest double life
never dawned on me. The idea that she had a separate existence
outside our household was a novel one, to say nothing of her
having command of two languages. "Cal," I asked, "why do you talk
nigger-talk to the- to your folks when you know it's not right?"
"Well, in the first place I'm black-" "That doesn't mean you hafta
talk that way when you know better," said Jem. Calpurnia tilted her
hat and scratched her head, then pressed her hat down
carefully over her ears. "It's right hard to say," she said.
"Suppose you and Scout talked colored-folks' talk at home it'd be
out of place, wouldn't it? Now what if I talked white-folks' talk at
church, and with my neighbors? They'd think I was puttin' on
airs to beat Moses." "But Cal, you know better," I said. "It's
not necessary to tell all you know. It's not ladylike- in the second
place, folks don't like to have somebody around knowin' more than
they do. It aggravates 'em. You're not gonna change any of
them by talkin' right, they've got to want to learn
themselves, and when they don't want to learn there's nothing
you can do but keep your mouth shut or talk their language." "Cal,
can I come to see you sometimes?" She looked down at me. "See me,
honey? You see me every day." "Out to your house," I said. "Sometimes
after work? Atticus can get me." "Any time you want to," she
said. "We'd be glad to have you." We were on the sidewalk by the
Radley Place. "Look on the porch yonder," Jem said. I looked over
to the Radley Place, expecting to see its phantom occupant
sunning himself in the swing. The swing was empty. "I mean our
porch," said Jem. looked down I street. Enarmored, upright,
uncompromising, Aunt Alexandra was sitting in a rocking chair
exactly as if she had sat there every day of her life. the 13
"Put my bag in the front bedroom, Calpurnia," was the first thing
Aunt Alexandra said. "Jean Louise, stop scratching your head,"
was the second thing she said. Calpurnia picked up Aunty's heavy
suitcase and opened the door. "I'll take it," said Jem, and
took it. I heard the suitcase hit the bedroom floor with a thump.
The sound had a dull permanence about it. "Have you come for a
visit, Aunty?" I asked. Aunt Alexandra's visits from the
Landing were rare, and she traveled in state. She owned a
bright green square Buick and a black chauffeur, both kept in
an unhealthy state of tidiness, but today they were nowhere to be
seen. "Didn't your father tell you?" she asked. Jem and I shook our
heads. "Probably he forgot. He's not in yet, is he?" "Nome, he
doesn't usually get back till late afternoon," said Jem. "Well, your
father and I decided it was time I came to stay with you for a while."
"For a while" in Maycomb meant anything from three days to
thirty years. Jem and I exchanged glances. "Jem's growing up now
and you are too," she said to me. "We decided that it would
be best for you to have some feminine influence. It won't
be many years, Jean Louise, before you become interested in
clothes and boys-" I could have made several answers to this:
Cal's a girl, it would be many years before I would be interested
in boys, I would never be interested in clothes... but I kept quiet.
"What about Uncle Jimmy?" asked Jem. "Is he comin', too?" "Oh no,
he's staying at the Landing. He'll keep the place going." The
moment I said, "Won't you miss him?" I realized that this
was not a tactful question. Uncle Jimmy present or Uncle
Jimmy absent made not much difference, he never said anything.
Aunt Alexandra ignored my question. I could think of nothing
else to say to her. In fact I could never think of anything
to say to her, and I sat thinking of past painful conversations
between us: How are you, Jean Louise? Fine, thank you ma'am,
how are you? Very well, thank you, what have you been doing
with yourself? Nothin'. Don't you do anything? Nome. Certainly
you have friends? Yessum. Well what do you all do? Nothin'. It was
plain that Aunty thought me dull in the extreme, because I
once heard her tell Atticus that I was sluggish. There was a story
behind all this, but I had no desire to extract it from her
then. Today was Sunday, and Aunt Alexandra was positively
irritable on the Lord's Day. I guess it was her Sunday corset.
She was not fat, but solid, and she chose protective garments
that drew up her bosom to giddy heights, pinched in her waist,
flared out her rear, and managed to suggest that Aunt Alexandra's
was once an hour-glass figure. From any angle, it was formidable.
The remainder of the afternoon went by in the gentle gloom that
descends when relatives appear, but was dispelled when we
heard a car turn in the driveway. It was Atticus, home from
Montgomery. Jem, forgetting his dignity, ran with me to meet
him. Jem seized his briefcase and bag, I jumped into his
arms, felt his vague dry kiss and said, "'d you bring me a
book? 'd you know Aunty's here?" Atticus answered both questions
in the affirmative. "How'd you like for her to come live with us?"
I said I would like it very much, which was a lie, but
one must lie under certain circumstances and at all times when one
can't do anything about them. "We felt it was time you children
needed- well, it's like this, Scout," Atticus said. "Your aunt's
doing me a favor as well as you all. I can't stay here all
day with you, and the summer's going to be a hot one." "Yes sir,"
I said, not understanding a word he said. I had an idea, however,
that Aunt Alexandra's appearance on the scene was not so much
Atticus's doing as hers. Aunty had a way of declaring What Is Best For
The Family, and I suppose her coming to live with us was in that
category. Maycomb welcomed her. Miss Maudie Atkinson baked a Lane
cake so loaded with shinny it made me tight; Miss Stephanie
Crawford had long visits with Aunt Alexandra, consisting mostly
of Miss Stephanie shaking her head and saying, "Uh, uh, uh."
Miss Rachel next door had Aunty over for coffee in the afternoons, and
Mr. Nathan Radley went so far as to come up in the front yard and say
he was glad to see her. When she settled in with us and life resumed
its daily pace, Aunt Alexandra seemed as if she had always lived
with us. refreshments added to her Her Missionary Society
reputation as a hostess (she did not permit Calpurnia to make
the delicacies required to sustain the Society through long reports
on Rice Christians); she joined and became Secretary of the
Maycomb Amanuensis Club. To all parties present and
participating in the life of the county, Aunt Alexandra was
one of the last of her kind: she had river- boat, boarding-
school manners; let any moral come along and she would uphold
it; she was born in the objective case; she was an incurable
gossip. When Aunt Alexandra went to school, self-doubt could
not be found in any textbook, so she knew not its meaning.
She was never bored, and given the slightest chance she would
exercise her royal prerogative: she would arrange, advise,
caution, and warn. She never let a chance escape her to point
out the shortcomings of other tribal groups to the greater
glory of our own, a habit that amused Jem rather than
annoyed him: "Aunty better watch how she talks- scratch most folks in
Maycomb and they're kin to us." Aunt Alexandra, in underlining
the moral of young Sam Merriweather's suicide, said it was
caused by a morbid streak in the family. Let a sixteen-year-old
girl giggle in the choir and Aunty would say, "It just goes to show
you, all the Penfield women are flighty." Everybody in Maycomb,
it seemed, had a Streak: a Drinking Streak, a Gambling Streak,
a Mean Streak, a Funny Streak. Once, when Aunty assured us that
Miss Stephanie Crawford's tendency to mind other people's
business was hereditary, Atticus said, "Sister, when you stop
to think about it, our generation's practically the first in
the Finch family not to marry its cousins. Would you say the
Finches have an Incestuous Streak?" Aunty said no, that's where
we got our small hands and feet. I never understood her
preoccupation with heredity. Somewhere, I had received the
impression that Fine Folks were people who did the best they
could with the sense they had, but Aunt Alexandra was of the
opinion, obliquely expressed, that the longer a family had been
squatting on one patch of land the finer it was. "That makes the
Ewells fine folks, then," said Jem. The tribe of which Burris Ewell
and his brethren consisted had lived on the same plot of
earth behind the Maycomb dump, and had thrived on county welfare
money for three generations. Aunt Alexandra's theory had
something behind it, though. Maycomb was an ancient town. It was
twenty miles east of Finch's Landing, awkwardly inland for such an old
town. But Maycomb would have been closer to the river had it
not been for the nimble-wittedness of one Sinkfield, who in the dawn
of history operated an inn where two pig-trails met, the only
tavern in the territory. Sinkfield, no patriot, served and supplied
ammunition to Indians and settlers alike, neither knowing or
caring whether he was a part of the Alabama Territory or the
Creek Nation so long as business was good. Business was
excellent when Governor William Wyatt Bibb, with a view to
promoting the newly created county's domestic team of surveyors
to locate its exact center and there establish its seat of
government. The surveyors, Sinkfield's guests, told their host
that he was in the territorial confines of Maycomb County, and
showed him the probable spot where the county seat would be
built. Had not Sinkfield made a bold stroke to preserve his
holdings, Maycomb would have sat in the middle of Winston Swamp,
a place totally devoid of interest. Instead, Maycomb grew and
sprawled out from its tranquility, dispatched a hub,
Sinkfield's Tavern, because Sinkfield reduced his guests to
myopic drunkenness one evening, induced them to bring forward
their maps and charts, lop off a little here, add a bit there, and
adjust the center of the county to meet his requirements. He sent
them packing next day armed with their charts and five quarts
of shinny in their saddlebags- two apiece and one for the Governor.
Because its primary reason for existence was government,
Maycomb was spared the grubbiness that distinguished most
Alabama towns its size. In the beginning its buildings were solid, its
courthouse proud, its streets graciously wide. Maycomb's proportion
of professional people ran high: one went there to have his
teeth pulled, his wagon fixed, his heart listened to, his
money deposited, his soul saved, his mules vetted. But the
ultimate wisdom of Sinkfield's maneuver is open to question.
He placed the young town too far away from the only kind of
public transportation in those days- river-boat- and it took a
man from the north end of the county two days to travel to Maycomb
for store- bought goods. As a result the town remained the same size
for a hundred years, an island in a patchwork sea of
cottonfields and timberland. Although Maycomb was ignored during the
War Between the States, Reconstruction rule and economic ruin
forced the town to grow. It grew inward. New people so rarely settled
there, the same families married the same families until the faintly
alike. members of Occasionally someone would return from
Montgomery or Mobile with an outsider, but the result caused only
a ripple in the quiet stream of family resemblance. Things
were more or less the same during my early years. community looked
the There was indeed a caste system in Maycomb, but to my
mind it worked this way: the older citizens, the present
generation of people who had lived side by side for years
and years, were utterly predictable to one another: they for
granted attitudes, character shadings, even took gestures, as
having been repeated in each generation and refined by time.
Thus the dicta No Crawford Minds His Own Business, Every Third
Merriweather Is Morbid, The Truth Is Not in the Delafields, All
the Bufords Walk Like That, were simply guides to daily
living: never take a check from a Delafield without a
discreet call to the bank; Miss Maudie Atkinson's shoulder
stoops because she was a Buford; if Mrs. Grace Merriweather
sips gin out of Lydia E. Pinkham bottles it's nothing unusual-
her mother did the same. Aunt Alexandra fitted into the world of
Maycomb like a hand into a glove, but never into the world of Jem
and me. I so often wondered how she could be Atticus's and Uncle
Jack's sister that I revived half-remembered tales of
changelings and mandrake roots that Jem had spun long ago. These were
abstract speculations for the first month of her stay, as she had
little to say to Jem or me, and we saw her only at mealtimes and
at night before we went to bed. It was summer and we were
outdoors. Of course some afternoons when I would run inside
for a drink of water, I would find the livingroom overrun
with Maycomb ladies, sipping, whispering, fanning, and I would
be called: "Jean Louise, come speak to these ladies." When I
appeared in the doorway, Aunty would look as if she regretted her
request; I was usually mud-splashed or covered with sand. "Speak
to your Cousin Lily," she said one afternoon, when she had
trapped me in the hall. "Who?" I said. "Your Cousin Lily Brooke,"
said Aunt Alexandra. "She our cousin? I didn't know that." Aunt
Alexandra managed to smile in a way that conveyed a gentle apology
to Cousin Lily and firm disapproval to me. When Cousin Lily
Brooke left I knew I was in for it. It was a sad thing that my
father had neglected to tell me about the Finch Family, or
to install any pride into his children. She summoned Jem, who
sat warily on the sofa beside me. She left the room and
returned with a purple- covered book on which Meditations of
Joshua S. St. Clair was stamped in gold. "Your cousin wrote
this," said Aunt Alexandra. "He was a beautiful character." Jem
examined the small volume. "Is this the Cousin Joshua who was locked
up for so long?" Aunt Alexandra said, "How did you know that?" "Why,
Atticus said he went round the bend at the University. Said he tried
to shoot the president. Said Cousin Joshua said he wasn't
anything but a sewer-inspector and tried to shoot him with an
old flintlock pistol, only it just blew up in his hand. Atticus said
it cost the family five hundred dollars to get him out of that one-"
Aunt Alexandra was standing stiff as a stork. "That's all,"
she said. "We'll see about this." Before bedtime I was in Jem's
room trying to borrow a book, when Atticus knocked and entered. He
sat on the side of Jem's bed, looked at us soberly, then he grinned.
"Er- h'rm," he said. He was beginning to preface some things
he said with a throaty noise, and I thought he must at last be
getting old, but he looked the same. "I don't exactly know how
to say this," he began. "Well, just say it," said Jem. "Have we done
something?" Our father was actually fidgeting. "No, I just want to
explain to you that- your Aunt Alexandra asked me... son, you
know you're a Finch, don't you?" "That's what I've been told." Jem
looked out of the corners of his eyes. His voice rose
uncontrollably, "Atticus, what's the matter?" Atticus crossed his
knees and folded his arms. "I'm trying to tell you the facts of life."
Jem's disgust deepened. "I know all that stuff," he said. Atticus
suddenly grew serious. In his lawyer's voice, without a shade of
inflection, he said: "Your aunt has asked me to try and
impress upon you and Jean Louise that you are not from run-of-the-
mill people, that you are the product of several generations'
gentle breeding-" Atticus paused, watching me locate an elusive
redbug on my leg. "Gentle breeding," he continued, when I had
found and scratched it, "and that you should try to live up
to your name-" Atticus persevered in spite of us: "She asked me to
tell you you must try to behave like the little lady and
gentleman that you are. She wants to talk to you about the family and
what it's meant to Maycomb County through the years, so you'll have
some idea of who you are, so you might be moved to behave
accordingly," he concluded at a gallop. Stunned, Jem and I
looked at each other, then at Atticus, whose collar seemed to
worry him. We did not speak to him. Presently I picked up a
comb from Jem's dresser and ran its teeth along the edge. "Stop that
noise," Atticus said. His curtness stung me. The comb was
midway in its journey, and I banged it down. For no reason
I felt myself beginning to cry, but I could not stop. This
was not my father. My father never thought these thoughts. My
father never spoke so. Aunt Alexandra had put him up to
this, somehow. Through my tears I saw Jem standing in a similar pool
of isolation, his head cocked to one side. There was nowhere to
go, but I turned to go and met Atticus's vest front. I
buried my head in it and listened to the small internal noises
that went on behind the light blue cloth: his watch ticking, the
faint crackle of his starched shirt, the soft sound of his
breathing. "Your stomach's growling," I said. "I know it," he said.
"You better take some soda." "I will," he said. "Atticus, is all
this behavin' an' stuff gonna make things different? I mean are
you-?" I felt his hand on the back of my head. "Don't you
worry about anything," he said. "It's not time to worry." When I
heard that, I knew he had come back to us. The blood in my
legs began to flow again, and I raised my head. "You really want us
to do all that? I can't remember everything Finches are supposed
to do...." "I don't want you to remember it. Forget it." He went to
the door and out of the room, shutting the door behind him. He nearly
slammed it, but caught himself at the last minute and closed it
softly. As Jem and I stared, the door opened again and Atticus
peered around. His eyebrows were raised, his glasses had slipped. "Get
more like Cousin Joshua every day, don't I? Do you think I'll
end up costing the family five hundred dollars?" I know now what he
was trying to do, but Atticus was only a man. It takes a woman to do
that kind of work. 14 Although we heard no more about the
Finch family from Aunt Alexandra, we heard plenty from the
town. On Saturdays, armed with our nickels, when Jem permitted me to
accompany him (he was now positively allergic to my presence
when in public), we would squirm our way through sweating sidewalk
crowds and sometimes hear, "There's his chillun," or, "Yonder's
some Finches." Turning to face our accusers, we would see
only a couple of farmers studying the enema bags in the
Mayco Drugstore window. Or two dumpy countrywomen in straw hats
sitting in a Hoover cart. "They c'n go loose and rape up the
countryside for all of 'em who run this county care," was one obscure
observation we met head on from a skinny gentleman when he passed us.
Which reminded me that I had a question to ask Atticus. "What's
rape?" I asked him that night. Atticus looked around from behind his
paper. He was in his chair by the window. As we grew older, Jem and I
thought it generous to allow Atticus thirty minutes to himself
after supper. He sighed, and said rape was carnal knowledge of a
female by force and without consent. "Well if that's all it is
why did Calpurnia dry me up when I asked her what it was?"
Atticus looked pensive. "What's that again?" "Well, I asked
Calpurnia comin' from church that day what it was and she said ask you
but I forgot to and now I'm askin' you." His paper was now in his
lap. "Again, please," he said. I told him in detail about our trip to
church with Calpurnia. Atticus seemed to enjoy it, but Aunt
Alexandra, who was sitting in a corner quietly sewing, put down her
embroidery and stared at us. "You all were coming back from
Calpurnia's church that Sunday?" Jem said, "Yessum, she took us."
I remembered something. "Yessum, and she promised me I could come out
to her house some afternoon. Atticus. I'll go next Sunday if it's all
right, can I? Cal said she'd come get me if you were off in the car."
"You may not." Aunt Alexandra said it. I wheeled around,
startled, then turned back to Atticus in time to catch his
swift glance at her, but it was too late. I said, "I didn't ask
you!" For a big man, Atticus could get up and down from a chair
faster than anyone I ever knew. He was on his feet.
"Apologize to your aunt," he said. "I didn't ask her, I asked you-"
Atticus turned his head and pinned me to the wall with his good
eye. His voice was deadly: "First, apologize to your aunt."
"I'm sorry, Aunty," I muttered. "Now then," he said. "Let's get
this clear: you do as Calpurnia tells you, you do as I tell you,
and as long as your aunt's in this house, you will do as she
tells you. Understand?" I understood, pondered a while, and
concluded that the only way I could retire with a shred of dignity
was to go to the bathroom, where I stayed long enough to make
them think I had to go. Returning, I lingered in the hall to hear a
fierce discussion going on in the livingroom. Through the door
I could see Jem on the sofa with a football magazine in front of his
face, his head turning as if its pages contained a live tennis match.
"...you've got to do something about her," Aunty was saying.
"You've let things go on too long, Atticus, too long." "I don't see
any harm in letting her go out there. Cal'd look after her there as
well as she does here." Who was the "her" they were talking about? My
heart sank: me. I felt the starched walls of a pink cotton
penitentiary closing in on me, and for the second time in my
life I thought of running away. Immediately. "Atticus, it's all
right to be soft-hearted, you're an easy man, but you have a
daughter to think of. A daughter who's growing up." "That's what I am
thinking of." "And don't try to get around it. You've got to face it
sooner or later and it might as well be tonight. We don't need her
now." Atticus's voice was even: "Alexandra, Calpurnia's not
leaving this house until she wants to. You may think
otherwise, but I couldn't have got along without her all
these years. She's a faithful member of this family and
you'll simply have to accept things the way they are.
Besides, sister, I don't want you working your head off for
us- you've no reason to do that. We still need Cal as much as we ever
did." "But Atticus-" "Besides, I don't think the children've
suffered one bit from her having brought them up. If anything, she's
been harder on them in some ways than a mother would have
been... she's never let them get away with anything, she's
never indulged them the way most colored nurses do. She tried to bring
them up according to her lights, and Cal's lights are pretty
good- and another thing, the children love her." I breathed again.
It wasn't me, it was only Calpurnia they were talking about.
Revived, I entered the livingroom. Atticus had retreated behind
his newspaper and Aunt Alexandra was worrying her embroidery. Punk,
punk, punk, her needle broke the taut circle. She stopped, and
pulled the cloth tighter: punk-punk-punk. She was furious. Jem got up
and padded across the rug. He motioned me to follow. He led me to his
room and closed the door. His face was grave. "They've been fussing,
Scout." Jem and I fussed a great deal these days, but I had
never heard of or seen anyone quarrel with Atticus. It was
not a comfortable sight. "Scout, try not to antagonize Aunty, hear?"
Atticus's remarks were still rankling, which made me miss the
request in Jem's question. My feathers rose again. "You tryin' to tell
me what to do?" "Naw, it's- he's got a lot on his mind now,
without us worrying him." "Like what?" Atticus didn't appear to
have anything especially on his mind. "It's this Tom Robinson case
that's worryin' him to death-" I said Atticus didn't worry about
anything. Besides, the case never bothered us except about once
a week and then it didn't last. "That's because you can't hold
something in your mind but a little while," said Jem. "It's different
with grown folks, we- " His maddening superiority was unbearable
these days. He didn't want to do anything but read and go
off by himself. Still, everything he read he passed along to
me, but with this difference: formerly, because he thought I'd
like it; now, for my edification and instruction. "Jee crawling
hova, Jem! Who do you think you are?" "Now I mean it, Scout, you
antagonize Aunty and I'll- I'll spank you." With that, I was
gone. "You damn morphodite, I'll kill you!" He was sitting on the bed,
and it was easy to grab his front hair and land one on his mouth. He
slapped me and I tried another left, but a punch in the stomach sent
me sprawling on the floor. It nearly knocked the breath out of me, but
it didn't matter because I knew he was fighting, he was
fighting me back. We were still equals. "Ain't so high and mighty
now, are you!" I screamed, sailing in again. He was still on the
bed and I couldn't get a firm stance, so I threw myself at him
as hard as I could, hitting, pulling, pinching, gouging. What had
begun as a fist-fight became a brawl. We were still
struggling when Atticus separated us. "That's all," he said. "Both
of you go to bed right now." "Taah!" I said at Jem. He was
being sent to bed at my bedtime. "Who started it?" asked
Atticus, in resignation. "Jem did. He was tryin' to tell me what to
do. I don't have to mind him now, do I?" Atticus smiled. "Let's
leave it at this: you mind Jem whenever he can make you. Fair
enough?" Aunt Alexandra was present but silent, and when she went
down the hall with Atticus we heard her say, "...just one of the
things I've been telling you about," a phrase that united us again.
Ours were adjoining rooms; as I shut the door between them
Jem said, "Night, Scout." "Night," I murmured, picking my way
across the room to turn on the light. As I passed the bed
I stepped on something warm, resilient, and rather smooth. It
was not quite like hard rubber, and I had the sensation that
it was alive. I also heard it move. I switched on the light
and looked at the floor by the bed. Whatever I had stepped
on was gone. I tapped on Jem's door. "What," he said. "How
does a snake feel?" "Sort of rough. Cold. Dusty. Why?" "I think
there's one under my bed. Can you come look?" "Are you bein' funny?"
Jem opened the door. He was in his pajama bottoms. I noticed not
without satisfaction that the mark of my knuckles was still on his
mouth. When he saw I meant what I said, he said, "If you think I'm
gonna put my face down to a snake you've got another think comin'.
Hold on a minute." He went to the kitchen and fetched the broom. "You
better get up on the bed," he said. "You reckon it's really one?" I
asked. This was an occasion. Our houses had no cellars; they were
built on stone blocks a few feet above the ground, and the entry
of reptiles was not unknown but was not commonplace. Miss
Rachel Haverford's excuse for a glass of neat whiskey every
morning was that she never got over the fright of finding a rattler
coiled in her bedroom closet, on her washing, when she went to
hang up her negligee. Jem made a tentative swipe under the
bed. I looked over the foot to see if a snake would come
out. None did. Jem made a deeper swipe. "Do snakes grunt?" "It
ain't a snake," Jem said. "It's somebody." Suddenly a filthy brown
package shot from under the bed. Jem raised the broom and
missed Dill's head by an inch when it appeared. "God Almighty."
Jem's voice was reverent. We watched Dill emerge by degrees. He was a
tight fit. He stood up and eased his shoulders, turned his
feet in their ankle sockets, rubbed the back of his neck.
His circulation restored, he said, "Hey." Jem petitioned God again.
I was speechless. "I'm 'bout to perish," said Dill. "Got anything to
eat?" In a dream, I went to the kitchen. I brought him back some milk
and half a pan of corn bread left over from supper. Dill devoured it,
chewing with his front teeth, as was his custom. I finally
found my voice. "How'd you get here?" By an involved route.
Refreshed by food, Dill recited this narrative: having been bound
in chains and left to die in the basement (there were basements in
Meridian) by his new father, who disliked him, and secretly kept
alive on raw field peas by a passing farmer who heard his cries for
help (the good man poked a bushel pod by pod through the
ventilator), Dill worked himself free by pulling the chains
from the wall. Still in wrist manacles, he wandered two miles
out of Meridian where he discovered a small animal show and
was immediately engaged to wash the camel. He traveled with the show
all over Mississippi until his infallible sense of direction told
him he was in Abbott County, Alabama, just across the river
from Maycomb. He walked the rest of the way. "How'd you get here?"
asked Jem. He had taken thirteen dollars from his mother's
purse, caught the nine o'clock from Meridian and got off at
Maycomb Junction. He had walked ten or eleven of the fourteen
miles to Maycomb, off the highway in the scrub bushes lest the
authorities be seeking him, and had ridden the remainder of the
way clinging to the backboard of a cotton wagon. He had been
under the bed for two hours, he thought; he had heard us in the
diningroom, and the clink of forks on plates nearly drove him
crazy. He thought Jem and I would never go to bed; he had
considered emerging and helping me beat Jem, as Jem had grown far
taller, but he knew Mr. Finch would break it up soon, so he thought it
best to stay where he was. He was worn out, dirty beyond belief,
and home. "They must not know you're here," said Jem. "We'd know if
they were lookin' for you...." "Think they're still searchin' all
the picture shows in Meridian." Dill grinned. "You oughta let your
mother know where you are," said Jem. "You oughta let her know you're
here...." Dill's eyes flickered at Jem, and Jem looked at
the floor. Then he rose and broke the remaining code of our
childhood. He went out of the room and down the hall.
"Atticus," his voice was distant, "can you come here a
minute, sir?" Beneath its sweat-streaked dirt Dill's face went white.
I felt sick. Atticus was in the doorway. He came to the middle
of the room and stood with his hands in his pockets, looking
down at Dill. I finally found my voice: "It's okay, Dill. When he
wants you to know somethin', he tells you." Dill looked at me. "I
mean it's all right," I said. "You know he wouldn't bother
you, you know you ain't scared of Atticus." "I'm not scared..."
Dill muttered. "Just hungry, I'll bet." Atticus's voice had its usual
pleasant dryness. "Scout, we can do better than a pan of
cold corn bread, can't we? You fill this fellow up and when I get
back we'll see what we can see." "Mr. Finch, don't tell Aunt
Rachel, don't make me go back, please sir! I'll run off again-!"
"Whoa, son," said Atticus. "Nobody's about to make you go anywhere but
to bed pretty soon. I'm just going over to tell Miss Rachel you're
here and ask her if you could spend the night with us- you'd like
that, wouldn't you? And for goodness' sake put some of the
county back where it belongs, the soil erosion's bad enough as it
is." Dill stared at my father's retreating figure. "He's tryin' to
be funny," I said. "He means take a bath. See there, I told you he
wouldn't bother you." Jem was standing in a corner of the
room, looking like the traitor he was. "Dill, I had to tell
him," he said. "You can't run three hundred miles off without your
mother knowin'." We left him without a word. Dill ate, and ate, and
ate. He hadn't eaten since last night. He used all his money for a
ticket, boarded the train as he had done many times, coolly chatted
with the conductor, to whom Dill was a familiar sight, but he had not
the nerve to invoke the rule on small children traveling a distance
alone if you've lost your money the conductor will lend you
enough for dinner and your father will pay him back at the end of the
line. Dill made his way through the leftovers and was
reaching for a can of pork and beans in the pantry when
Miss Rachel's Do-oo Je-sus went off in the hall. He shivered like a
rabbit. He bore with fortitude her Wait Till I Get You
Home, Your Folks Are Out of Their Minds Worryin', was quite
calm during That's All the Harris in You Coming Out, smiled
at her Reckon You Can Stay One Night, and returned the hug at
long last bestowed upon him. Atticus pushed up his glasses and rubbed
his face. "Your father's tired," said Aunt Alexandra, her first words
in hours, it seemed. She had been there, but I suppose struck dumb
most of the time. "You children get to bed now." We left them in
the diningroom, Atticus still mopping his face. "From rape to
riot to runaways," we heard him chuckle. "I wonder what the next
two hours will bring." Since things appeared to have worked out
pretty well, Dill and I decided to be civil to Jem. Besides,
Dill had to sleep with him so we might as well speak to him. I
put on my pajamas, read for a while and found myself
suddenly unable to keep my eyes open. Dill and Jem were
quiet; when I turned off my reading lamp there was no strip of light
under the door to Jem's room. I must have slept a long time,
for when I was punched awake the room was dim with the light of
the setting moon. "Move over, Scout." "He thought he had to," I
mumbled. "Don't stay mad with him." Dill got in bed beside
me. "I ain't," he said. "I just wanted to sleep with you. Are
you waked up?" By this time I was, but lazily so. "Why'd you do it?"
No answer. "I said why'd you run off? Was he really hateful like you
said?" "Naw..." "Didn't you all build that boat like you
wrote you were gonna?" "He just said we would. We never did." I
raised up on my elbow, facing Dill's outline. "It's no reason to run
off. They don't get around to doin' what they say they're
gonna do half the time...." "That wasn't it, he- they just wasn't
interested in me." This was the weirdest reason for flight I
had ever heard. "How come?" "Well, they stayed gone all the
time, and when they were home, even, they'd get off in a room by
themselves." "What'd they do in there?" "Nothin', just sittin'
and readin'- but they didn't want me with 'em." I pushed the
pillow to the headboard and sat up. "You know something? I was
fixin' to run off tonight because there they all were. You
don't want 'em around you all the time, Dill-" Dill breathed
his patient breath, a half-sigh. "-good night, Atticus's gone all day
and sometimes half the night and off in the legislature and I don't
know what- you don't want 'em around all the time, Dill, you
couldn't do anything if they were." "That's not it." As Dill
explained, I found myself wondering what life would be if Jem were
different, even from what he was now; what I would do if Atticus
did not feel the necessity of my presence, help and advice. Why,
he couldn't get along a day without me. Even Calpurnia couldn't get
along unless I was there. They needed me. "Dill, you ain't telling
me right- your folks couldn't do without you. They must be just
mean to you. Tell you what to do about that-" Dill's voice went on
steadily in the darkness: "The thing is, what I'm tryin' to say is-
they do get on a lot better without me, I can't help them any.
They ain't mean. They buy me everything I want, but it's
now-you've-got-it-go-play-with- it. You've got a roomful of
things. I-got-you-that-book-so- go-read-it." Dill tried to deepen his
voice. "You're not a boy. Boys get out and play baseball with
other boys, they don't hang around the house worryin' their folks."
Dill's voice was his own again: "Oh, they ain't mean. They
kiss you and hug you good night and good mornin' and good-
bye and tell you they love you- Scout, let's get us a
baby." "Where?" There was a man Dill had heard of who had a boat
that he rowed across to a foggy island where all these babies were;
you could order one- "That's a lie. Aunty said God drops 'em
down the chimney. At least that's what I think she said." For
once, Aunty's diction had not been too clear. "Well that ain't
so. You get babies from each other. But there's this man, too-
he has all these babies just waitin' to wake up, he breathes life into
'em...." Dill was off again. Beautiful things floated around
in his dreamy head. He could read two books to my one, but
he preferred the magic of his own inventions. He could add and
subtract faster than lightning, but he preferred his own
twilight world, a world where babies slept, waiting to be
gathered like morning lilies. He was slowly talking himself to sleep
and taking me with him, but in the quietness of his foggy
island there rose the faded image of a gray house with sad
brown doors. "Dill?" "Mm?" "Why do you reckon Boo Radley's never
run off?" Dill sighed a long sigh and turned away from me. "Maybe
he doesn't have anywhere to run off to...." 15 After many
telephone calls, much pleading on behalf of the defendant, and a
long forgiving letter from his mother, it was decided that
Dill could stay. We had a week of peace together. After that,
little, it seemed. A nightmare was upon us. It began one evening
after supper. Dill was over; Aunt Alexandra was in her chair in
the corner, Atticus was in his; Jem and I were on the floor
reading. It had been a placid week: I had minded Aunty; Jem
had outgrown the treehouse, but helped Dill and me construct
a new rope ladder for it; Dill had hit upon a foolproof plan to make
Boo Radley come out at no cost to ourselves (place a trail
of lemon drops from the back door to the front yard and he'd follow
it, like an ant). There was a knock on the front door, Jem answered it
and said it was Mr. Heck Tate. "Well, ask him to come in," said
Atticus. "I already did. There's some men outside in the yard,
they want you to come out." In Maycomb, grown men stood outside in
the front yard for only two reasons: death and politics. I
wondered who had died. Jem and I went to the front door,
but Atticus called, "Go back in the house." Jem turned out the
livingroom lights and pressed his nose to a window screen.
Aunt Alexandra protested. "Just for a second, Aunty, let's see
who it is," he said. Dill and I took another window. A crowd
of men was standing around Atticus. They all seemed to be
talking at once. "...movin' him to the county jail tomorrow,"
Mr. Tate was saying, "I don't look for any trouble, but I
can't guarantee there won't be any...." "Don't be foolish, Heck,"
Atticus said. "This is Maycomb." "...said I was just uneasy." "Heck,
we've gotten one postponement of this case just to make sure
there's nothing to be uneasy about. This is Saturday," Atticus
said. "Trial'll probably be Monday. You can keep him one night,
can't you? I don't think anybody in Maycomb'll begrudge me a client,
with times this hard." There was a murmur of glee that died
suddenly when Mr. Link Deas said, "Nobody around here's up to
anything, it's that Old Sarum bunch I'm worried about... can't you
get a- what is it, Heck?" "Change of venue," said Mr. Tate.
"Not much point in that, now is it?" Atticus said something
inaudible. I turned to Jem, who waved me to silence. "-besides,"
Atticus was saying, "you're not scared of that crowd, are you?"
"...know how they do when they get shinnied up." "They don't
usually drink on Sunday, they go to church most of the day..."
Atticus said. "This is a special occasion, though..." someone said.
They murmured and buzzed until Aunty said if Jem didn't turn
on the livingroom lights he would disgrace the family. Jem
didn't hear her. "-don't see why you touched it in the first
place," Mr. Link Deas was saying. "You've got everything to
lose from this, Atticus. I mean everything." "Do you really think
so?" This was Atticus's dangerous question. "Do you really think you
want to move there, Scout?" Bam, bam, bam, and the checkerboard was
swept clean of my men. "Do you really think that, son? Then
read this." Jem would struggle the rest of an evening through the
speeches of Henry W. Grady. "Link, that boy might go to the chair,
but he's not going till the truth's told." Atticus's voice was
even. "And you know what the truth is." There was a murmur among
the group of men, made more ominous when Atticus moved back to the
bottom front step and the men drew nearer to him. Suddenly Jem
screamed, "Atticus, the telephone's ringing!" The men jumped a little
and scattered; they were people we saw every day: merchants, in-
town farmers; Dr. Reynolds was there; so was Mr. Avery. "Well,
answer it, son," called Atticus. Laughter broke them up. When
Atticus switched on the overhead light in the livingroom he
found Jem at the window, pale except for the vivid mark of the
screen on his nose. "Why on earth are you all sitting in the dark?"
he asked. Jem watched him go to his chair and pick up the
evening paper. I sometimes think Atticus subjected every crisis
of his life to tranquil evaluation behind The Mobile Register,
The Birmingham News and The Montgomery Advertiser. "They were after
you, weren't they?" Jem went to him. "They wanted to get you,
didn't they?" Atticus lowered the paper and gazed at Jem.
"What have you been reading?" he asked. Then he said gently, "No son,
those were our friends." "It wasn't a- a gang?" Jem was looking from
the corners of his eyes. Atticus tried to stifle a smile but
didn't make it. "No, we don't have mobs and that nonsense in
Maycomb. I've never heard of a gang in Maycomb." "Ku Klux got after
some Catholics one time." "Never heard of any Catholics in
Maycomb either," said Atticus, "you're confusing that with
something else. Way back about nineteen-twenty there was a
Klan, but it was a political organization more than anything.
Besides, they couldn't find anybody to scare. They paraded by
Mr. Sam Levy's house one night, but Sam just stood on his
porch and told 'em things had come to a pretty pass, he'd
sold 'em the very sheets on their backs. Sam made 'em so
ashamed of themselves they went away." The Levy family met all
criteria for being Fine Folks: they did the best they could
with the sense they had, and they had been living on the same
plot of ground in Maycomb for five generations. "The Ku Klux's gone,"
said Atticus. "It'll never come back." I walked home with Dill
and returned in time to overhear Atticus saying to Aunty, "...in
favor of Southern womanhood as much as anybody, but not for preserving
polite fiction at the expense of human life," a pronouncement
that made me suspect they had been fussing again. I sought Jem and
found him in his room, on the bed deep in thought. "Have they been at
it?" I asked. "Sort of. She won't let him alone about Tom Robinson.
She almost said Atticus was disgracin' the family. Scout...
I'm scared." "Scared'a what?" "Scared about Atticus. Somebody
might hurt him." Jem preferred to remain mysterious; all he
would say to my questions was go on and leave him alone. Next day
was Sunday. In the interval between Sunday School and Church
when the congregation stretched its legs, I saw Atticus standing
in the yard with another knot of men. Mr. Heck Tate was present, and I
wondered if he had seen the light. He never went to church.
Even Mr. Underwood was there. Mr. Underwood had no use for
any organization but The Maycomb Tribune, of which he was the sole
owner, editor, and printer. His days were spent at his
linotype, where he refreshed himself occasionally from an ever-
present gallon jug of cherry wine. He rarely gathered news;
people brought it to him. It was said that he made up every edition
of The Maycomb Tribune out of his own head and wrote it down
on the linotype. This was believable. Something must have been up
to haul Mr. Underwood out. I caught Atticus coming in the door, and
he said that they'd moved Tom Robinson to the Maycomb jail. He
also said, more to himself than to me, that if they'd kept him there
in the first place there wouldn't have been any fuss. I watched him
take his seat on the third row from the front, and I heard
him rumble, "Nearer my God to thee," some notes behind the
rest of us. He never sat with Aunty, Jem and me. He liked to be by
himself in church. The fake peace that prevailed on Sundays
was made more irritating by Aunt Alexandra's presence. Atticus
would flee to his office directly after dinner, where if we
sometimes looked in on him, we would find him sitting back
in his swivel chair reading. Aunt Alexandra composed herself for a
two-hour nap and dared us to make any noise in the yard, the
neighborhood was resting. Jem in his old age had taken to his room
with a stack of football magazines. So Dill and I spent our Sundays
creeping around in Deer's Pasture. Shooting on Sundays was
prohibited, so Dill and I kicked Jem's football around the
pasture for a while, which was no fun. Dill asked if I'd like to have
a poke at Boo Radley. I said I didn't think it'd be nice to bother
him, and spent the rest of the afternoon filling Dill in on last
winter's events. He was considerably impressed. We parted at
suppertime, and after our meal Jem and I were settling down
to a routine evening, when Atticus did something that
interested us: he came into the livingroom carrying a long
electrical extension cord. There was a light bulb on the end.
"I'm going out for a while," he said. "You folks'll be in
bed when I come back, so I'll say good night now." With that, he put
his hat on and went out the back door. "He's takin' the car," said
Jem. Our father had a few peculiarities: one was, he never
ate desserts; another was that he liked to walk. As far back as I
could remember, there was always a Chevrolet in excellent
condition in the carhouse, and Atticus put many miles on it in
business trips, but in Maycomb he walked to and from his office four
times a day, covering about two miles. He said his only
exercise was walking. In Maycomb, if one went for a walk with no
definite purpose in mind, it was correct to believe one's mind
incapable of definite purpose. Later on, I bade my aunt and
brother good night and was well into a book when I heard
Jem rattling around in his room. His go-to-bed noises were so
familiar to me that I knocked on his door: "Why ain't you going to
bed?" "I'm goin' downtown for a while." He was changing his
pants. "Why? It's almost ten o'clock, Jem." He knew it, but he was
going anyway. "Then I'm goin' with you. If you say no you're not, I'm
goin' anyway, hear?" Jem saw that he would have to fight me to keep
me home, and I suppose he thought a fight would antagonize
Aunty, so he gave in with little grace. I dressed quickly.
We
waited until Aunty's light went out, and we walked quietly
down the back steps. There was no moon tonight. "Dill'll wanta
come," I whispered. "So he will," said Jem gloomily. We leaped over
the driveway wall, cut through Miss Rachel's side yard and went to
Dill's window. Jem whistled bob- white. Dill's face appeared
at the screen, disappeared, and five minutes later he unhooked the
screen and crawled out. An old campaigner, he did not speak
until we were on the sidewalk. "What's up?" "Jem's got the look-
arounds," an affliction Calpurnia said all boys caught at his age.
"I've just got this feeling," Jem said, "just this feeling." We went
by Mrs. Dubose's house, standing empty and shuttered, her
camellias grown up in weeds and johnson grass. There were
eight more houses to the post office corner. The south side
of the square was deserted. Giant monkey- puzzle bushes
bristled on each corner, and between them an iron hitching rail
glistened under the street lights. A light shone in the county
toilet, otherwise that side of the courthouse was dark. A
larger square of stores surrounded the courthouse square; dim
lights burned from deep within them. Atticus's office was in the
courthouse when he began his law practice, but after several
years of it he moved to quieter quarters in the Maycomb Bank
building. When we rounded the corner of the square, we saw the car
parked in front of the bank. "He's in there," said Jem. But he
wasn't. His office was reached by a long hallway. Looking
down the hall, we should have seen Atticus Finch, Attorney-at-
Law in small sober letters against the light from behind his door. It
was dark. Jem peered in the bank door to make sure. He
turned the knob. The door was locked. "Let's go up the
street. Maybe he's visitin' Mr. Underwood." Mr. Underwood not only
ran The Maycomb Tribune office, he lived in it. That is, above it. He
covered the courthouse and jailhouse news simply by looking out
his upstairs window. The office building was on the northwest
corner of the square, and to reach it we had to pass the jail. The
Maycomb jail was the most venerable and hideous of the
county's buildings. Atticus said it was like something Cousin
Joshua St. Clair might have designed. It was certainly
someone's dream. Starkly out of place in a town of square-faced stores
and steep-roofed houses, the Maycomb jail was a miniature Gothic joke
one cell wide and two cells high, complete with tiny battlements
and flying buttresses. Its fantasy was heightened by its red
brick facade and the thick steel bars at its ecclesiastical
windows. It stood on no lonely hill, but was wedged between
Tyndal's Hardware Store and The Maycomb Tribune office. The
jail was Maycomb's only conversation piece: its detractors said
it looked like a Victorian privy; its supporters said it gave the town
a good solid respectable look, and no stranger would ever
suspect that it was full of niggers. As we walked up the
sidewalk, we saw a solitary light burning in the distance.
"That's funny," said Jem, "jail doesn't have an outside light."
"Looks like it's over the door," said Dill. A long extension cord
ran between the bars of a second- floor window and down the side
of the building. In the light from its bare bulb, Atticus was
sitting propped against the front door. He was sitting in one of
his office chairs, and he was reading, oblivious of the nightbugs
dancing over his head. I made to run, but Jem caught me.
"Don't go to him," he said, "he might not like it. He's all
right, let's go home. I just wanted to see where he was." We
were taking a short cut across the square when four dusty
cars came in from the Meridian highway, moving slowly in a
line. They went around the square, passed the bank building,
and stopped in front of the jail. Nobody got out. We saw Atticus
look up from his newspaper. He closed it, folded it deliberately,
dropped it in his lap, and pushed his hat to the back of his
head. He seemed to be expecting them. "Come on," whispered Jem. We
streaked across the square, across the street, until we were in the
shelter of the Jitney Jungle door. Jem peeked up the sidewalk.
"We can get closer," he said. We ran to Tyndal's Hardware
door- near enough, at the same time discreet. In ones and twos,
men got out of the cars. Shadows became substance as lights
revealed solid shapes moving toward the jail door. Atticus
remained where he was. The men hid him from view. "He in there,
Mr. Finch?" a man said. "He is," we heard Atticus answer, "and
he's asleep. Don't wake him up." In obedience to my father,
there followed what I later realized was a sickeningly comic
aspect of an unfunny situation: the men talked in near-whispers.
"You know what we want," another man said. "Get aside from
the door, Mr. Finch." "You can turn around and go home again,
Walter," Atticus said pleasantly. "Heck Tate's around somewhere."
"The hell he is," said another man. "Heck's bunch's so deep in the
woods they won't get out till mornin'." "Indeed? Why so?" "Called
'em off on a snipe hunt," was the succinct answer. "Didn't
you think a'that, Mr. Finch?" "Thought about it, but didn't
believe it. Well then," my father's voice was still the same,
"that changes things, doesn't it?" "It do," another deep voice
said. Its owner was a shadow. "Do you really think so?" This was the
second time I heard Atticus ask that question in two days, and it
meant somebody's man would get jumped. This was too good to miss.
I broke away from Jem and ran as fast as I could to Atticus. Jem
shrieked and tried to catch me, but I had a lead on him and Dill. I
pushed my way through dark smelly bodies and burst into the
circle of light. "H-ey, Atticus!" I thought he would have a
fine surprise, but his face killed my joy. A flash of plain fear
was going out of his eyes, but returned when Dill and Jem wriggled
into the light. There was a smell of stale whiskey and pigpen
about, and when I glanced around I discovered that these men
were strangers. They were not the people I saw last night.
Hot embarrassment shot through me: I had leaped triumphantly into a
ring of people I had never seen before. Atticus got up from his
chair, but he was moving slowly, like an old man. He put the
newspaper down very carefully, adjusting its creases with
lingering fingers. They were trembling a little. "Go home, Jem,"
he said. "Take Scout and Dill home." We were accustomed to
prompt, if not always cheerful acquiescence to Atticus's
instructions, but from the way he stood Jem was not thinking of
budging. "Go home, I said." Jem shook his head. As Atticus's
fists went to his hips, so did Jem's, and as they faced
each other I could see little resemblance between them: Jem's
soft brown hair and eyes, his oval face and snug-fitting ears were
our mother's, contrasting oddly with Atticus's graying black
hair and square-cut features, but they were somehow alike.
Mutual defiance made them alike. "Son, I said go home." Jem shook
his head. "I'll send him home," a burly man said, and
grabbed Jem roughly by the collar. He yanked Jem nearly off his feet.
"Don't you touch him!" I kicked the man swiftly. Barefooted, I was
surprised to see him fall back in real pain. I intended to kick his
shin, but aimed too high. "That'll do, Scout." Atticus put his
hand on my shoulder. "Don't kick folks. No-" he said, as I
was pleading justification. "Ain't nobody gonna do Jem that way," I
said. "All right, Mr. Finch, get 'em outa here," someone growled.
"You got fifteen seconds to get 'em outa here." In the midst of
this strange assembly, Atticus stood trying to make Jem mind
him. "I ain't going," was his steady answer to Atticus's
threats, requests, and finally, "Please Jem, take them home." I
was getting a bit tired of that, but felt Jem had his own
reasons for doing as he did, in view of his prospects once
Atticus did get him home. I looked around the crowd. It was a
summer's night, but the men were dressed, most of them, in
overalls and denim shirts buttoned up to the collars. I
thought they must be cold-natured, as their sleeves were
unrolled and buttoned at the cuffs. Some wore hats pulled firmly
down over their ears. They were sullen- looking, sleepy-eyed
men who seemed unused to late hours. I sought once more for
a familiar face, and at the center of the semi-circle I found
one. "Hey, Mr. Cunningham." The man did not hear me, it seemed.
"Hey, Mr. Cunningham. How's your entailment gettin' along?" Mr.
Walter Cunningham's legal affairs were well known to me;
Atticus had once described them at length. The big man blinked
and hooked his thumbs in his overall straps. He seemed uncomfortable;
he cleared his throat and looked away. My friendly overture had
fallen flat. Mr. Cunningham wore no hat, and the top half of
his forehead was white in contrast to his sunscorched face,
which led me to believe that he wore one most days. He
shifted his feet, clad in heavy work shoes. "Don't you remember me,
Mr. Cunningham? I'm Jean Louise Finch. You brought us some
hickory nuts one time, remember?" I began to sense the
futility one feels when unacknowledged by a chance acquaintance.
"I go to school with Walter," I began again. "He's your boy, ain't he?
Ain't he, sir?" Mr. Cunningham was moved to a faint nod. He did know
me, after all. "He's in my grade," I said, "and he does
right well. He's a good boy," I added, "a real nice boy. We brought
him home for dinner one time. Maybe he told you about me, I
beat him up one time but he was real nice about it. Tell him hey for
me, won't you?" Atticus had said it was the polite thing to
talk to people about what they were interested in, not about
what you were interested in. Mr. Cunningham displayed no interest in
his son, so I tackled his entailment once more in a last-ditch effort
to make him feel at home . "Entailments are bad," I was
advising him, when I slowly awoke to the fact that I was
addressing the entire aggregation. The men were all looking at
me, some had their mouths half-open. Atticus had stopped poking at
Jem: they were standing together beside Dill. Their attention
amounted to fascination. Atticus's mouth, even, was half- open,
an attitude he had once described as uncouth. Our eyes met and
he shut it. "Well, Atticus, I was just sayin' to Mr.
Cunningham that entailments are bad an' all that, but you said not to
worry, it takes a long time sometimes... that you all'd ride
it out together..." I was slowly drying up, wondering what idiocy I
had committed. Entailments seemed all right enough for
livingroom talk. I began to feel sweat gathering at the edges
of my hair; I could stand anything but a bunch of people
looking at me. They were quite still. "What's the matter?" I asked.
Atticus said nothing. I looked around and up at Mr.
Cunningham, whose face was equally impassive. Then he did a
peculiar thing. He squatted down and took me by both shoulders. "I'll
tell him you said hey, little lady," he said. Then he straightened
up and waved a big paw. "Let's clear out," he called. "Let's get
going, boys." As they had come, in ones and twos the men shuffled
back to their ramshackle cars. Doors slammed, engines coughed, and
they were gone. I turned to Atticus, but Atticus had gone to the
jail and was leaning against it with his face to the wall. I
went to him and pulled his sleeve. "Can we go home now?" He nodded,
produced his handkerchief, gave his face a going-over and blew
his nose violently. "Mr. Finch?" A soft husky voice came from
the darkness above: "They gone?" Atticus stepped back and
looked up. "They've gone," he said. "Get some sleep, Tom.
They won't bother you any more." From a different direction,
another voice cut crisply through the night: "You're damn tootin' they
won't. Had you covered all the time, Atticus." Mr. Underwood and a
double-barreled shotgun were leaning out his window above The Maycomb
Tribune office. It was long past my bedtime and I was growing quite
tired; it seemed that Atticus and Mr. Underwood would talk for the
rest of the night, Mr. Underwood out the window and Atticus up at
him. Finally Atticus returned, switched off the light above the
jail door, and picked up his chair. "Can I carry it for you,
Mr. Finch?" asked Dill. He had not said a word the whole time.
"Why, thank you, son." Walking toward the office, Dill and I
fell into step behind Atticus and Jem. Dill was encumbered by the
chair, and his pace was slower. Atticus and Jem were well
ahead of us, and I assumed that Atticus was giving him hell for not
going home, but I was wrong. As they passed under a streetlight,
Atticus reached out and massaged Jem's hair, his one gesture
of affection. 16 Jem heard me. He thrust his head around
the connecting door. As he came to my bed Atticus's light
flashed on. We stayed where we were until it went off; we heard him
turn over, and we waited until he was still again. Jem took me to
his room and put me in bed beside him. "Try to go to
sleep," he said, "It'll be all over after tomorrow, maybe." We
had come in quietly, so as not to wake Aunty. Atticus killed
the engine in the driveway and coasted to the carhouse; we
went in the back door and to our rooms without a word. I was
very tired, and was drifting into sleep when the memory of Atticus
calmly folding his newspaper and pushing back his hat became
Atticus standing in the middle of an empty waiting street,
pushing up his glasses. The full meaning of the night's
events hit me and I began crying. Jem was awfully nice about
it: for once he didn't remind me that people nearly nine
years old didn't do things like that. Everybody's appetite was
delicate this morning, except Jem's: he ate his way through
three eggs. Atticus watched in frank admiration; Aunt Alexandra
sipped coffee and radiated waves of disapproval. Children who
slipped out at night were a disgrace to the family. Atticus said he
was right glad his disgraces had come along, but Aunty said,
"Nonsense, Mr. Underwood was there all the time." "You know, it's
a funny thing about Braxton," said Atticus. "He despises
Negroes, won't have one near him." Local opinion held Mr. Underwood
to be an intense, profane little man, whose father in a fey fit
of humor christened Braxton Bragg, a name Mr. Underwood had done his
best to live down. Atticus said naming people after Confederate
generals made slow steady drinkers. Calpurnia was serving Aunt
Alexandra more coffee, and she shook her head at what I thought
was a pleading winning look. "You're still too little," she said.
"I'll tell you when you ain't." I said it might help my stomach. "All
right," she said, and got a cup from the sideboard. She poured
one tablespoonful of coffee into it and filled the cup to the brim
with milk. I thanked her by sticking out my tongue at it,
and looked up to catch Aunty's warning frown. But she was frowning at
Atticus. She waited until Calpurnia was in the kitchen, then
she said, "Don't talk like that in front of them." "Talk like what in
front of whom?" he asked. "Like that in front of Calpurnia. You said
Braxton Underwood despises Negroes right in front of her." "Well, I'm
sure Cal knows it. Everybody in Maycomb knows it." I was beginning
to notice a subtle change in my father these days, that came
out when he talked with Aunt Alexandra. It was a quiet
digging in, never outright irritation. There was a faint
starchiness in his voice when he said, "Anything fit to say at the
table's fit to say in front of Calpurnia. She knows what she means to
this family." "I don't think it's a good habit, Atticus. It
encourages them. You know how they talk among themselves. Every
thing that happens in this town's out to the Quarters
before sundown." My father put down his knife. "I don't know of any
law that says they can't talk. Maybe if we didn't give them so much to
talk about they'd be quiet. Why don't you drink your coffee,
Scout?" I was playing in it with the spoon. "I thought Mr.
Cunningham was a friend of ours. You told me a long time
ago he was." "He still is." "But last night he wanted to hurt you."
Atticus placed his fork beside his knife and pushed his plate aside.
"Mr. Cunningham's basically a good man," he said, "he just has
his blind spots along with the rest of us." Jem spoke. "Don't call
that a blind spot. He'da killed you last night when he first
went there." "He might have hurt me a little," Atticus
conceded, "but son, you'll understand folks a little better when
you're older. A mob's always made up of people, no matter
what. Mr. Cunningham was part of a mob last night, but he was still a
man. Every mob in every little Southern town is always made
up of people you know- doesn't say much for them, does it?"
"I'll say not," said Jem. "So it took an eight-year-old child
to bring 'em to their senses, didn't it?" said Atticus. "That
proves something- that a gang of wild animals can be stopped, simply
because they're still human. Hmp, maybe we need a police
force of children... you children last night made Walter Cunningham
stand in my shoes for a minute. That was enough." Well, I hoped
Jem would understand folks a little better when he was older;
I wouldn't. "First day Walter comes back to school'll be his
last," I affirmed. "You will not touch him," Atticus said
flatly. "I don't want either of you bearing a grudge about
this thing, no matter what happens." "You see, don't you,"
said Aunt Alexandra, "what comes of things like this. Don't say I
haven't told you." Atticus said he'd never say that, pushed
out his chair and got up. "There's a day ahead, so excuse
me. Jem, I don't want you and Scout downtown today, please." As
Atticus departed, Dill came bounding down the hall into the
diningroom. "It's all over town this morning," he announced,
"all about how we held off a hundred folks with our bare hands...."
Aunt Alexandra stared him to silence. "It was not a hundred folks,"
she said, "and nobody held anybody off. It was just a nest of those
Cunninghams, drunk and disorderly." "Aw, Aunty, that's just Dill's
way," said Jem. He signaled us to follow him. "You all stay in
the yard today," she said, as we made our way to the front
porch. It was like Saturday. People from the south end of
the county passed our house in a leisurely but steady stream. Mr.
Dolphus Raymond lurched by on his thoroughbred. "Don't see how
he stays in the saddle," murmured Jem. "How c'n you stand to get
drunk 'fore eight in the morning?" A wagonload of ladies rattled
past us. They wore cotton sunbonnets and dresses with long
sleeves. A bearded man in a wool hat drove them. "Yonder's some
Mennonites," Jem said to Dill. "They don't have buttons." They
lived deep in the woods, did most of their trading across
the river, and rarely came to Maycomb. Dill was interested.
"They've all got blue eyes," Jem explained, "and the men
can't shave after they marry. Their wives like for 'em to tickle 'em
with their beards." Mr. X Billups rode by on a mule and
waved to us. "He's a funny man," said Jem. "X's his name, not his
initial. He was in court one time and they asked him his name. He
said X Billups. Clerk asked him to spell it and he said X. Asked him
again and he said X. They kept at it till he wrote X on
a sheet of paper and held it up for everybody to see. They
asked him where he got his name and he said that's the way
his folks signed him up when he was born." As the county went by
us, Jem gave Dill the histories and general attitudes of the
more prominent figures: Mr. Tensaw Jones voted the straight
Prohibition ticket; Miss Emily Davis dipped snuff in private; Mr.
Byron Waller could play the violin; Mr. Jake Slade was cutting his
third set of teeth. A wagonload of unusually stern-faced
citizens appeared. When they pointed to Miss Maudie Atkinson's
yard, ablaze with summer flowers, Miss Maudie herself came out on the
porch. There was an odd thing about Miss Maudie- on her
porch she was too far away for us to see her features
clearly, but we could always catch her mood by the way she stood. She
was now standing arms akimbo, her shoulders drooping a
little, her head cocked to one side, her glasses winking in
the sunlight. We knew she wore a grin of the uttermost
wickedness. The driver of the wagon slowed down his mules,
and a shrill-voiced woman called out: "He that cometh in
vanity departeth in darkness!" Miss Maudie answered: "A merry
heart maketh a cheerful countenance!" I guess that the foot-
washers thought that the Devil was quoting Scripture for his
own purposes, as the driver speeded his mules. Why they
objected to Miss Maudie's yard was a mystery, heightened in
my mind because for someone who spent all the daylight hours
outdoors, Miss Maudie's command of Scripture was formidable. "You
goin' to court this morning?" asked Jem. We had strolled over.
"I am not," she said. "I have no business with the court this
morning." "Aren't you goin' down to watch?" asked Dill. "I am not.
't's morbid, watching a poor devil on trial for his life. Look at all
those folks, it's like a Roman carnival." "They hafta try him in
public, Miss Maudie," I said. "Wouldn't be right if they didn't."
"I'm quite aware of that," she said. "Just because it's public, I
don't have to go, do I?" Miss Stephanie Crawford came by. She
wore a hat and gloves. "Um, um, um," she said. "Look at all
those folks- you'd think William Jennings Bryan was speakin'."
"And where are you going, Stephanie?" inquired Miss Maudie.
"To the Jitney Jungle." Miss Maudie said she'd never seen Miss
Stephanie go to the Jitney Jungle in a hat in her life. "Well," said
Miss Stephanie, "I thought I might just look in at the
courthouse, to see what Atticus's up to." "Better be careful he
doesn't hand you a subpoena." We asked Miss Maudie to elucidate: she
said Miss Stephanie seemed to know so much about the case she might as
well be called on to testify. We held off until noon, when
Atticus came home to dinner and said they'd spent the morning
picking the jury. After dinner, we stopped by for Dill and went to
town. It was a gala occasion. There was no room at the
public hitching rail for another animal, mules and wagons were
parked under every available tree. The courthouse square was
covered with picnic parties sitting on newspapers, washing down
biscuit and syrup with warm milk from fruit jars. Some people
were gnawing on cold chicken and cold fried pork chops. The
more affluent chased their food with drugstore Coca-Cola in
bulb-shaped soda glasses. Greasy- faced children popped-the-whip
through the crowd, and babies lunched at their mothers' breasts.
In a far corner of the square, the Negroes sat quietly in the sun,
dining on sardines, crackers, and the more vivid flavors of Nehi Cola.
Mr. Dolphus Raymond sat with them. "Jem," said Dill, "he's drinkin'
out of a sack." Mr. Dolphus Raymond seemed to be so doing:
two yellow drugstore straws ran from his mouth to the depths
of a brown paper bag. "Ain't ever seen anybody do that," murmured
Dill. "How does he keep what's in it in it?" Jem giggled. "He's
got a Co-Cola bottle full of whiskey in there. That's so's not
to upset the ladies. You'll see him sip it all afternoon, he'll step
out for a while and fill it back up." "Why's he sittin' with the
colored folks?" "Always does. He likes 'em better'n he likes
us, I reckon. Lives by himself way down near the county line. He's
got a colored woman and all sorts of mixed chillun. Show you
some of 'em if we see 'em." "He doesn't look like trash," said Dill.
"He's not, he owns all one side of the riverbank down there, and he's
from a real old family to boot." "Then why does he do like that?"
"That's just his way," said Jem. "They say he never got over his
weddin'. He was supposed to marry one of the- the Spencer
ladies, I think. They were gonna have a huge weddin', but they
didn't- after the rehearsal the bride went upstairs and blew her
head off. Shotgun. She pulled the trigger with her toes." "Did
they ever know why?" "No," said Jem, "nobody ever knew quite
why but Mr. Dolphus. They said it was because she found out about
his colored woman, he reckoned he could keep her and get
married too. He's been sorta drunk ever since. You know,
though, he's real good to those chillun-" "Jem," I asked, "what's a
mixed child?" "Half white, half colored. You've seen 'em, Scout. You
know that red-kinky-headed one that delivers for the drugstore.
He's half white. They're real sad." "Sad, how come?" "They don't
belong anywhere. Colored folks won't have 'em because they're half
white; white folks won't have 'em cause they're colored, so
they're just in-betweens, don't belong anywhere. But Mr.
Dolphus, now, they say he's shipped two of his up north. They
don't mind 'em up north. Yonder's one of 'em." A small boy clutching
a Negro woman's hand walked toward us. He looked all Negro to
me: he was rich chocolate with flaring nostrils and beautiful
teeth. Sometimes he would skip happily, and the Negro woman
tugged his hand to make him stop. Jem waited until they passed
us. "That's one of the little ones," he said. "How can you
tell?" asked Dill. "He looked black to me." "You can't sometimes,
not unless you know who they are. But he's half Raymond, all
right." "But how can you tell?" I asked. "I told you, Scout, you
just hafta know who they are." "Well how do you know we ain't
Negroes?" "Uncle Jack Finch says we really don't know. He says as far
as he can trace back the Finches we ain't, but for all he
knows we mighta come straight out of Ethiopia durin' the Old
Testament." "Well if we came out durin' the Old Testament
it's too long ago to matter." "That's what I thought," said
Jem, "but around here once you have a drop of Negro blood,
that makes you all black. Hey, look-" Some invisible signal had
made the lunchers on the square rise and scatter bits of
newspaper, cellophane, and wrapping paper. Children came to
mothers, babies were cradled on hips as men in sweat-stained hats
collected their families and herded them through the courthouse doors.
In the far corner of the square the Negroes and Mr. Dolphus
Raymond stood up and dusted their breeches. There were few
women and children among them, which seemed to dispel the
holiday mood. They waited patiently at the doors behind the white
families. "Let's go in," said Dill. "Naw, we better wait till they
get in, Atticus might not like it if he sees us," said Jem. The
Maycomb County courthouse was faintly reminiscent of Arlington in one
respect: the concrete pillars supporting its south roof were too
heavy for their light burden. The pillars were all that remained
standing when the original courthouse burned in 1856. Another
courthouse was built around them. It is better to say, built in
spite of them. But for the south porch, the Maycomb County
courthouse was early Victorian, presenting an unoffensive vista
when seen from the north. From the other side, however, Greek revival
columns clashed with a big nineteenth-century clock tower
housing a rusty unreliable instrument, a view indicating a
people determined to preserve every physical scrap of the
past. To reach the courtroom, on the second floor, one
passed sundry sunless county cubbyholes: the tax assessor, the tax
collector, the county clerk, the county solicitor, the circuit
clerk, the judge of probate lived in cool dim hutches that
smelled of decaying record books mingled with old damp cement
and stale urine. It was necessary to turn on the lights in
the daytime; there was always a film of dust on the rough
floorboards. The inhabitants of these offices were creatures of
their environment: little gray-faced men, they seemed untouched
by wind or sun. We knew there was a crowd, but we had not bargained
for the multitudes in the first-floor hallway. I got separated
from Jem and Dill, but made my way toward the wall by the stairwell,
knowing Jem would come for me eventually. I found myself in
the middle of the Idlers' Club and made myself as unobtrusive
as possible. This was a group of white-shirted, khaki-
trousered, suspendered old men who had spent their lives doing
nothing and passed their twilight days doing same on pine benches
under the live oaks on the square. Attentive critics of courthouse
business, Atticus said they knew as much law as the Chief Justice,
from long years of observation. Normally, they were the court's
only spectators, and today they seemed resentful of the
interruption of their comfortable routine. When they spoke, their
voices sounded casually important. The conversation was about my
father. "...thinks he knows what he's doing," one said. "Oh-h now,
I wouldn't say that," said another. "Atticus Finch's a deep
reader, a mighty deep reader." "He reads all right, that's all he
does." The club snickered. "Lemme tell you somethin' now,
Billy," a third said, "you know the court appointed him to defend
this nigger." "Yeah, but Atticus aims to defend him. That's
what I don't like about it." This was news, news that put a
different light on things: Atticus had to, whether he wanted
to or not. I thought it odd that he hadn't said anything to
us about it- we could have used it many times in defending
him and ourselves. He had to, that's why he was doing it, equaled
fewer fights and less fussing. But did that explain the town's
attitude? The court appointed Atticus to defend him. Atticus aimed to
defend him. That's what they didn't like about it. It was
confusing. The Negroes, having waited for the white people to
go upstairs, began to come in. "Whoa now, just a minute," said a club
member, holding up his walking stick. "Just don't start up them
there stairs yet awhile." The club began its stiff-jointed climb
and ran into Dill and Jem on their way down looking for me. They
squeezed past and Jem called, "Scout, come on, there ain't a
seat left. We'll hafta stand up." "Looka there, now." he said
irritably, as the black people surged upstairs. The old men
ahead of them would take most of the standing room. We were out of
luck and it was my fault, Jem informed me. We stood miserably by the
wall. "Can't you all get in?" Reverend Sykes was looking down at
us, black hat in hand. "Hey, Reverend," said Jem. "Naw, Scout
here messed us up." "Well, let's see what we can do." Reverend
Sykes edged his way upstairs. In a few moments he was back. "There's
not a seat downstairs. Do you all reckon it'll be all right if you all
came to the balcony with me?" "Gosh yes," said Jem. Happily, we
sped ahead of Reverend Sykes to the courtroom floor. There, we went
up a covered staircase and waited at the door. Reverend Sykes
came puffing behind us, and steered us gently through the black
people in the balcony. Four Negroes rose and gave us their front-row
seats. The Colored balcony ran along three walls of the courtroom
like a second-story veranda, and from it we could see
everything. The jury sat to the left, under long windows.
Sunburned, lanky, they seemed to be all farmers, but this was natural:
townfolk rarely sat on juries, they were either struck or
excused. One or two of the jury looked vaguely like dressed-
up Cunninghams. At this stage they sat straight and alert. The
circuit solicitor and another man, Atticus and Tom Robinson
sat at tables with their backs to us. There was a brown book
and some yellow tablets on the solicitor's table; Atticus's was bare.
Just inside the railing that divided the spectators from the
court, the witnesses sat on cowhide-bottomed chairs. Their backs were
to us. Judge Taylor was on the bench, looking like a sleepy
old shark, his pilot fish writing rapidly below in front of
him. Judge Taylor looked like most judges I had ever seen:
amiable, white-haired, slightly ruddy-faced, he was a man who
ran his court with an alarming informality- he sometimes
propped his feet up, he often cleaned his fingernails with
his pocket knife. In long equity hearings, especially after
dinner, he gave the impression of dozing, an impression dispelled
lawyer once deliberately pushed a pile of books to the floor
in a desperate effort to wake him up. Without opening his eyes, Judge
Taylor murmured, "Mr. Whitley, do that again and it'll cost you one
hundred dollars." forever when a He was a man learned in the law,
and although he seemed to take his job casually, in reality he kept a
firm grip on any proceedings that came before him. Only once
was Judge Taylor ever seen at a dead standstill in open court, and
the Cunninghams stopped him. Old Sarum, their stamping grounds,
was populated by two families separate and apart in the beginning, but
unfortunately bearing the same name. The Cunninghams married the
Coninghams until the spelling of the names was academic-
academic until a Cunningham disputed a Coningham over land
titles and took to the law. During a controversy of this
character, Jeems Cunningham testified that his mother spelled
it Cunningham on deeds and things, but she was really a
Coningham, she was an uncertain speller, a seldom reader, and
was given to looking far away sometimes when she sat on the front
gallery in the evening. After nine hours of listening to the
eccentricities of Old Sarum's inhabitants, Judge Taylor threw the
case out of court. When asked upon Judge grounds, "Champertous
what connivance," and declared he hoped to God the litigants
were satisfied by each having had their public say. They
were. That was all they had wanted in the first place. Taylor said,
Judge Taylor had one interesting habit. He permitted smoking
in his courtroom but did not himself indulge: sometimes, if
one was lucky, one had the privilege of watching him put a long
dry cigar into his mouth and munch it slowly up. Bit by bit the
dead cigar would disappear, to reappear some hours later as a
flat slick mess, its essence extracted and mingling with Judge
Taylor's digestive juices. I once asked Atticus how Mrs. Taylor stood
to kiss him, but Atticus said they didn't kiss much. The witness
stand was to the right of Judge Taylor, and when we got to our
seats Mr. Heck Tate was already on it. 17 "Jem," I said, "are
those the Ewells sittin' down yonder?" "Hush," said Jem, "Mr. Heck
Tate's testifyin'." Mr. Tate had dressed for the occasion. He wore an
ordinary business suit, which made him look somehow like every
other man: gone were his high boots, lumber jacket, and
bullet-studded belt. From that moment he ceased to terrify me. He
was sitting forward in the witness chair, his hands clasped
between his knees, listening attentively to the circuit
solicitor. The solicitor, a Mr. Gilmer, was not well known to us. He
was from Abbottsville; we saw him only when court convened,
and that rarely, for court was of no special interest to
Jem and me. A balding, smooth-faced man, he could have been anywhere
between forty and sixty. Although his back was to us, we knew he had a
slight cast in one of his eyes which he used to his advantage: he
seemed to be looking at a person when he was actually doing
nothing of the kind, thus he was hell on juries and
witnesses. The jury, thinking themselves under close scrutiny,
paid attention; so did the witnesses, thinking likewise. "...in
your own words, Mr. Tate," Mr. Gilmer was saying. "Well," said Mr.
Tate, touching his glasses and speaking to his knees, "I was
called-" "Could you say it to the jury, Mr. Tate? Thank
you. Who called you?" Mr. Tate said, "I was fetched by Bob-
by Mr. Bob Ewell yonder, one night-" "What night, sir?" Mr. Tate
said, "It was the night of November twenty-first. I was just leaving
my office to go home when B- Mr. Ewell came in, very excited
he was, and said get out to his house quick, some nigger'd raped his
girl." "Did you go?" "Certainly. Got in the car and went out as fast
as I could." "And what did you find?" "Found her lying on the
floor in the middle of the front room, one on the right as
you go in. She was pretty well beat up, but I heaved her
to her feet and she washed her face in a bucket in the
corner and said she was all right. I asked her who hurt her and
she said it was Tom Robinson-" Judge Taylor, who had been
concentrating on his fingernails, looked up as if he were expecting an
objection, but Atticus was quiet. "-asked her if he beat her
like that, she said yes he had. Asked her if he took advantage
of her and she said yes he did. So I went down to Robinson's
house and brought him back. She identified him as the one, so I
took him in. That's all there was to it." "Thank you," said Mr.
Gilmer. Judge Taylor said, "Any questions, Atticus?" "Yes," said
my father. He was sitting behind his table; his chair was
skewed to one side, his legs were crossed and one arm was
resting on the back of his chair. "Did you call a doctor,
Sheriff? Did anybody call a doctor?" asked Atticus. "No sir,"
said Mr. Tate. "Didn't call a doctor?" "No sir," repeated Mr. Tate.
"Why not?" There was an edge to Atticus's voice. "Well I can tell
you why I didn't. It wasn't necessary, Mr. Finch. She was
mighty banged up. Something sho' happened, it was obvious." "But
you didn't call a doctor? While you were there did anyone
send for one, fetch one, carry her to one?" "No sir-" Judge Taylor
broke in. "He's answered the question three times, Atticus. He
didn't call a doctor." Atticus said, "I just wanted to make
sure, Judge," and the judge smiled. Jem's hand, which was resting
on the balcony rail, tightened around it. He drew in his breath
suddenly. Glancing below, I saw no corresponding reaction, and
wondered if Jem was trying to be dramatic. Dill was watching
peacefully, and so was Reverend Sykes beside him. "What is it?" I
whispered, and got a terse, "Sh-h!" "Sheriff," Atticus was
saying, "you say she was mighty banged up. In what way?" "Well-"
"Just describe her injuries, Heck." "Well, she was beaten around the
head. There was already bruises comin' on her arms, and it
happened about thirty minutes before-" "How do you know?" Mr. Tate
grinned. "Sorry, that's what they said. Anyway, she was pretty bruised
up when I got there, and she had a black eye comin'." "Which eye?"
Mr. Tate blinked and ran his hands through his hair. "Let's
see," he said softly, then he looked at Atticus as if he
considered the question childish. "Can't you remember?" Atticus
asked. Mr. Tate pointed to an invisible person five inches in front
of him and said, "Her left." "Wait a minute, Sheriff," said Atticus.
"Was it her left facing you or her left looking the same way you
were?" Mr. Tate said, "Oh yes, that'd make it her right. It
was her right eye, Mr. Finch. I remember now, she was bunged
up on that side of her face...." Mr. Tate blinked again, as if
something had suddenly been made plain to him. Then he turned
his head and looked around at Tom Robinson. As if by
instinct, Tom Robinson raised his head. Something had been made
plain to Atticus also, and it brought him to his feet.
"Sheriff, please repeat what you said." "It was her right eye, I
said." "No..." Atticus walked to the court reporter's desk and bent
down to the furiously scribbling hand. It stopped, flipped
back the shorthand pad, and the court reporter said, "'Mr.
Finch. I remember now she was bunged up on that side of the face.'"
Atticus looked up at Mr. Tate. "Which side again, Heck?" "The right
side, Mr. Finch, but she had more bruises- you wanta hear
about 'em?" Atticus seemed to be bordering on another question, but
he thought better of it and said, "Yes, what were her other
injuries?" As Mr. Tate answered, Atticus turned and looked at
Tom Robinson as if to say this was something they hadn't bargained
for. "...her arms were bruised, and she showed me her neck.
There were definite finger marks on her gullet-" "All around her
throat? At the back of her neck?" "I'd say they were all around, Mr.
Finch." "You would?" "Yes sir, she had a small throat,
anybody could'a reached around it with-" "Just answer the
question yes or no, please, Sheriff," said Atticus dryly, and
Mr. Tate fell silent. Atticus sat down and nodded to the
circuit solicitor, who shook his head at the judge, who
nodded to Mr. Tate, who rose stiffly and stepped down from the
witness stand. Below us, heads turned, feet scraped the floor, babies
were shifted to shoulders, and a few children scampered out
of the courtroom. The Negroes behind us whispered softly among
themselves; Dill was asking Reverend Sykes what it was all about,
but Reverend Sykes said he didn't know. So far, things were
utterly dull: nobody had thundered, there were no arguments
between opposing counsel, there was no drama; a grave
disappointment to all present, it seemed. Atticus was proceeding
amiably, as if he were involved in a title dispute. With his infinite
capacity for calming turbulent seas, he could make a rape case as dry
as a sermon. Gone was the terror in my mind of stale whiskey
and barnyard smells, of sleepy-eyed sullen men, of a husky
voice calling in the night, "Mr. Finch? They gone?" Our
nightmare had gone with daylight, everything would come out all
right. All the spectators were as relaxed as Judge Taylor,
except Jem. His mouth was twisted into a purposeful half-grin, and his
eyes happy about, and he said something about corroborating
evidence, which made me sure he was showing off. "...Robert E.
Lee Ewell!" In answer to the clerk's booming voice, a little bantam
cock of a man rose and strutted to the stand, the back of
his neck reddening at the sound of his name. When he turned
around to take the oath, we saw that his face was as red as his neck.
We also saw no resemblance to his namesake. A shock of
wispy new-washed hair stood up from his forehead; his nose was
thin, pointed, and shiny; he had no chin to speak of- it seemed to be
part of his crepey neck. "-so help me God," he crowed. Every town
the size of Maycomb had families like the Ewells. No economic
fluctuations changed their status- people like the Ewells lived as
guests of the county in prosperity as well as in the depths of a
depression. No truant officers could keep their numerous offspring in
school; no public health officer could free them from congenital
defects, various worms, and the diseases indigenous to filthy
surroundings. Maycomb's Ewells lived behind the town garbage
dump in what was once a Negro cabin. The cabin's plank walls were
supplemented with sheets of corrugated iron, its roof shingled
with tin cans hammered flat, so only its general shape
suggested its original design: square, with four tiny rooms
opening onto a shotgun hall, the cabin rested uneasily upon
four irregular lumps of limestone. Its windows were merely open
spaces in the walls, which in the summertime were covered with greasy
strips of cheesecloth to keep out the varmints that feasted on
Maycomb's refuse. The varmints had a lean time of it, for the Ewells
gave the dump a thorough gleaning every day, and the fruits of their
industry (those that were not eaten) made the plot of ground
around the cabin look like the playhouse of an insane child:
what passed for a fence was bits of tree-limbs, broomsticks and tool
shafts, all tipped with rusty hammer- heads, snaggle-toothed
rake heads, shovels, axes and grubbing hoes, held on with pieces
of barbed wire. Enclosed by this barricade was a dirty yard containing
the remains of a Model-T Ford (on blocks), a discarded
dentist's chair, an ancient icebox, plus lesser items: old shoes,
worn-out table radios, picture frames, and fruit jars, under
which scrawny orange chickens pecked hopefully. One corner of the
yard, though, bewildered Maycomb. Against the fence, in a
line, were six chipped-enamel slop jars holding brilliant red
geraniums, cared for as tenderly as if they belonged to Miss
Maudie Atkinson, had Miss Maudie deigned to permit a geranium on
her premises. People said they were Mayella Ewell's. Nobody was
quite sure how many children were on the place. Some people
said six, others said nine; there were always several dirty-
faced ones at the windows when anyone passed by. Nobody had
occasion to pass by except at Christmas, when the churches
delivered baskets, and when the mayor of Maycomb asked us to
please help the garbage collector by dumping our own trees and
trash. Atticus took us with him last Christmas when he
complied with the mayor's request. A dirt road ran from the highway
past the dump, down to a small Negro settlement some five hundred
yards beyond the Ewells'. It was necessary either to back out
to the highway or go the full length of the road and turn around;
most people turned around in the Negroes' front yards. In the
frosty December dusk, their cabins looked neat and snug with
pale blue smoke rising from the chimneys and doorways glowing
amber from the fires inside. There were delicious smells
about: chicken, bacon frying crisp as the twilight air. Jem
and I detected squirrel cooking, but it took an old
countryman like Atticus to identify possum and rabbit, aromas
that vanished when we rode back past the Ewell residence. All the
little man on the witness stand had that made him any better
than his nearest neighbors was, that if scrubbed with lye soap in
very hot water, his skin was white. "Mr. Robert Ewell?" asked Mr.
Gilmer. "That's m'name, cap'n," said the witness. Mr. Gilmer's back
stiffened a little, and I felt sorry for him. Perhaps I'd better
explain something now. I've heard that lawyers' children, on
seeing their parents in court in the heat of argument, get the
wrong idea: they think opposing counsel to be the personal
enemies of their parents, they suffer agonies, and are surprised
to see them often go out arm-in-arm with their tormenters
during the first recess. This was not true of Jem and me. We
acquired no traumas from watching our father win or lose. I'm sorry
that I can't provide any drama in this respect; if I did, it
would not be true. We could tell, however, when debate became
more acrimonious than professional, but this was from watching
lawyers other than our father. I never heard Atticus raise his voice
in my life, except to a deaf witness. Mr. Gilmer was doing
his job, as Atticus was doing his. Besides, Mr. Ewell was
Mr. Gilmer's witness, and he had no business being rude to him
of all people. "Are you the father of Mayella Ewell?" was the
next question. "Well, if I ain't I can't do nothing about it
now, her ma's dead," was the answer. Judge Taylor stirred. He
turned slowly in his swivel chair and looked benignly at the
witness. "Are you the father of Mayella Ewell?" he asked, in
a way that made the laughter below us stop suddenly. "Yes sir,"
Mr. Ewell said meekly. Judge Taylor went on in tones of good
will: "This the first time you've ever been in court? I
don't recall ever seeing you here." At the witness's
affirmative nod he continued, "Well, let's get something
straight. There will be no more audibly obscene speculations
on any subject from anybody in this courtroom as long as I'm
sitting here. Do you understand?" Mr. Ewell nodded, but I
don't think he did. Judge Taylor sighed and said, "All right, Mr.
Gilmer?" "Thank you, sir. Mr. Ewell, would you tell us in
your own words what happened on the evening of November twenty-
first, please?" Jem grinned and pushed his hair back. Just-in-
your-own words was Mr. Gilmer's trademark. We often wondered who
else's words Mr. Gilmer was afraid his witness might employ.
"Well, the night of November twenty-one I was comin' in from
the woods with a load o'kindlin' and just as I got to the
fence I heard Mayella screamin' like a stuck hog inside the
house-" Here Judge Taylor glanced sharply at the witness and must
have decided his speculations devoid of evil intent, for he
subsided sleepily. "What time was it, Mr. Ewell?" "Just 'fore
sundown. Well, I was sayin' Mayella was screamin' fit to beat
Jesus-" another glance from the bench silenced Mr. Ewell. "Yes? She
was screaming?" said Mr. Gilmer. Mr. Ewell looked confusedly at the
judge. "Well, Mayella was raisin' this holy racket so I dropped
m'load and run as fast as I could but I run into th' fence, but when
I got distangled I run up to th' window and I seen-" Mr.
Ewell's face grew scarlet. He stood up and pointed his finger at Tom
Robinson. "-I seen that black nigger yonder ruttin' on my Mayella!"
So serene was Judge Taylor's court, that he had few occasions
to use his gavel, but he hammered fully five minutes. Atticus
was on his feet at the bench saying something to him, Mr.
Heck Tate as first officer of the county stood in the middle
aisle quelling the packed courtroom. Behind us, there was an
angry muffled groan from the colored people. Reverend Sykes leaned
across Dill and me, pulling at Jem's elbow. "Mr. Jem," he said, "you
better take Miss Jean Louise home. Mr. Jem, you hear me?" Jem turned
his head. "Scout, go home. Dill, you'n'Scout go home." "You gotta
make me first," I said, remembering Atticus's blessed dictum.
Jem scowled furiously at me, then said to Reverend Sykes, "I think
it's okay, Reverend, she doesn't understand it. " I was mortally
offended. "I most certainly do, I c'n understand anything you
can." "Aw hush. She doesn't understand it, Reverend, she
ain't nine yet." Reverend Sykes's black eyes were anxious. "Mr.
Finch know you all are here? This ain't fit for Miss Jean
Louise or you boys either." Jem shook his head. "He can't see us
this far away. It's all right, Reverend." I knew Jem would win,
because I knew nothing could make him leave now. Dill and I were
safe, for a while: Atticus could see us from where he was, if he
looked. As Judge Taylor banged his gavel, Mr. Ewell was
sitting smugly in the witness chair, surveying his handiwork.
With one phrase he had turned happy picknickers into a sulky,
tense, murmuring crowd, being slowly hypnotized by gavel taps
lessening in intensity until the only sound in the courtroom
was a dim pink-pink-pink: the judge might have been rapping the bench
with a pencil. In possession of his court once more, Judge
Taylor leaned back in his chair. He looked suddenly weary;
his age was showing, and I thought about what Atticus had said- he
and Mrs. Taylor didn't kiss much- he must have been nearly
seventy. "There has been a request," Judge Taylor said, "that
this courtroom be cleared of spectators, or at least of women
and children, a request that will be denied for the time
being. People generally see what they look for, and hear what
they listen for, and they have the right to subject their children to
it, but I can assure you of one thing: you will receive
what you see and hear in silence or you will leave this
courtroom, but you won't leave it until the whole boiling of you come
before me on contempt charges. Mr. Ewell, you will keep your
testimony within the confines of Christian English usage, if that
is possible. Proceed, Mr. Gilmer." Mr. Ewell reminded me of a
deaf-mute. I was sure he had never heard the words Judge
Taylor directed at him- his mouth struggled silently with
them- but their import registered on his face. Smugness faded from
it, replaced by a dogged earnestness that fooled Judge Taylor not at
all: as long as Mr. Ewell was on the stand, the judge kept his eyes on
him, as if daring him to make a false move. Mr. Gilmer and Atticus
exchanged glances. Atticus was sitting down again, his fist rested
on his cheek and we could not see his face. Mr. Gilmer looked
rather desperate. A question from Judge Taylor made him relax: "Mr.
Ewell, did you see the defendant having sexual intercourse with
your daughter?" "Yes, I did." The spectators were quiet, but
the defendant said something. Atticus whispered to him, and
Tom Robinson was silent. "You say you were at the window?" asked Mr.
Gilmer. "Yes sir." "How far is it from the ground?" "'bout three
foot." "Did you have a clear view of the room?" "Yes sir." "How did
the room look?" "Well, it was all slung about, like there was a
fight." "What did you do when you saw the defendant?" "Well, I run
around the house to get in, but he run out the front door just ahead
of me. I sawed who he was, all right. I was too distracted about
Mayella to run after'im. I run in the house and she was lyin' on
the floor squallin'-" "Then what did you do?" "Why, I run for Tate
quick as I could. I knowed who it was, all right, lived down yonder in
that nigger-nest, passed the house every day. Jedge, I've asked
this county for fifteen years to clean out that nest down yonder,
they're dangerous to live around 'sides devaluin' my property-"
"Thank you, Mr. Ewell," said Mr. Gilmer hurriedly. The witness made
a hasty descent from the stand and ran smack into Atticus,
who had risen to question him. Judge Taylor permitted the court
to laugh. "Just a minute, sir," said Atticus genially. "Could I ask
you a question or two?" Mr. Ewell backed up into the witness
chair, settled himself, and regarded Atticus with haughty suspicion,
an expression common to Maycomb County witnesses when confronted by
opposing counsel. "Mr. Ewell," Atticus began, "folks were doing a lot
of running that night. Let's see, you say you ran to the house, you
ran to the window, you ran inside, you ran to Mayella, you ran
for Mr. Tate. Did you, during all this running, run for a
doctor?" "Wadn't no need to. I seen what happened." "But there's
one thing I don't understand," said Atticus. "Weren't you
concerned with Mayella's condition?" "I most positively was," said
Mr. Ewell. "I seen who done it." "No, I mean her physical
condition. Did you not think the immediate medical nature of
her attention?" injuries warranted "What?" "Didn't you
immediately?" think she should have had a doctor, The witness
said he never thought of it, he had never called a doctor to any
of his'n in his life, and if he had it would have cost him
five dollars. "That all?" he asked. "Not quite," said Atticus
casually. "Mr. Ewell, you heard the sheriff's testimony, didn't you?"
"How's that?" "You were in the courtroom when Mr. Heck Tate was on
the stand, weren't you? You heard everything he said, didn't
you?" Mr. Ewell considered the matter carefully, and seemed
to decide that the question was safe. "Yes," he said. "Do you agree
with his description of Mayella's injuries?" "How's that?" Atticus
looked around at Mr. Gilmer and smiled. Mr. Ewell seemed
determined not to give the defense the time of day. "Mr. Tate
testified that her right eye was blackened, that she was beaten around
the-" "Oh yeah," said the witness. "I hold with everything
Tate said." "You do?" asked Atticus mildly. "I just want to make
sure." He went to the court reporter, said something, and the
reporter entertained us for some minutes by reading Mr. Tate's
testimony as if it were stock-market quotations: "...which eye
her left oh yes that'd make it her right it was her right eye Mr.
Finch I remember now she was bunged." He flipped the page.
"Up on that side of the face Sheriff please repeat what you
said it was her right eye I said-" "Thank you, Bert," said
Atticus. "You heard it again, Mr. Ewell. Do you have anything to
add to it? Do you agree with the sheriff?" "I holds with Tate. Her
eye was blacked and she was mighty beat up." The little man seemed
to have forgotten his previous humiliation from the bench. It
was becoming evident that he thought Atticus an easy match.
He seemed to grow ruddy again; his chest swelled, and once more he
was a red little rooster. I thought he'd burst his shirt at Atticus's
next question: "Mr. Ewell, can you read and write?" Mr. Gilmer
interrupted. "Objection," he said. "Can't see what witness's case,
irrelevant'n'immaterial." do with literacy has the to
Judge Taylor was about to speak but Atticus said, "Judge, if you'll
allow the question plus another one you'll soon see." "All right,
let's see," said Judge Taylor, "but make sure we see, Atticus.
Overruled." Mr. Gilmer seemed as curious as the rest of us
as to what bearing the state of Mr. Ewell's education had on the
case. "I'll repeat the question," said Atticus. "Can you read
and write?" "I most positively can." "Will you write your name and
show us?" "I most positively will. How do you think I sign
my relief checks?" Mr. Ewell was endearing himself to his
fellow citizens. The whispers and chuckles below us probably
had to do with what a card he was. I was becoming nervous.
Atticus seemed to know what he was doing- but it seemed to me
that he'd gone frog-sticking without a light. Never, never,
never, on cross-examination ask a witness a question you don't
already know the answer to, was a tenet I absorbed with my
baby-food. Do it, and you'll often get an answer you don't
want, an answer that might wreck your case. Atticus was reaching
into the inside pocket of his coat. He drew out an envelope,
then reached into his vest pocket and unclipped his fountain pen.
He moved leisurely, and had turned so that he was in full view of the
jury. He unscrewed the fountain-pen cap and placed it gently on
his table. He shook the pen a little, then handed it with
the envelope to the witness. "Would you write your name for us?" he
asked. "Clearly now, so the jury can see you do it. " Mr. Ewell
wrote on the back of the envelope and looked up complacently to see
Judge Taylor staring at him as if he were some fragrant
gardenia in full bloom on the witness stand, to see Mr.
Gilmer half-sitting, half-standing at his table. The jury was
watching him, one man was leaning forward with his hands over the
railing. "What's so interestin'?" he asked. "You're left-handed,
Mr. Ewell," said Judge Taylor. Mr. Ewell turned angrily to the
judge and said he didn't see what his being left-handed had to do
with it, that he was a Christ- fearing man and Atticus Finch was
taking advantage of him. Tricking lawyers like Atticus Finch took
advantage of him all the time with their tricking ways. He had
told them what happened, he'd say it again and again- which
he did. Nothing Atticus asked him after that shook his story,
that he'd looked through the window, then ran the nigger off,
then ran for the sheriff. Atticus finally dismissed him. Mr. Gilmer
asked him one more question. "About your writing with your
left hand, are you ambidextrous, Mr. Ewell?" "I most positively
am not, I can use one hand good as the other. One hand good as the
other," he added, glaring at the defense table. Jem seemed to be
having a quiet fit. He was pounding the balcony rail softly, and
once he whispered, "We've got him." I didn't think so: Atticus
was trying to show, it seemed to me, that Mr. Ewell could have
beaten up Mayella. That much I could follow. If her right eye
was blacked and she was beaten mostly on the right side of the
face, it would tend to show that a left-handed person did it. Sherlock
Holmes and Jem Finch would agree. But Tom Robinson could
easily be left-handed, too. Like Mr. Heck Tate, I imagined
a person facing me, went through a swift mental pantomime,
and concluded that he might have held her with his right
hand and pounded her with his left. I looked down at him.
His back was to us, but I could see his broad shoulders and
bull-thick neck. He could easily have done it. I thought Jem was
counting his chickens. 18 But someone was booming again. "Mayella
Violet Ewell-!" A young girl walked to the witness stand. As she
raised her hand and swore that the evidence she gave would be
the truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth so help her God,
she seemed somehow fragile-looking, but when she sat facing us
in the witness chair she became what she was, a thick-bodied girl
accustomed to strenuous labor. In Maycomb County, it was easy
to tell when someone bathed regularly, as opposed to yearly
lavations: Mr. Ewell had a scalded look; as if an overnight soaking
had deprived him of protective layers of dirt, his skin
appeared to be sensitive to the elements. Mayella looked as
if she tried to keep clean, and I was reminded of the row of red
geraniums in the Ewell yard. Mr. Gilmer asked Mayella to tell
the jury in her own words what happened on the evening of
November twenty-first of last year, just in her own words, please.
Mayella sat silently. "Where were you at dusk on that
evening?" began Mr. Gilmer patiently. "On the porch." "Which
porch?" "Ain't but one, the front porch." "What were you doing on
the porch?" "Nothin'." Judge Taylor said, "Just tell us what
happened. You can do that, can't you?" Mayella stared at him and
burst into tears. She covered her mouth with her hands and sobbed.
Judge Taylor let her cry for a while, then he said, "That's
enough now. Don't be 'fraid of anybody here, as long as you tell
the truth. All this is strange to you, I know, but you've nothing to
be ashamed of and nothing to fear. What are you scared of?" Mayella
said something behind her hands. "What was that?" asked the judge
It was plain that he had never been confronted
with a problem of this kind. "How old are you?" he asked.
"Nineteen-and-a-half," Mayella said. Judge Taylor cleared his
throat and tried unsuccessfully to speak in soothing tones.
"Mr. Finch has no idea of scaring you," he growled, "and if
he did, I'm here to stop him. That's one thing I'm sitting
up here for. Now you're a big girl, so you just sit up
straight and tell the- tell us what happened to you. You can do
that, can't you?" I whispered to Jem, "Has she got good sense?" Jem
was squinting down at the witness stand. "Can't tell yet," he
said. "She's got enough sense to get the judge sorry for her,
but she might be just- oh, I don't know." Mollified, Mayella gave
Atticus a final terrified glance and said to Mr. Gilmer, "Well
sir, I was on the porch and- and he came along and, you see,
there was this old chiffarobe in the yard Papa'd brought in to
chop up for kindlin'- Papa told me to do it while he was off
in the woods but I wadn't feelin' strong enough then, so he came
by-" "Who is 'he'?" Mayella pointed to Tom Robinson. "I'll have to
ask you to be more specific, please," said Mr. Gilmer. "The
reporter can't put down gestures very well." "That'n yonder," she
said. "Robinson." "Then what happened?" "I said come here,
nigger, and bust up this chiffarobe for me, I gotta nickel for
you. He coulda done it easy enough, he could. So he come in the
yard an' I went in the house to get him the nickel and I turned around
an 'fore I knew it he was on me. Just run up behind me, he did. He got
me round the neck, cussin' me an' sayin' dirt- I fought'n'hollered,
but he had me round the neck. He hit me agin an' agin-" Mr. Gilmer
waited for Mayella to collect herself: she had twisted her
handkerchief into a sweaty rope; when she opened it to wipe her
face it was a mass of creases from her hot hands. She waited for
Mr. Gilmer to ask another question, but when he didn't, she said,
"-he chunked me on the floor an' choked me'n took advantage of me."
"Did you scream?" asked Mr. Gilmer. "Did you scream and fight
back?" "Reckon I did, hollered for all I was worth, kicked
and hollered loud as I could." "Then what happened?" "I don't
remember too good, but next thing I knew Papa was in the
room a'standing over me hollerin' who done it, who done it?
Then I sorta fainted an' the next thing I knew Mr. Tate was pullin'
me up offa the floor and leadin' me to the water bucket."
Apparently Mayella's recital had given her confidence, but it was not
her father's brash kind: there was something stealthy about
hers, like a steady-eyed cat with a twitchy tail. "You say
you fought him off as hard as you could? Fought him tooth and
nail?" asked Mr. Gilmer. "I positively did," Mayella echoed her
father. "You are positive that he took full advantage of you?"
Mayella's face contorted, and I was afraid that she would cry
again. Instead, she said, "He done what he was after." Mr. Gilmer
called attention to the hot day by wiping his head with his hand.
"That's all for the time being," he said pleasantly, "but you
stay there. I expect big bad Mr. Finch has some questions to
ask you." "State will not prejudice the witness against counsel for
the defense," murmured Judge Taylor primly, "at least not at
this time." Atticus got up grinning but instead of walking to the
witness stand, he opened his coat and hooked his thumbs in
his vest, then he walked slowly across the room to the
windows. He looked out, but didn't seem especially interested
in what he saw, then he turned and strolled back to the witness stand.
From long years of experience, I could tell he was trying to come to a
decision about something. "Miss Mayella," he said, smiling, "I won't
try to scare you for a while, not yet. Let's just get
acquainted. How old are you?" "Said I was nineteen, said it
to the judge yonder." Mayella jerked her head resentfully at the
bench. "So you did, so you did, ma'am. You'll have to bear
with me, Miss Mayella, I'm getting along and can't remember as well as
I used to. I might ask you things you've already said before, but
you'll give me an answer, won't you? Good." I could see nothing
in Mayella's expression to justify Atticus's assumption that he
had secured her wholehearted cooperation. She was looking at him
furiously. "Won't answer a word you say long as you keep on mockin'
me," she said. "Ma'am?" asked Atticus, startled. "Long's you keep on
makin' fun o'me." Judge Taylor said, "Mr. Finch is not making
fun of you. What's the matter with you?" Mayella looked from
under lowered eyelids at Atticus, but she said to the judge:
"Long's he keeps on callin' me ma'am an sayin' Miss Mayella. I
don't hafta take his sass, I ain't called upon to take it."
Atticus resumed his stroll to the windows and let Judge
Taylor handle this one. Judge Taylor was not the kind of
figure that ever evoked pity, but I did feel a pang for him as he
tried to explain. "That's just Mr. Finch's way," he told
Mayella. "We've done business in this court for years and
years, and Mr. Finch is always courteous to everybody. He's not trying
to mock you, he's trying to be polite. That's just his way." The
judge leaned back. "Atticus, let's get on with these
proceedings, and let the record show that the witness has not
been sassed, her views to the contrary." I wondered if anybody
had ever called her "ma'am," or "Miss Mayella" in her life;
probably not, as she took offense to routine courtesy. What on earth
was her life like? I soon found out. "You say you're nineteen,"
Atticus resumed. "How many sisters and brothers have you?" He
walked from the windows back to the stand. "Seb'm," she said, and I
wondered if they were all like the specimen I had seen the first
day I started to school. "You the eldest? The oldest?" "Yes." "How
long has your mother been dead?" "Don't know- long time." "Did you
ever go to school?" "Read'n'write good as Papa yonder." Mayella
sounded like a Mr. Jingle in a book I had been reading.
"How long did you go to school?" "Two year- three year- dunno."
Slowly but surely I began to see the pattern of Atticus's
questions: from questions that Mr. Gilmer did not deem
sufficiently irrelevant or immaterial to object to, Atticus was
quietly building up before the jury a picture of the Ewells'
home life. The jury learned the following things: their relief check
was far from enough to feed the family, and there was strong
suspicion that Papa drank it up anyway- he sometimes went off
in the swamp for days and came home sick; the weather was seldom cold
enough to require shoes, but when it was, you could make dandy ones
from strips of old tires; the family hauled its water in
buckets from a spring that ran out at one end of the dump-
they kept the surrounding area clear of trash- and it was
everybody for himself as far as keeping clean went: if you wanted to
wash you hauled your own water; the younger children had
perpetual colds and suffered from chronic ground-itch; there
was a lady who came around sometimes and asked Mayella why
she didn't stay in school- she wrote down the answer; with
two members of the family reading and writing, there was no
need for the rest of them to learn- Papa needed them at home.
"Miss Mayella," said Atticus, in spite of himself, "a nineteen- year-
old girl like you must have friends. Who are your friends?"
The witness frowned as if puzzled. "Friends?" "Yes, don't you
know anyone near your age, or older, or younger? Boys and
girls? Just ordinary friends?" to grudging Mayella's hostility,
which had subsided neutrality, flared again. "You makin' fun
o'me agin, Mr. Finch?" Atticus let her question answer his. "Do
you love your father, Miss Mayella?" was his next. "Love him, whatcha
mean?" "I mean, is he good to you, is he easy to get along with?"
"He does tollable, 'cept when-" "Except when?" Mayella looked at her
father, who was sitting with his chair tipped against the railing. He
sat up straight and waited for her to answer. "Except when
nothin'," said Mayella. "I said he does tollable." Mr. Ewell
leaned back again. "Except when he's drinking?" asked Atticus
so gently that Mayella nodded. "Does he ever go after you?" "How
you mean?" "When he's- riled, has he ever beaten you?" Mayella
looked around, down at the court reporter, up at the judge. "Answer
the question, Miss Mayella," said Judge Taylor. "My paw's
never touched a hair o'my head in my life," she declared
firmly. "He never touched me." Atticus's glasses had slipped a
little, and he pushed them up on his nose. "We've had a good visit,
Miss Mayella, and now I guess we'd better get to the case. You say you
asked Tom Robinson to come chop up a- what was it?" "A chiffarobe, a
old dresser full of drawers on one side." "Was Tom Robinson well
known to you?" "Whaddya mean?" "I mean did you know who he was,
where he lived?" Mayella nodded. "I knowed who he was, he
passed the house every day." "Was this the first time you
asked him to come inside the fence?" Mayella jumped slightly at
the question. Atticus was making his slow pilgrimage to the windows,
as he had been doing: he would ask a question, then look out,
waiting for an answer. He did not see her involuntary jump, but it
seemed to me that he knew she had moved. He turned around and raised
his eyebrows. "Was-" he began again. "Yes it was." "Didn't you ever
ask him to come inside the fence before?" She was prepared now. "I
did not, I certainly did not." "One did not's enough," said
Atticus serenely. "You never asked him to do odd jobs for you
before?" "I mighta," conceded Mayella. "There was several
niggers around." "Can you remember any other occasions?" "No." "All
right, now to what happened. You said Tom Robinson was behind
you in the room when you turned around, that right?" "Yes."
"You said he 'got you around the neck cussing and saying
dirt'- is that right?" "'t's right." Atticus's memory had
suddenly become accurate. "You say 'he caught me and choked me
and took advantage of me'- is that right?" "That's what I said."
"Do you remember him beating you about the face?" The witness
hesitated. "You seem sure enough that he choked you. All
this time you were fighting back, remember? You 'kicked and hollered
as loud as you could.' Do you remember him beating you about
the face? " Mayella was silent. She seemed to be trying to
get something clear to herself. I thought for a moment she was doing
Mr. Heck Tate's and my trick of pretending there was a person in front
of us. She glanced at Mr. Gilmer. "It's an easy question, Miss
Mayella, so I'll try again. Do you remember him beating you about the
face?" Atticus's voice had lost its comfortableness; he was
speaking in his arid, detached professional voice. "Do you remember
him beating you about the face?" "No, I don't recollect if he
hit me. I mean yes I do, he hit me." "Was your last sentence
your answer?" "Huh? Yes, he hit- I just don't remember, I
just don't remember... it all happened so quick." Judge Taylor
looked sternly at Mayella. "Don't you cry, young woman-" he
began, but Atticus said, "Let her cry if she wants to, Judge.
We've got all the time in the world." Mayella sniffed wrathfully and
looked at Atticus. "I'll answer any question you got- get me up
here an' mock me, will you? I'll answer any question you got-"
"That's fine," said Atticus. "There're only a few more. Miss
Mayella, not to be tedious, you've testified that the
defendant hit you, grabbed you around the neck, choked you,
and took advantage of you. I want you to be sure you have the right
man. Will you identify the man who raped you?" "I will, that's
him right yonder." Atticus turned to the defendant. "Tom,
stand up. Let Miss Mayella have a good long look at you. Is this
the man, Miss Mayella?" Tom Robinson's powerful shoulders rippled
under his thin shirt. He rose to his feet and stood with
his right hand on the back of his chair. He looked oddly off
balance, but it was not from the way he was standing. His left
arm was fully twelve inches shorter than his right, and hung
dead at his side. It ended in a small shriveled hand, and
from as far away as the balcony I could see that it was no use to
him. "Scout," breathed Jem. "Scout, look! Reverend, he's
crippled!" Reverend Sykes leaned across me and whispered to
Jem. "He got it caught in a cotton gin, caught it in Mr.
Dolphus Raymond's cotton gin when he was a boy... like to
bled to death... tore all the muscles loose from his bones-" Atticus
said, "Is this the man who raped you?" "It most certainly is."
Atticus's next question was one word long. "How?" Mayella was
raging. "I don't know how he done it, but he done it- I said
it all happened so fast I-" "Now let's consider this calmly-"
began Atticus, but Mr. Gilmer interrupted with an objection: he was
not irrelevant or immaterial, but Atticus was browbeating the witness.
Judge Taylor laughed outright. "Oh sit down, Horace, he's
doing nothing of the sort. If anything, the witness's
browbeating Atticus." Judge Taylor was the only person in the
courtroom who laughed. Even the babies were still, and I
suddenly wondered if they had been smothered at their mothers'
breasts. "Now," said Atticus, "Miss Mayella, you've testified that
the defendant choked and beat you- you didn't say that he
sneaked up behind you and knocked you cold, but you turned
around and there he was-" Atticus was back behind his table,
and he emphasized his words by tapping his knuckles on it.
"-do you wish to reconsider any of your testimony?" "You want
me to say something that didn't happen?" "No ma'am, I want you
to say something that did happen. Tell us once more, please, what
happened?" "I told'ja what happened." "You testified that you turned
around and there he was. He choked you then?" "Yes." "Then he
released your throat and hit you?" "I said he did." "He blacked your
left eye with his right fist?" "I ducked and it- it glanced, that's
what it did. I ducked and it glanced off." Mayella had finally seen
the light. "You're becoming suddenly clear on this point. A
while ago you couldn't remember too well, could you?" "I said he hit
me." "All right. He choked you, he hit you, then he raped
you, that right?" "It most certainly is." "You're a strong girl,
what were you doing all the time, just standing there?" "I told'ja I
hollered'n'kicked'n'fought-" Atticus reached up and took off his
glasses, turned his good right eye to the witness, and rained
questions on her. Judge Taylor said, "One question at a time,
Atticus. Give the witness a chance to answer." "All right, why
didn't you run?" "I tried..." "Tried to? What kept you from it?"
"I- he slung me down. That's what he did, he slung me
down'n got on top of me." "You were screaming all this time?" "I
certainly was." "Then why didn't the other children hear you?
Where were they? At the dump?" "Where were they?" No answer. "Why
didn't your screams make them come running? The dump's closer
than the woods, isn't it?" No answer. "Or didn't you scream
until you saw your father in the window? You didn't think to
scream until then, did you?" No answer. "Did you scream first at
your father instead of at Tom Robinson? Was that it?" No answer.
"Who beat you up? Tom Robinson or your father?" No answer . "What
did your father see in the window, the crime of rape or the best
defense to it? Why don't you tell the truth, child, didn't Bob Ewell
beat you up?" When Atticus turned away from Mayella he looked
like his stomach hurt, but Mayella's face was a mixture of
terror and fury. Atticus sat down wearily and polished his
glasses with his handkerchief. Suddenly Mayella became articulate.
"I got somethin' to say," she said. Atticus raised his head.
"Do you want to tell us what happened?" But she did not hear
the compassion in his invitation. "I got somethin' to say an' then
I ain't gonna say no more. That nigger yonder took advantage
of me an' if you fine fancy gentlemen don't wanta do nothin'
about it then you're all yellow stinkin' cowards, stinkin'
cowards, the lot of you. Your fancy airs don't come to
nothin'- your ma'amin' and Miss Mayellerin' don't come to nothin',
Mr. Finch-" Then she burst into real tears. Her shoulders
shook with angry sobs. She was as good as her word. She answered no
more questions, even when Mr. Gilmer tried to get her back on the
track. I guess if she hadn't been so poor and ignorant, Judge
Taylor would have put her under the jail for the contempt she had
shown everybody in the courtroom. Somehow, Atticus had hit her
hard in a way that was not clear to me, but it gave him
no pleasure to do so. He sat with his head down, and I
never saw anybody glare at anyone with the hatred Mayella
showed when she left the stand and walked by Atticus's table.
When Mr. Gilmer told Judge Taylor that the state rested,
Judge Taylor said, "It's time we all did. We'll take ten
minutes." Atticus and Mr. Gilmer met in front of the bench
and whispered, then they left the courtroom by a door behind
the witness stand, which was a signal for us all to stretch. I
discovered that I had been sitting on the edge of the long
bench, and I was somewhat numb. Jem got up and yawned, Dill did
likewise, and Reverend Sykes wiped his face on his hat. The
temperature was an easy ninety, he said. Mr. Braxton Underwood,
who had been sitting quietly in a chair reserved for the Press,
soaking up testimony with his sponge of a brain, allowed his
bitter eyes to rove over the colored balcony, and they met
mine. He gave a snort and looked away. "Jem," I said, "Mr.
Underwood's seen us." "That's okay. He won't tell Atticus,
he'll just put it on the social side of the Tribune." Jem
turned back to Dill, explaining, I suppose, the finer points
of the trial to him, but I wondered what they were. There had been
no lengthy debates between Atticus and Mr. Gilmer on any
points; Mr. Gilmer seemed to be prosecuting almost reluctantly;
witnesses had been led by the nose as asses are, with few objections.
But Atticus had once told us that in Judge Taylor's court any
lawyer who was a strict constructionist on evidence usually wound up
receiving strict instructions from the bench. He distilled this
for me to mean that Judge Taylor might look lazy and operate in
his sleep, but he was seldom reversed, and that was the proof
of the pudding. Atticus said he was a good judge. Presently Judge
Taylor returned and climbed into h is swivel chair. He took a cigar
from his vest pocket and examined it thoughtfully. I punched Dill.
Having passed the judge's inspection, the cigar suffered a vicious
bite. "We come down sometimes to watch him," I explained. "It's gonna
take him the rest of the afternoon, now. You watch." Unaware of public
scrutiny from above, Judge Taylor disposed of the severed end by
propelling it expertly to his lips and saying, "Fhluck!" He hit a
spittoon so squarely we could hear it slosh. "Bet he was hell with a
spitball," murmured Dill. As a rule, a recess meant a general
exodus, but today people weren't moving. Even the Idlers who
had failed to shame younger men from their seats had remained
standing along the walls. I guess Mr. Heck Tate had reserved
the county toilet for court officials. Atticus and Mr. Gilmer
returned, and Judge Taylor looked at his watch. "It's gettin' on
to four," he said, which was intriguing, as the courthouse
clock must have struck the hour at least twice. I had not heard it
or felt its vibrations. "Shall we try to wind up this
afternoon?" asked Judge Taylor. "How 'bout it, Atticus?" "I think
we can," said Atticus. "How many witnesses you got?" "One." "Well,
call him." 19 Thomas Robinson reached around, ran his fingers
under his left arm and lifted it. He guided his arm to the Bible and
his rubber-like left hand sought contact with the black binding. As he
raised his right hand, the useless one slipped off the Bible and hit
the clerk's table. He was trying again when Judge Taylor
growled, "That'll do, Tom." Tom took the oath and stepped
into the witness chair. Atticus very quickly induced him to tell
us: Tom was twenty-five years of age; he was married with
three children; he had been in trouble with the law before: he once
received thirty days for disorderly conduct. "It must have been
disorderly," said Atticus. "What did it consist of?" "Got in a
fight with another man, he tried to cut me." "Did he succeed?" "Yes
suh, a little, not enough to hurt. You see, I-" Tom moved
his left shoulder. "Yes," said Atticus. "You were both convicted?"
"Yes suh, I had to serve 'cause I couldn't pay the fine. Other fellow
paid his'n." Dill leaned across me and asked Jem what Atticus
was doing. Jem said Atticus was showing the jury that Tom had nothing
to hide. "Were you acquainted with Mayella Violet Ewell?"
asked Atticus. "Yes suh, I had to pass her place goin' to and from
the field every day." "Whose field?" "I picks for Mr. Link Deas."
"Were you picking cotton in November?" "No suh, I works in his
yard fall an' wintertime. I works pretty steady for him all year
round, he's got a lot of pecan trees'n things." "You say you had to
pass the Ewell place to get to and from work. Is there any other way
to go?" "No suh, none's I know of." "Tom, did she ever speak to
you?" "Why, yes suh, I'd tip m'hat when I'd go by, and one
day she asked me to come inside the fence and bust up a
chiffarobe for her." "When did she ask you to chop up the- the
chiffarobe?" "Mr. Finch, it was way last spring. I remember it
because it was choppin' time and I had my hoe with me. I said I didn't
have nothin' but this hoe, but she said she had a hatchet.
She give me the hatchet and I broke up the chiffarobe. She said, 'I
reckon I'll hafta give you a nickel, won't I?' an' I said,
'No ma'am, there ain't no charge.' Then I went home. Mr. Finch, that
was way last spring, way over a year ago." "Did you ever go on the
place again?" "Yes suh." "When?" "Well, I went lots of times."
Judge Taylor instinctively reached for his gavel, but let his
hand fall. The murmur below us died without his help. "Under what
circumstances?" "Please, suh?" "Why did you go inside the fence lots
of times?" Tom Robinson's forehead relaxed. "She'd call me in,
suh. Seemed like every time I passed by yonder she'd have
some little somethin' for me to do- choppin' kindlin', totin'
water for her. She watered them red flowers every day-" "Were you
paid for your services?" "No suh, not after she offered me a
nickel the first time. I was glad to do it, Mr. Ewell
didn't seem to help her none, and neither did the chillun, and I
knowed she didn't have no nickels to spare." "Where were the other
children?" "They was always around, all over the place.
They'd watch me work, some of 'em, some of 'em'd set in the window."
"Would Miss Mayella talk to you?" "Yes sir, she talked to me." As
Tom Robinson gave his testimony, it came to me that Mayella
Ewell must have been the loneliest person in the world. She
was even lonelier than Boo Radley, who had not been out of the
house in twenty-five years. When Atticus asked had she any
friends, she seemed not to know what he meant, then she thought
he was making fun of her. She was as sad, I thought, as what
Jem called a mixed child: white people wouldn't have anything to
do with her because she lived among pigs; Negroes wouldn't have
anything to do with her because she was white. She couldn't live like
Mr. Dolphus Raymond, who preferred the company of Negroes, because
she didn't own a riverbank and she wasn't from a fine old
family. Nobody said, "That's just their way," about the Ewells.
Maycomb gave them Christmas baskets, welfare money, and the back
of its hand. Tom Robinson was probably the only person who
was ever decent to her. But she said he took advantage of her,
and when she stood up she looked at him as if he were dirt beneath her
feet. "Did you ever," Atticus interrupted my meditations, "at any
time, go on the Ewell property- did you ever set foot on the Ewell
property without an express invitation from one of them?" "No
suh, Mr. Finch, I never did. I wouldn't do that, suh." Atticus
sometimes said that one way to tell whether a witness was
lying or telling the truth was to listen rather than watch: I
applied his test- Tom denied it three times in one breath, but
quietly, with no hint of whining in his voice, and I found myself
believing him in spite of his protesting too much. He seemed
to be a respectable Negro, and a respectable Negro would never
go up into somebody's yard of his own volition. "Tom, what happened
to you on the evening of November twenty-first of last year?"
Below us, the spectators drew a collective breath and leaned
forward. Behind us, the Negroes did the same. Tom was a black-
velvet Negro, not shiny, but soft black velvet. The whites of
his eyes shone in his face, and when he spoke we saw flashes of
his teeth. If he had been whole, he would have been a fine specimen of
a man. "Mr. Finch," he said, "I was goin' home as usual
that evenin', an' when I passed the Ewell place Miss Mayella
were on the porch, like she said she were. It seemed real
quiet like, an' I didn't quite know why. I was studyin'
why, just passin' by, when she says for me to come there
and help her a minute. Well, I went inside the fence an' looked around
for some kindlin' to work on, but I didn't see none, and she says,
'Naw, I got somethin' for you to do in the house. Th' old
door's off its hinges an' fall's comin' on pretty fast.' I said you
got a screwdriver, Miss Mayella? She said she sho' had. Well,
I went up the steps an' she motioned me to come inside, and I
went in the front room an' looked at the door. I said Miss
Mayella, this door look all right. I pulled it back'n forth
and those hinges was all right. Then she shet the door in
my face. Mr. Finch, I was wonderin' why it was so quiet
like, an' it come to me that there weren't a chile on the
place, not a one of 'em, and I said Miss Mayella, where the
chillun?" Tom's black velvet skin had begun to shine, and he ran his
hand over his face. "I say where the chillun?" he continued, "an' she
says- she was laughin', sort of- she says they all gone to town to get
ice creams. She says, 'took me a slap year to save seb'm
nickels, but I done it. They all gone to town.'" Tom's discomfort
was not from the humidity. "What did you say then, Tom?" asked
Atticus. "I said somethin' like, why Miss Mayella, that's
right smart o'you to treat 'em. An' she said, 'You think so?' I don't
think she understood what I was thinkin'- I meant it was smart of her
to save like that, an' nice of her to treat em." "I understand you,
Tom. Go on," said Atticus. "Well, I said I best be goin', I couldn't
do nothin' for her, an' she says oh yes I could, an' I ask her what,
and she says to just step on that chair yonder an' git that box down
from on top of the chiffarobe." "Not the same chiffarobe you busted
up?" asked Atticus. The witness smiled. "Naw suh, another one. Most
as tall as the room. So I done what she told me, an' I was
just reachin' when the next thing I knows she- she'd grabbed
me round the legs, grabbed me round th' legs, Mr. Finch. She
scared me so bad I hopped down an' turned the chair over-
that was the only thing, only furniture, 'sturbed in that
room, Mr. Finch, when I left it. I swear 'fore God." "What happened
after you turned the chair over?" Tom Robinson had come to a
dead stop. He glanced at Atticus, then at the jury, then at
Mr. Underwood sitting across the room. "Tom, you're sworn to tell
the whole truth. Will you tell it?" Tom ran his hand nervously over
his mouth. "What happened after that?" "Answer the question,"
said Judge Taylor. One-third of his cigar had vanished. "Mr.
Finch, I got down offa that chair an' turned around an' she sorta
jumped on me." "Jumped on you? Violently?" "No suh, she- she
hugged me. She hugged me round the waist." This time Judge
Taylor's gavel came down with a bang, and as it did the overhead
lights went on in the courtroom. Darkness had not come, but the
afternoon sun had left the windows. Judge Taylor quickly restored
order. "Then what did she do?" vThe witness swallowed hard. "She
reached up an' kissed me 'side of th' face. She says she never kissed
a grown man before an' she might as well kiss a nigger. She says what
her papa do to her don't count. She says, 'Kiss me back, nigger.' I
say Miss Mayella lemme outa here an' tried to run but she got her back
to the door an' I'da had to push her. I didn't wanta harm her, Mr.
Finch, an' I say lemme pass, but just when I say it Mr. Ewell yonder
hollered through th' window." "What did he say?" Tom Robinson
swallowed again, and his eyes widened. "Somethin' not fittin'
to say- not fittin' for these folks'n chillun to hear-" "What
did he say, Tom? You must tell the jury what he said."
vTom Robinson shut his eyes tight. "He says you goddamn whore, I'll
kill ya." "Then what happened?" "Mr. Finch, I was runnin' so
fast I didn't know what happened." "Tom, did you rape Mayella
Ewell?" "I did not, suh." "Did you harm her in any way?" "I did
not, suh." "Did you resist her advances?" "Mr. Finch, I tried. I
tried to 'thout bein' ugly to her. I didn't wanta be ugly, I didn't
wanta push her or nothin'." It occurred to me that in their
own way, Tom Robinson's manners were as good as Atticus's.
Until my father explained it to me later, I did not understand the
subtlety of Tom's predicament: he would not have dared strike a white
woman under any circumstances and expect to live long, so he took the
first opportunity to run- a sure sign of guilt. "Tom, go back once
more to Mr. Ewell," said Atticus. "Did he say anything to you?" "Not
anything, suh. He mighta said somethin', but I weren't there-"
"That'll do," Atticus cut in sharply. "What you did hear, who was he
talking to?" "Mr. Finch, he were talkin' and lookin' at Miss
Mayella." "Then you ran?" "I sho' did, suh." "Why did you run?"
"I was scared, suh." "Why were you scared?" "Mr. Finch, if you
was a nigger like me, you'd be scared, too." Atticus sat
down. Mr. Gilmer was making his way to the witness stand,
but before he got there Mr. Link Deas rose from the audience
and announced: "I just want the whole lot of you to know
one thing right now. That boy's worked for me eight years an' I
ain't had a speck o'trouble outa him. Not a speck." "Shut your
mouth, sir!" Judge Taylor was wide awake and roaring. He was
also pink in the face. His speech was miraculously unimpaired
by his cigar. "Link Deas," he yelled, "if you have anything you want
to say you can say it under oath and at the proper time, but
until then you get out of this room, you hear me? Get out of this
room, sir, you hear me? I'll be damned if I'll listen to this case
again!" Judge Taylor looked daggers at Atticus, as if daring
him to speak, but Atticus had ducked his head and was
laughing into his lap. I remembered something he had said
about Judge Taylor's ex cathedra remarks sometimes exceeding his
duty, but that few lawyers ever did anything about them. I
looked at Jem, but Jem shook his head. "It ain't like one of the
jurymen got up and started talking," he said. "I think it'd be
different then. Mr. Link was just disturbin' the peace or
something." Judge Taylor told the reporter to expunge anything
he happened to have written down after Mr. Finch if you were a nigger
like me you'd be scared too, and told the jury to disregard
the interruption. He looked suspiciously down the middle aisle and
waited, I suppose, for Mr. Link Deas to effect total departure.
Then he said, "Go ahead, Mr. Gilmer." "You were given thirty days
once for disorderly conduct, Robinson?" asked Mr. Gilmer. "Yes
suh." "What'd the nigger look like when you got through with
him?" "He beat me, Mr. Gilmer." "Yes, but you were convicted,
weren't you?" Atticus raised his head. "It was a misdemeanor
and it's in the record, Judge." I thought he sounded tired.
"Witness'll answer, though," said Judge Taylor, just as
wearily. "Yes suh, I got thirty days." I knew that Mr. Gilmer
would sincerely tell the jury that anyone who was convicted
of disorderly conduct could easily have had it in his heart to take
advantage of Mayella Ewell, that was the only reason he cared. Reasons
like that helped. "Robinson, you're pretty good at busting up
chiffarobes and kindling with one hand, aren't you?" "Yes, suh, I
reckon so." "Strong enough to choke the breath out of a
woman and sling her to the floor?" "I never done that, suh." "But
you are strong enough to?" "I reckon so, suh." "Had your eye on her
a long time, hadn't you, boy?" "No suh, I never looked at her."
"Then you were mighty polite to do all that chopping and
hauling for her, weren't you, boy?" "I was just tryin' to help her
out, suh." "That was mighty generous of you, you had chores at home
after your regular work, didn't you?" "Yes suh." "Why didn't you do
them instead of Miss Ewell's?" "I done 'em both, suh." "You must
have been pretty busy. Why?" "Why what, suh?" "Why were you so
anxious to do that woman's chores?" Tom Robinson hesitated,
searching for an answer. "Looked like she didn't have nobody to
help her, like I says-" "With Mr. Ewell and seven children on the
place, boy?" "Well, I says it looked like they never help her none-"
"You did all this chopping and work from sheer goodness,
boy?" "Tried to help her, I says." Mr. Gilmer smiled grimly at the
jury. "You're a mighty good fellow, it seems- did all this for not one
penny?" "Yes, suh. I felt right sorry for her, she seemed
to try more'n the rest of 'em-" "You felt sorry for her, you
felt sorry for her?" Mr. Gilmer seemed ready to rise to the
ceiling. The witness realized his mistake and shifted
uncomfortably in the chair. But the damage was done. Below
us, nobody liked Tom Robinson's answer. Mr. Gilmer paused a long time
to let it sink in. "Now you went by the house as usual, last
November twenty-first," he said, "and she asked you to come
in and bust up a chiffarobe?" "No suh." "Do you deny that you went
by the house?" "No suh- she said she had somethin' for me to do
inside the house-" "She says she asked you to bust up a
chiffarobe, is that right?" "No suh, it ain't." "Then you say
she's lying, boy?" Atticus was on his feet, but Tom Robinson didn't
need him. "I don't say she's lyin', Mr. Gilmer, I say she's
mistaken in her mind." To the next ten questions, as Mr. Gilmer
reviewed Mayella's version of events, the witness's steady answer was
that she was mistaken in her mind. "Didn't Mr. Ewell run you off the
place, boy?" "No suh, I don't think he did." "Don't think, what do
you mean?" "I mean I didn't stay long enough for him to run me off."
"You're very candid about this, why did you run so fast?" "I says I
was scared, suh." "If you had a clear conscience, why were you
scared?" "Like I says before, it weren't safe for any nigger to be in
a- fix like that." "But you weren't in a fix- you testified
that you were resisting Miss Ewell. Were you so scared that
she'd hurt you, you ran, a big buck like you?" "No suh, I's scared
I'd be in court, just like I am now." "Scared of arrest, scared
you'd have to face up to what you did?" "No suh, scared I'd hafta
face up to what I didn't do." "Are you being impudent to me, boy?"
"No suh, I didn't go to be." This was as much as I heard of
Mr. Gilmer's cross- examination, because Jem made me take Dill out.
For some reason Dill had started crying and couldn't stop;
quietly at first, then his sobs were heard by several people
in the balcony. Jem said if I didn't go with him he'd make me, and
Reverend Sykes said I'd better go, so I went. Dill had
seemed to be all right that day, nothing wrong with him, but I guessed
he hadn't fully recovered from running away. "Ain't you feeling
good?" I asked, when we reached the bottom of the stairs. Dill
tried to pull himself together as we ran down the south steps. Mr.
Link Deas was a lonely figure on the top step. "Anything
happenin', Scout?" he asked as we went by. "No sir," I answered
over my shoulder. "Dill here, he's sick." "Come on out under the
trees," I said. "Heat got you, I expect." We chose the fattest
live oak and we sat under it. "It was just him I couldn't stand,"
Dill said. "Who, Tom?" "That old Mr. Gilmer doin' him
thataway, talking so hateful to him-" "Dill, that's his job. Why,
if we didn't have prosecutors- well, we couldn't have defense
attorneys, I reckon." Dill exhaled patiently. "I know all that,
Scout. It was the way he said it made me sick, plain sick." "He's
supposed to act that way, Dill, he was cross-" "He didn't act that
way when-" "Dill, those were his own witnesses." "Well, Mr. Finch
didn't act that way to Mayella and old man Ewell when he cross-
examined them. The way that man called him 'boy' all the time an'
sneered at him, an' looked around at the jury every time he answered-"
"Well, Dill, after all he's just a Negro." "I don't care one speck.
It ain't right, somehow it ain't right to do 'em that way. Hasn't
anybody got any business talkin' like that- it just makes me sick."
"That's just Mr. Gilmer's way, Dill, he does 'em all that way. You've
never seen him get good'n down on one yet. Why, when- well,
today Mr. Gilmer seemed to me like he wasn't half trying.
They do 'em all that way, most lawyers, I mean." "Mr. Finch
doesn't." "He's not an example, Dill, he's-" I was trying to
grope in my memory for a sharp phrase of Miss Maudie Atkinson's. I
had it: "He's the same in the courtroom as he is on the
public streets." "That's not what I mean," said Dill. "I know
what you mean, boy," said a voice behind us. We thought it
came from the tree-trunk, but it belonged to Mr. Dolphus Raymond. He
peered around the trunk at us. "You aren't thin-hided, it just makes
you sick, doesn't it?" 20 "Come on round here, son, I got
something that'll settle your stomach." As Mr. Dolphus Raymond
was an evil man I accepted his invitation reluctantly, but I
followed Dill. Somehow, I didn't think Atticus would like it if
we became friendly with Mr. Raymond, and I knew Aunt Alexandra
wouldn't. "Here," he said, offering Dill his paper sack with straws
in it. "Take a good sip, it'll quieten you." Dill sucked on the
straws, smiled, and pulled at length. "Hee hee," said Mr.
Raymond, evidently taking delight in corrupting a child. "Dill,
you watch out, now," I warned. Dill released the straws and grinned.
"Scout, it's nothing but Coca-Cola." Mr. Raymond sat up against
the tree-trunk. He had been lying on the grass. "You little folks
won't tell on me now, will you? It'd ruin my reputation if you did."
"You mean all you drink in that sack's Coca-Cola? Just plain Coca-
Cola?" "Yes ma'am," Mr. Raymond nodded. I liked his smell: it was of
leather, horses, cottonseed. He wore the only English riding
boots I had ever seen. "That's all I drink, most of the time." "Then
you just pretend you're half-? I beg your pardon, sir," I caught
myself. "I didn't mean to be-" Mr. Raymond chuckled, not at all
offended, and I tried to frame a discreet question: "Why do you do
like you do?" "Wh- oh yes, you mean why do I pretend? Well,
it's very simple," he said. "Some folks don't- like the way I live.
Now I could say the hell with 'em, I don't care if they don't like it.
I do say I don't care if they don't like it, right enough-
but I don't say the hell with 'em, see?" Dill and I said, "No sir."
"I try to give 'em a reason, you see. It helps folks if
they can latch onto a reason. When I come to town, which is
seldom, if I weave a little and drink out of this sack,
folks can say Dolphus Raymond's in the clutches of whiskey-
that's why he won't change his ways. He can't help himself, that's why
he lives the way he does." "That ain't honest, Mr. Raymond,
making yourself out badder'n you are already-" "It ain't honest
but it's mighty helpful to folks. Secretly, Miss Finch, I'm
not much of a drinker, but you see they could never, never
understand that I live like I do because that's the way I want
to live." I had a feeling that I shouldn't be here listening
to this sinful man who had mixed children and didn't care
who knew it, but he was fascinating. I had never encountered a being
who deliberately perpetrated fraud against himself. But why had
he entrusted us with his deepest secret? I asked him why.
"Because you're children and you can understand it," he said,
"and because I heard that one-" He jerked his head at Dill:
"Things haven't caught up with that one's instinct yet. Let
him get a little older and he won't get sick and cry. Maybe
things'll strike him as being- not quite right, say, but he
won't cry, not when he gets a few years on him." "Cry about
what, Mr. Raymond?" Dill's maleness was beginning to assert
itself. "Cry about the simple hell people give other people- without
even thinking. Cry about the hell white people give colored folks,
without even stopping to think that they're people, too."
"Atticus says cheatin' a colored man is ten times worse than cheatin'
a white man," I muttered. "Says it's the worst thing you can do." Mr.
Raymond said, "I don't reckon it's- Miss Jean Louise, you
don't know your pa's not a run-of-the-mill man, it'll take a
few years for that to sink in- you haven't seen enough of
the world yet. You haven't even seen this town, but all you
gotta do is step back inside the courthouse." Which reminded me
that we were missing nearly all of Mr. Gilmer's cross-
examination. I looked at the sun, and it was dropping fast behind the
store-tops on the west side of the square. Between two fires, I
could not decide which I wanted to jump into: Mr. Raymond or the
5th Judicial Circuit Court. "C'mon, Dill," I said. "You all right,
now?" "Yeah. Glad t've metcha, Mr. Raymond, and thanks for
the drink, it was mighty settlin'." We raced back to the
courthouse, up the steps, up two flights of stairs, and edged
our way along the balcony rail. Reverend Sykes had saved our
seats. The courtroom was still, and again I wondered where
the babies were. Judge Taylor's cigar was a brown speck in the center
of his mouth; Mr. Gilmer was writing on one of the yellow
pads on his table, trying to outdo the court reporter, whose hand
was jerking rapidly. "Shoot," I muttered, "we missed it."
Atticus was halfway through his speech to the jury. He had evidently
pulled some papers from his briefcase that rested beside his chair,
because they were on his table. Tom Robinson was toying with
them. "...absence of any corroborative evidence, this man was
indicted on a capital charge and is now on trial for his
life...." I punched Jem. "How long's he been at it?" "He's just
gone over the evidence," Jem whispered, "and we're gonna win,
Scout. I don't see how we can't. He's been at it 'bout five
minutes. He made it as plain and easy as- well, as I'da
explained it to you. You could've understood it, even." "Did Mr.
Gilmer-?" "Sh-h. Nothing new, just the usual. Hush now." We looked
down again. Atticus was speaking easily, with the kind of detachment
he used when he dictated a letter. He walked slowly up and down
in front of the jury, and the jury seemed to be attentive: their
heads were up, and they to be followed Atticus's route with
what seemed appreciation. I guess it was because Atticus
wasn't a thunderer. Atticus paused, then he did something he
didn't ordinarily do. He unhitched his watch and chain and
placed them on the table, saying, "With the court's permission-"
Judge Taylor nodded, and then Atticus did something I never
saw him do before or since, in public or in private: he unbuttoned his
vest, unbuttoned his collar, loosened his tie, and took off his
coat. He never loosened a scrap of his clothing until he
undressed at bedtime, and to Jem and me, this was the equivalent
of him standing before us stark naked. We exchanged horrified
glances. Atticus put his hands in his pockets, and as he returned to
the jury, I saw his gold collar button and the tips of his pen and
pencil winking in the light. "Gentlemen," he said. Jem and I
again looked at each other: Atticus might have said, "Scout."
His voice had lost its aridity, its detachment, and he was talking
to the jury as if they were folks on the post office corner.
"Gentlemen," he was saying, "I shall be brief, but I would
like to use my remaining time with you to remind you that this case
is not a difficult one, it requires no minute sifting of
complicated facts, but it does require you to be sure beyond
all reasonable doubt as to the guilt of the defendant. To
begin with, this case should never have come to trial. This case is as
simple as black and white. "The state has not produced one iota of
medical evidence to the effect that the crime Tom Robinson is charged
with ever took place. It has relied instead upon the testimony of two
witnesses whose evidence has not only been called into serious
question on cross-examination, but has been flatly
contradicted by the defendant. The defendant is not guilty,
but somebody in this courtroom is. "I have nothing but pity in my
heart for the chief witness for the state, but my pity does not
extend so far as to her putting a man's life at stake,
which she has done in an effort to get rid of her own guilt. "I
say guilt, gentlemen, because it was guilt that motivated her. She has
committed no crime, she has merely broken a rigid and time-honored
code of our society, a code so severe that whoever breaks it is
hounded from our midst as unfit to live with. She is the victim
of cruel poverty and ignorance, but I cannot pity her: she is
white. She knew full well the enormity of her offense, but
because her desires were stronger than the code she was
breaking, she persisted in breaking it. She persisted, and her
subsequent reaction is something that all of us have known at one time
or another. She did something every child has done- she tried
to put the evidence of her offense away from her. But in this case she
was no child hiding stolen contraband: she struck out at her
victim- of necessity she must put him away from her- he must
be removed from her presence, from this world. She must
destroy the evidence of her offense. "What was the evidence
of her offense? Tom Robinson, a human being. She must put
Tom Robinson away from her. Tom Robinson was her daily reminder of
what she did. What did she do? She tempted a Negro. "She was white,
and she tempted a Negro. She did something that in our
society is unspeakable: she kissed a black man. Not an old
Uncle, but a strong young Negro man. No code mattered to her
before she broke it, but it came crashing down on her afterwards.
"Her father saw it, and the defendant has testified as to his remarks.
What did her father do? We don't know, but there is circumstantial
evidence to indicate that Mayella Ewell was beaten savagely by
someone who led almost exclusively with his left. We do know in
part what Mr. Ewell did: he did what any God-fearing, persevering,
respectable white man would do under the circumstances- he swore out
a warrant, no doubt signing it with his left hand, and Tom
Robinson now sits before you, having taken the oath with the
only good hand he possesses- his right hand. "And so a quiet,
respectable, humble Negro who had the unmitigated temerity to
'feel sorry' for a white woman has had to put his word against
two white people's. I need not remind you of their appearance
and conduct on the stand- you saw them for yourselves. The
witnesses for the state, with the exception of the sheriff of
Maycomb County, have presented themselves to you gentlemen, to
this court, in the cynical confidence that their testimony
would not be doubted, confident that you gentlemen would go along
with them on the assumption- the evil assumption- that all
Negroes lie, that all Negroes are basically immoral beings,
that all Negro men are not to be trusted around our women, an
assumption one associates with minds of their caliber. "Which,
gentlemen, we know is in itself a lie as black as Tom
Robinson's skin, a lie I do not have to point out to you. You know the
truth, and the truth is this: some Negroes lie, some Negroes are
immoral, some Negro men are not to be trusted around women- black
or white. But this is a truth that applies to the human race and
to no particular race of men. There is not a person in this courtroom
who has never told a lie, who has never done an immoral thing, and
there is no man living who has never looked upon a woman
without desire." Atticus paused and took out his handkerchief. Then
he took off his glasses and wiped them, and we saw another "first": we
had never seen him sweat- he was one of those men whose
faces never perspired, but now it was shining tan. "One more thing,
gentlemen, before I quit. Thomas Jefferson once said that all men
are created equal, a phrase that the Yankees and the distaff
side of the Executive branch in Washington are fond of
hurling at us. There is a tendency in this year of grace,
1935, for certain people to use this phrase out of context, to
satisfy all conditions. The most ridiculous example I can think
of is that the people who run public education promote the stupid
and idle along with the industrious- because all men are
created equal, educators will gravely tell you, the children
left behind suffer terrible feelings of inferiority. We know
all men are not created equal in the sense some people would have us
believe- some people are smarter than others, some people have more
opportunity because they're born with it, some men make more
money than others, some ladies make better cakes than others-
some people are born gifted beyond the normal scope of most men.
"But there is one way in this country in which all men are
created equal- there is one human institution that makes a pauper the
equal of a Rockefeller, the stupid man the equal of an Einstein,
and the ignorant man the equal of any college president. That
institution, gentlemen, is a court. It can be the Supreme Court
of the United States or the humblest J.P. court in the land,
or this honorable court which you serve. Our courts have
their faults, as does any human institution, but in this
country our courts are the great levelers, and in our courts all
men are created equal. "I'm no idealist to believe firmly in
the integrity of our courts and in the jury system- that is no
ideal to me, it is a living, working reality. Gentlemen, a court is
no better than each man of you sitting before me on this
jury. A court is only as sound as its jury, and a jury is only as
sound as the men who make it up. I am confident that you
gentlemen will review without passion the evidence you have
heard, come to a decision, and restore this defendant to his family.
In the name of God, do your duty." Atticus's voice had dropped,
and as he turned away from the jury he said something I did not
catch. He said it more to himself than to the court. I punched
Jem. "What'd he say?" "'In the name of God, believe him,' I
think that's what he said." Dill suddenly reached over me and
tugged at Jem. "Looka yonder!" We followed his finger with
sinking hearts. Calpurnia was making her way up the middle aisle,
walking straight toward Atticus. 21 She stopped shyly at the
railing and waited to get Judge Taylor's attention. She was in a
fresh apron and she carried an envelope in her hand. Judge Taylor saw
her and said, "It's Calpurnia, isn't it?" "Yes sir," she said. "Could
I just pass this note to Mr. Finch, please sir? It hasn't got anything
to do with- with the trial." Judge Taylor nodded and Atticus
took the envelope from Calpurnia. He opened it, read its contents
and said, "Judge, I- this note is from my sister. She says my
children are missing, haven't turned up since noon... I... could
you-" "I know where they are, Atticus." Mr. Underwood spoke up.
"They're right up yonder in the colored balcony- been there since
precisely one-eighteen P.M." Our father turned around and looked up.
"Jem, come down from there," he called. Then he said something to the
Judge we didn't hear. We climbed across Reverend Sykes and
made our way to the staircase. Atticus and Calpurnia met us
downstairs. Calpurnia looked peeved, but Atticus looked exhausted.
Jem was jumping in excitement. "We've won, haven't we?" "I've no
idea," said Atticus shortly. "You've been here all afternoon?
Go home with Calpurnia and get your supper- and stay home."
"Aw, Atticus, let us come back," pleaded Jem. "Please let us hear the
verdict, please sir." "The jury might be out and back in a
minute, we don't know-" but we could tell Atticus was relenting.
"Well, you've heard it all, so you might as well hear the
rest. Tell you what, you all can come back when you've eaten
your supper- eat slowly, now, you won't miss anything
important- and if the jury's still out, you can wait with
us. But I expect it'll be over before you get back." "You think
they'll acquit him that fast?" asked Jem. Atticus opened his mouth to
answer, but shut it and left us. I prayed that Reverend Sykes
would save our seats for us, but stopped praying when I remembered
that people got up and left in droves when the jury was out-
tonight, they'd overrun the drugstore, the O.K. Cafe and the hotel,
that is, unless they had brought their suppers too. Calpurnia marched
us home: "-skin every one of you alive, the very idea, you
children listenin' to all that! Mister Jem, don't you know
better'n to take your little sister to that trial? Miss
Alexandra'll absolutely have a stroke of paralysis when she finds out!
Ain't fittin' for children to hear...." The streetlights were on,
and we glimpsed Calpurnia's indignant profile as we passed beneath
them. "Mister Jem, I thought you was gettin' some kinda head on
your shoulders- the very idea, she's your little sister! The
very idea, sir! You oughta be perfectly ashamed of yourself- ain't you
got any sense at all?" I was exhilarated. So many things had
happened so fast I felt it would take years to sort them out, and
now here was Calpurnia giving her precious Jem down the
country- what new marvels would the evening bring? Jem was
chuckling. "Don't you want to hear about it, Cal?" "Hush your
mouth, sir! When you oughta be hangin' your head in shame
you go along laughin'-" Calpurnia revived a series of rusty
threats that moved Jem to little remorse, and she sailed up the
front steps with her classic, "If Mr. Finch don't wear you out,
I will- get in that house, sir!" Jem went in grinning, and Calpurnia
nodded tacit consent to having Dill in to supper. "You all call
Miss Rachel right now and tell her where you are," she told
him. "She's run distracted lookin' for you- you watch out she don't
ship you back to Meridian first thing in the mornin'." Aunt
Alexandra met us and nearly fainted when Calpurnia told her
where we were. I guess it hurt her when we told her Atticus
said we could go back, because she didn't say a word during supper.
She just rearranged food on her plate, looking at it sadly while
Calpurnia served Jem, Dill and me with a vengeance. Calpurnia
poured milk, dished out potato salad and ham, muttering, "'shamed
of yourselves," in varying degrees of intensity. "Now you all
eat slow," was her final command. Reverend Sykes had saved our
places. We were surprised to find that we had been gone nearly
an hour, and were equally surprised to find the courtroom
exactly as we had left it, with minor changes: the jury box
was empty, the defendant was gone; Judge Taylor had been
gone, but he reappeared as we were seating ourselves. "Nobody's
moved, hardly," said Jem. "They moved around some when the
jury went out," said Reverend Sykes. "The menfolk down there
got the womenfolk their suppers, and they fed their babies." "How
long have they been out?" asked Jem. "'bout thirty minutes. Mr.
Finch and Mr. Gilmer did some more talkin', and Judge Taylor
charged the jury." "How was he?" asked Jem. "What say? Oh, he did
right well. I ain't complainin' one bit- he was mighty fair-minded. He
sorta said if you believe this, then you'll have to return one
verdict, but if you believe this, you'll have to return
another one. I thought he was leanin' a little to our side-"
Reverend Sykes scratched his head. Jem smiled. "He's not supposed
to lean, Reverend, but don't fret, we've won it," he said wisely.
"Don't see how any jury could convict on what we heard-" "Now don't
you be so confident, Mr. Jem, I ain't ever seen any jury
decide in favor of a colored man over a white man...." But
Jem took exception to Reverend Sykes, and we were subjected to a
lengthy review of the evidence with Jem's ideas on the law
regarding rape: it wasn't rape if she let you, but she had to be
eighteen- in Alabama, that is- and Mayella was nineteen.
Apparently you had to kick and holler, you had to be
overpowered and stomped on, preferably knocked stone cold. If you
were under eighteen, you didn't have to go through all this. "Mr.
Jem," Reverend Sykes demurred, "this ain't a polite thing for
little ladies to hear..." "Aw, she doesn't know what we're talkin'
about," said Jem. "Scout, this is too old for you, ain't it?" "It
most certainly is not, I know every word you're saying." Perhaps I
was too convincing, because Jem hushed and never discussed the
subject again. "What time is it, Reverend?" he asked. "Gettin' on
toward eight." I looked down and saw Atticus strolling around
with his hands in his pockets: he made a tour of the windows, then
walked by the railing over to the jury box. He looked in
it, inspected Judge Taylor on his throne, then went back to
where he started. I caught his eye and waved to him. He
acknowledged my salute with a nod, and resumed his tour. Mr. Gilmer
was standing at the windows talking to Mr. Underwood. Bert, the
court reporter, was chain-smoking: he sat back with his feet on the
table. But the officers of the court, the ones present- Atticus,
Mr. Gilmer, Judge Taylor sound asleep, and Bert, were the only ones
whose behavior seemed normal. I had never seen a packed
courtroom so still. Sometimes a baby would cry out fretfully, and a
child would scurry out, but the grown people sat as if they were
in church. In the balcony, the Negroes sat and stood around us
with biblical patience. The old courthouse clock suffered its
preliminary strain and struck the hour, eight deafening bongs
that shook our bones. When it bonged eleven times I was past
feeling: tired from fighting sleep, I allowed myself a short
nap against Reverend Sykes's comfortable arm and shoulder. I
jerked awake and made an honest effort to remain so, by
looking down and concentrating on the heads below: there were
sixteen bald ones, fourteen men that could pass for redheads,
forty heads varying between brown and black, and- I remembered
something Jem had once explained to me when he went through
a brief period of psychical research: he said if enough people- a
stadium full, maybe- were to concentrate on one thing, such as
setting a tree afire in the woods, that the tree would
ignite of its own accord.
I toyed with the idea of asking
everyone below to concentrate on setting Tom Robinson free,
but thought if they were as tired as I, it wouldn't work. Dill was
sound asleep, his head on Jem's shoulder, and Jem was quiet. "Ain't
it a long time?" I asked him. "Sure is, Scout," he said happily.
"Well, from the way you put it, it'd just take five minutes." Jem
raised his eyebrows. "There are things you don't understand,"
he said, and I was too weary to argue. But I must have been
reasonably awake, or I would not have received the impression
that was creeping into me. It was not unlike one I had last winter,
and I shivered, though the night was hot. The feeling grew until the
atmosphere in the courtroom was exactly the same as a cold
February morning, when the mockingbirds were still, and the
carpenters had stopped hammering on Miss Maudie's new house,
and every wood door in the neighborhood was shut as tight as the
doors of the Radley Place. A deserted, waiting, empty street,
and the courtroom was packed with people. A steaming summer
night was no different from a winter morning. Mr. Heck Tate,
who had entered the courtroom and was talking to Atticus,
might have been wearing his high boots and lumber jacket.
Atticus had stopped his tranquil journey and had put his foot
onto the bottom rung of a chair; as he listened to what Mr. Tate was
saying, he ran his hand slowly up and down his thigh. I
expected Mr. Tate to say any minute, "Take him, Mr.
Finch...." But Mr. Tate said, "This court will come to order," in a
voice that rang with authority, and the heads below us jerked up. Mr.
Tate left the room and returned with Tom Robinson. He steered Tom to
his place beside Atticus, and stood there. Judge Taylor had
roused himself to sudden alertness and was sitting up straight,
looking at the empty jury box. What happened after that had a
dreamlike quality: in a dream I saw the jury return, moving
like underwater swimmers, and Judge Taylor's voice came from
far away and was tiny. I saw something only a lawyer's child could be
expected to see, could be expected to watch for, and it was like
watching Atticus walk into the street, raise a rifle to his shoulder
and pull the trigger, but watching all the time knowing that
the gun was empty. A jury never looks at a defendant it has
convicted, and when this jury came in, not one of them
looked at Tom Robinson. The foreman handed a piece of paper to Mr.
Tate who handed it to the clerk who handed it to the judge.... I shut
my eyes. Judge Taylor was polling the jury: "Guilty... guilty...
guilty... guilty..." I peeked at Jem: his hands were white
from gripping the balcony rail, and his shoulders jerked as
if each "guilty" was a separate stab between them. Judge
Taylor was saying something. His gavel was in his fist, but
he wasn't using it. Dimly, I saw Atticus pushing papers from
the table into his briefcase. He snapped it shut, went to the court
reporter and said something, nodded to Mr. Gilmer, and then
went to Tom Robinson and whispered something to him. Atticus
put his hand on Tom's shoulder as he whispered. Atticus took
his coat off the back of his chair and pulled it over his
shoulder. Then he left the courtroom, but not by his usual exit.
He must have wanted to go home the short way, because he walked
quickly down the middle aisle toward the south exit. I followed the
top of his head as he made his way to the door. He did not
look up. Someone was punching me, but I was reluctant to take my eyes
from the people below us, and from the image of Atticus's
lonely walk down the aisle. "Miss Jean Louise?" I looked around.
They were standing. All around us and in the balcony on the
opposite wall, the Negroes were getting to their feet. Reverend
Sykes's voice was as distant as Judge Taylor's: "Miss Jean
Louise, stand up. Your father's passin'." 22 It was Jem's turn
to cry. His face was streaked with angry tears as we made
our way through the cheerful crowd. "It ain't right," he
muttered, all the way to the corner of the square where we
found Atticus waiting. Atticus was standing under the street
light looking as though nothing had happened: his vest was
buttoned, his collar and tie were neatly in place, his watch-
chain glistened, he was his impassive self again. "It ain't
right, Atticus," said Jem. "No son, it's not right." We walked home.
Aunt Alexandra was waiting up. She was in her dressing gown,
and I could have sworn she had on her corset underneath it.
"I'm sorry, brother," she murmured. Having never heard her
call Atticus "brother" before, I stole a glance at Jem, but he
was not listening. He would look up at Atticus, then down at the
floor, and I wondered if he thought Atticus somehow
responsible for Tom Robinson's conviction. "Is he all right?"
Aunty asked, indicating Jem. "He'll be so presently," said
Atticus. "It was a little too strong for him." Our father
sighed. "I'm going to bed," he said. "If I don't wake up in the
morning, don't call me." "I didn't think it wise in the first place
to let them-" "This is their home, sister," said Atticus. "We've
made it this way for them, they might as well learn to cope with it."
"But they don't have to go to the courthouse and wallow in it-" "It's
just as much Maycomb County as missionary teas." "Atticus-" Aunt
Alexandra's eyes were anxious. "You are the last person I thought
would turn bitter over this." "I'm not bitter, just tired. I'm going
to bed." "Atticus-" said Jem bleakly. He turned in the doorway.
"What, son?" "How could they do it, how could they?" "I don't
know, but they did it. They've done it before and they did it
tonight and they'll do it again and when they do it- seems that only
children weep. Good night." But things are always better in the
morning. Atticus rose at his usual ungodly hour and was in the
livingroom behind the Mobile Register when we stumbled in. Jem's
morning face posed the question his sleepy lips struggled to ask.
"It's not time to worry yet," Atticus reassured him, as we
went to the diningroom. "We're not through yet. There'll be an
appeal, you can count on that. Gracious alive, Cal, what's all
this?" He was staring at his breakfast plate. Calpurnia said, "Tom
Robinson's daddy sent you along this chicken this morning. I
fixed it." "You tell him I'm proud to get it- bet they
don't have chicken for breakfast at the White House. What are these?"
"Rolls," said Calpurnia. "Estelle down at the hotel sent 'em."
Atticus looked up at her, puzzled, and she said, "You better step out
here and see what's in the kitchen, Mr. Finch." We followed him. The
kitchen table was loaded with enough food to bury the family:
hunks of salt pork, tomatoes, beans, even scuppernongs. Atticus
grinned when he found a jar of pickled pigs' knuckles. "Reckon
Aunty'll let me eat these in the diningroom?" Calpurnia said,
"This was all 'round the back steps when I got here this
morning. They- they 'preciate what you did, Mr. Finch. They-
they aren't oversteppin' themselves, are they?" Atticus's eyes
filled with tears. He did not speak for a moment. "Tell them
I'm very grateful," he said. "Tell them- tell them they must never
do this again. Times are too hard...." He left the kitchen,
went in the diningroom and excused himself to Aunt Alexandra, put
on his hat and went to town. We heard Dill's step in the hall,
so Calpurnia left Atticus's uneaten breakfast on the table.
Between rabbit-bites Dill told us of Miss Rachel's reaction to last
night, which was: if a man like Atticus Finch wants to butt
his head against a stone wall it's his head. "I'da got her told,"
growled Dill, gnawing a chicken leg, "but she didn't look much like
tellin' this morning. Said she was up half the night wonderin'
where I was, said she'da had the sheriff after me but he was at
the hearing." "Dill, you've got to stop goin' off without
tellin' her," said Jem. "It just aggravates her." Dill sighed
patiently. "I told her till I was blue in the face where I
was goin'- she's just seein' too many snakes in the closet. Bet that
woman drinks a pint for breakfast every morning- know she drinks
two glasses full. Seen her." "Don't talk like that, Dill," said
Aunt Alexandra. "It's not becoming to a child. It's- cynical." "I
ain't cynical, Miss Alexandra. Tellin' the truth's not cynical,
is it?" "The way you tell it, it is." Jem's eyes flashed at her, but
he said to Dill, "Let's go. You can take that runner with you." When
we went to the front porch, Miss Stephanie Crawford was busy telling
it to Miss Maudie Atkinson and Mr. Avery. They looked around at
us and went on talking. Jem made a feral noise in his throat. I wished
for a weapon. "I hate grown folks lookin' at you," said Dill.
"Makes you feel like you've done something." Miss Maudie yelled for
Jem Finch to come there. Jem groaned and heaved himself up from the
swing. "We'll go with you," Dill said. Miss Stephanie's nose
quivered with curiosity. She wanted to know who all gave us
permission to go to court- she didn't see us but it was all over
town this morning that we were in the Colored balcony. Did Atticus put
us up there as a sort of-? Wasn't it right close up there with all
those-? Did Scout understand all the-? Didn't it make us mad to see
our daddy beat? "Hush, Stephanie." Miss Maudie's diction was
deadly. "I've not got all the morning to pass on the porch-
Jem Finch, I called to find out if you and your colleagues
can eat some cake. Got up at five to make it, so you
better say yes. Excuse us, Stephanie. Good morning, Mr. Avery."
There was a big cake and two little ones on Miss Maudie's
kitchen table. There should have been three little ones. It
was not like Miss Maudie to forget Dill, and we must have
shown it. But we understood when she cut from the big cake
and gave the slice to Jem. As we ate, we sensed that this was
Miss Maudie's way of saying that as far as she was
concerned, nothing had changed. She sat quietly in a kitchen chair,
watching us. Suddenly she spoke: "Don't fret, Jem. Things are
never as bad as they seem." Indoors, when Miss Maudie wanted to
say something lengthy she spread her fingers on her knees and settled
her bridgework. This she did, and we waited. "I simply want to
tell you that there are some men in this world who were born
to do our unpleasant jobs for us. Your father's one of them." "Oh,"
said Jem. "Well." "Don't you oh well me, sir," Miss Maudie replied,
recognizing Jem's fatalistic noises, "you are not old enough
to appreciate what I said." Jem was staring at his half-eaten
cake. "It's like bein' a caterpillar in a cocoon, that's what
it is," he said. "Like somethin' asleep wrapped up in a warm
place. I always thought Maycomb folks were the best folks
in the world, least that's what they seemed like." "We're the
safest folks in the world," said Miss Maudie. "We're so
rarely called on to be Christians, but when we are, we've got
men like Atticus to go for us." Jem grinned ruefully. "Wish the
rest of the county thought that." "You'd be surprised how many of
us do." "Who?" Jem's voice rose. "Who in this town did one thing to
help Tom Robinson, just who?" "His colored friends for one thing, and
people like us. People like Judge Taylor. People like Mr. Heck Tate.
Stop eating and start thinking, Jem. Did it ever strike you that Judge
Taylor naming Atticus to defend that boy was no accident?
That Judge Taylor might have had his reasons for naming him?" This
was a thought. Court-appointed defenses were usually given to
Maxwell Green, Maycomb's latest addition to the bar, who
needed the experience. Maxwell Green should have had Tom
Robinson's case. "You think about that," Miss Maudie was saying. "It
was no accident. I was sittin' there on the porch last night, waiting.
I waited and waited to see you all come down the sidewalk, and as I
waited I thought, Atticus Finch won't win, he can't win, but he's
the only man in these parts who can keep a jury out so long
in a case like that. And I thought to myself, well, we're making a
step- it's just a baby-step, but it's a step." "'t's all right
to talk like that- can't any Christian judges an' lawyers make up for
heathen juries," Jem muttered. "Soon's I get grown-" "That's
something you'll have to take up with your father," Miss
Maudie said. We went down Miss Maudie's cool new steps into
the sunshine and found Mr. Avery and Miss Stephanie Crawford still at
it. They had moved down the sidewalk and were standing in
front of Miss Stephanie's house. Miss Rachel was walking toward them.
"I think I'll be a clown when I get grown," said Dill. Jem and I
stopped in our tracks. "Yes sir, a clown," he said. "There
ain't one thing in this world I can do about folks except
laugh, so I'm gonna join the circus and laugh my head off." "You
got it backwards, Dill," said Jem. "Clowns are sad, it's folks that
laugh at them." "Well I'm gonna be a new kind of clown. I'm gonna
stand in the middle of the ring and laugh at the folks. Just
looka yonder," he pointed. "Every one of 'em oughta be ridin'
broomsticks. Aunt Rachel already does." Miss Stephanie and Miss
Rachel were waving wildly at us, in a way that did not give the lie to
Dill's observation. "Oh gosh," breathed Jem. "I reckon it'd be
ugly not to see 'em." Something was wrong. Mr. Avery was red in
the face from a sneezing spell and nearly blew us off the sidewalk
when we came up. Miss Stephanie was trembling with excitement,
and Miss Rachel caught Dill's shoulder. "You get on in the
back yard and stay there," she said. "There's danger
a'comin'." "'s matter?" I asked. "Ain't you heard yet? It's all over
town-" At that moment Aunt Alexandra came to the door and called us,
but she was too late. It was Miss Stephanie's pleasure to
tell us: this morning Mr. Bob Ewell stopped Atticus on the post
office corner, spat in his face, and told him he'd get him
if it took the rest of his life. 23 "I wish Bob Ewell wouldn't
chew tobacco," was all Atticus said about it. According to Miss
Stephanie Crawford, however, Atticus was leaving the post office
when Mr. Ewell approached him, cursed him, spat on him, and
threatened to kill him. Miss Stephanie (who, by the time she had
told it twice was there and had seen it all- passing by from the
Jitney Jungle, she was)- Miss Stephanie said Atticus didn't bat
an eye, just took out his handkerchief and wiped his face
and stood there and let Mr. Ewell call him names wild horses could
not bring her to repeat. Mr. Ewell was a veteran of an
obscure war; that plus Atticus's peaceful reaction probably prompted
him to inquire, "Too proud to fight, you nigger-lovin'
bastard?" Miss Stephanie said Atticus said, "No, too old," put
his hands in his pockets and strolled on. Miss Stephanie said you
had to hand it to Atticus Finch, he could be right dry
sometimes. Jem and I didn't think it entertaining. "After all,
though," I said, "he was the deadest shot in the county one
time. He could-" "You know he wouldn't carry a gun, Scout. He ain't
even got one-" said Jem. "You know he didn't even have one down at the
jail that night. He told me havin' a gun around's an
invitation to somebody to shoot you." "This is different," I said.
"We can ask him to borrow one." We did, and he said, "Nonsense."
Dill was of the opinion that an appeal to Atticus's better
nature might work: after all, we would starve if Mr. Ewell
killed him, besides be raised exclusively by Aunt Alexandra, and we
all knew the first thing she'd do before Atticus was under the ground
good would be to fire Calpurnia. Jem said it might work if I
cried and flung a fit, being young and a girl. That didn't
work either. But when he noticed us dragging around the neighborhood,
not eating, taking little interest in our normal pursuits,
Atticus discovered how deeply frightened we were. He tempted
Jem with a new football magazine one night; when he saw Jem flip
the pages and toss it aside, he said, "What's bothering you,
son?" Jem came to the point: "Mr. Ewell." "What has happened?"
"Nothing's happened. We're scared for you, and we think you
oughta do something about him." Atticus smiled wryly. "Do what?
Put him under a peace bond?" "When a man says he's gonna get you,
looks like he means it." "He meant it when he said it," said Atticus.
"Jem, see if you can stand in Bob Ewell's shoes a minute. I
destroyed his last shred of credibility at that trial, if he
had any to begin with. The man had to have some kind of comeback,
his kind always does. So if spitting in my face and
threatening me saved Mayella Ewell one extra beating, that's
something I'll gladly take. He had to take it out on somebody
and I'd rather it be me than that houseful of children out there. You
understand?" Jem nodded. Aunt Alexandra entered the room as
Atticus was saying, "We don't have anything to fear from Bob Ewell,
he got it all out of his system that morning." "I wouldn't be so sure
of that, Atticus," she said. "His kind'd do anything to pay off a
grudge. You know how those people are." "What on earth could
Ewell do to me, sister?" "Something furtive," Aunt Alexandra
said. "You may count on that." "Nobody has much chance to be
furtive in Maycomb," Atticus answered. After that, we were not
afraid. Summer was melting away, and we made the most of it.
Atticus assured us that nothing would happen to Tom Robinson
until the higher court reviewed his case, and that Tom had a good
chance of going free, or at least of having a new trial. He
was at Enfield Prison Farm, seventy miles away in Chester County. I
asked Atticus if Tom's wife and children were allowed to visit him,
but Atticus said no. "If he loses his appeal," I asked one
evening, "what'll happen to him?" "He'll go to the chair," said
Atticus, "unless the Governor commutes his sentence. Not time
to worry yet, Scout. We've got a good chance." Jem was sprawled
on the sofa reading Popular Mechanics. He looked up. "It
ain't right. He didn't kill anybody even if he was guilty. He
didn't take anybody's life." "You know rape's a capital offense in
Alabama," said Atticus. "Yessir, but the jury didn't have to
give him death- if they wanted to they could've gave him twenty
years." "Given," said Atticus. "Tom Robinson's a colored man, Jem. No
jury in this part of the world's going to say, 'We think
you're guilty, but not very,' on a charge like that. It was
either a straight acquittal or nothing." Jem was shaking his head. "I
know it's not right, but I can't figure out what's wrong- maybe rape
shouldn't be a capital offense...." Atticus dropped his newspaper
beside his chair. He said he didn't have any quarrel with
the rape statute, none what ever, but he did have deep misgivings
when the state asked jury gave a death penalty on purely for
and the circumstantial evidence. He glanced at me, saw I was
listening, and made it easier. "-I mean, before a man is
sentenced to death for murder, say, there should be one or two eye-
witnesses. Some one should be able to say, 'Yes, I was there and saw
him pull the trigger.'" lots of "But circumstantial evidence,"
said Jem. folks have been hung- hanged- on "I know, and lots
of 'em probably deserved it, too- but in the absence of eye-
witnesses there's always a doubt, some times only the shadow of a
doubt. The law says 'reasonable doubt,' but I think a defendant's
entitled to the shadow of a doubt. There's always the possibility,
no matter how improbable, that he's innocent." "Then it all goes
back to the jury, then. We oughta do away with juries." Jem was
adamant. Atticus tried hard not to smile but couldn't help
it. "You're rather hard on us, son. I think maybe there
might be a better way. Change the law. Change it so that
only judges have the power of fixing the penalty in capital cases."
"Then go up to Montgomery and change the law." "You'd be surprised
how hard that'd be. I won't live to see the law changed,
and if you live to see it you'll be an old man." This was
not good enough for Jem. "No sir, they oughta do away with juries. He
wasn't guilty in the first place and they said he was." "If you had
been on that jury, son, and eleven other boys like you, Tom
would be a free man," said Atticus. "So far nothing in your
life has interfered with your reasoning process. Those are twelve
reasonable men in everyday life, Tom's jury, but you saw something
come between them and reason. You saw the same thing that night
in front of the jail. When that crew went away, they didn't
go as reasonable men, they went because we were there. There's
something in our world that makes men lose their heads- they
couldn't be fair if they tried. In our courts, when it's a white
man's word against a black man's, the white man always wins.
They're ugly, but those are the facts of life." "Doesn't make it
right," said Jem stolidly. He beat his fist softly on his
knee. "You just can't convict a man on evidence like that- you
can't." "You couldn't, but they could and did. The older you
grow the more of it you'll see. The one place where a man ought to
get a square deal is in a courtroom, be he any color of
the rainbow, but people have a way of carrying their
resentments right into a jury box. As you grow older, you'll see
white men cheat black men every day of your life, but let me
tell you something and don't you forget it- whenever a white man does
that to a black man, no matter who he is, how rich he is, or how
fine a family he comes from, that white man is trash." Atticus
was speaking so quietly his last word crashed on our ears. I looked
up, and his face was vehement. "There's nothing more sickening
to me than a low-grade white man who'll take advantage of a
Negro's ignorance. Don't fool yourselves- it's all adding up
and one of these days we're going to pay the bill for it.
I hope it's not in you children's time." Jem was scratching
his head. Suddenly his eyes widened. "Atticus," he said, "why
don't people like us and Miss Maudie ever sit on juries? You
never see anybody from Maycomb on a jury- they all come from out in
the woods." Atticus leaned back in his rocking-chair. For some reason
he looked pleased with Jem. "I was wondering when that'd occur
to you," he said. "There are lots of reasons. For one thing,
Miss Maudie can't serve on a jury because she's a woman-"
"You mean women in Alabama can't-?" I was indignant. "I do. I
guess it's to protect our frail ladies from sordid cases like
Tom's. Besides," Atticus grinned, "I doubt if we'd ever get a complete
case tried- the ladies'd be interrupting to ask questions." Jem and
I laughed. Miss Maudie on a jury would be impressive. I
thought of old Mrs. Dubose in her wheelchair- "Stop that rapping,
John Taylor, I want to ask this man something." Perhaps our
forefathers were wise. Atticus was saying, "With people like us-
that's our share of the bill. We generally get the juries we
deserve. Our stout Maycomb citizens aren't interested, in the first
place. In the second place, they're afraid. Then, they're-" "Afraid,
why?" asked Jem. "Well, what if- say, Mr. Link Deas had to decide the
amount of damages to award, say, Miss Maudie, when Miss
Rachel ran over her with a car. Link wouldn't like the
thought of losing either lady's business at his store, would
he? So he tells Judge Taylor that he can't serve on the jury because
he doesn't have anybody to keep store for him while he's gone. So
Judge Taylor excuses him. Sometimes he excuses him wrathfully."
"What'd make him think either one of 'em'd stop trading with
him?" I asked. Jem said, "Miss Rachel would, Miss Maudie
wouldn't. But a jury's vote's secret, Atticus." Our father
chuckled. "You've many more miles to go, son. A jury's vote's supposed
to be secret. Serving on a jury forces a man to make up his mind
and declare himself about something. Men don't like to do
that. Sometimes it's unpleasant." "Tom's jury sho' made up its
mind in a hurry," Jem muttered. Atticus's fingers went to his
watchpocket. "No it didn't," he said, more to himself than to
us. "That was the one thing that made me think, well, this
may be the shadow of a beginning. That jury took a few hours. An
inevitable verdict, maybe, but usually it takes 'em just a few
minutes. This time-" he broke off and looked at us. "You
might like to know that there was one fellow who took
considerable wearing down- in the beginning he was rarin' for an
outright acquittal." "Who?" Jem was astonished. Atticus's eyes
twinkled. "It's not for me to say, but I'll tell you this
much. He was one of your Old Sarum friends..." "One of the
Cunninghams?" Jem yelped. "One of- I didn't recognize any of
'em... you're jokin'." He looked at Atticus from the corners of
his eyes. "One of their connections. On a hunch, I didn't
strike him. Just on a hunch. Could've, but I didn't." "Golly
Moses," Jem said reverently. "One minute they're tryin' to
kill him and the next they're tryin' to turn him loose...
I'll never understand those folks as long as I live." Atticus said
you just had to know 'em. He said the Cunninghams hadn't taken
anything from or off of anybody since they migrated to the New
World. He said the other thing about them was, once you
earned their respect they were for you tooth and nail.
Atticus said he had a feeling, nothing more than a suspicion,
that they left the jail that night with considerable respect
for the Finches. Then too, he said, it took a thunderbolt
plus another Cunningham to make one of them change his mind. "If
we'd had two of that crowd, we'd've had a hung jury." Jem said
slowly, "You mean you actually put on the jury a man who
wanted to kill you the night before? How could you take such a
risk, Atticus, how could you?" "When you analyze it, there was
little risk. There's no difference between one man who's going
to convict and another man who's going to convict, is
there? There's a faint difference between a man who's going to
convict and a man who's a little disturbed in his mind, isn't there?
He was the only uncertainty on the whole list." "What kin was that
man to Mr. Walter Cunningham?" I asked. Atticus rose,
stretched and yawned. It was not even our bedtime, but we
knew he wanted a chance to read his newspaper. He picked it up,
folded it, and tapped my head. "Let's see now," he droned to
himself. "I've got it. Double first cousin." "How can that be?"
"Two sisters married two brothers. That's all I'll tell you-
you figure it out." I tortured myself and decided that if I married
Jem and Dill had a sister whom he married our children would be double
first cousins. "Gee minetti, Jem," I said, when Atticus had
gone, "they're funny folks. 'd you hear that, Aunty?" Aunt Alexandra
was hooking a rug and not watching us, but she was listening. She sat
in her chair with her workbasket beside it, her rug spread across her
lap. Why ladies hooked woolen rugs on boiling nights never became
clear to me. "I heard it," she said. I remembered the distant
disastrous occasion when I rushed to young Walter Cunningham's
defense. Now I was glad I'd done it. "Soon's school starts I'm
gonna ask Walter home to dinner," I planned, having forgotten
my private resolve to beat him up the next time I saw him.
"He can stay over sometimes after school, too. Atticus could
drive him back to Old Sarum. Maybe he could spend the
night with us sometime, okay, Jem?" "We'll see about that," Aunt
Alexandra said, a declaration that with her was always a
threat, never a promise. Surprised, I turned to her. "Why
not, Aunty? They're good folks." She looked at me over her
sewing glasses. "Jean Louise, there is no doubt in my mind
that they're good folks. But they're not our kind of folks." Jem
says, "She means they're yappy, Scout." "What's a yap?" "Aw, tacky.
They like fiddlin' and things like that." "Well I do too-" "Don't
be silly, Jean Louise," said Aunt Alexandra. "The thing is,
you can scrub Walter Cunningham till he shines, you can put him
in shoes and a new suit, but he'll never be like Jem. Besides, there's
a drinking streak in that family a mile wide. Finch women aren't
interested in that sort of people." "Aun-ty," said Jem, "she
ain't nine yet." "She may as well learn it now." Aunt Alexandra
had spoken. I was reminded vividly of the last time she had
put her foot down. I never knew why. It was when I was
absorbed with plans to visit Calpurnia's house- I was curious,
interested; I wanted to be her "company," to see how she
lived, who her friends were. I might as well have wanted to
see the other side of the moon. This time the tactics were
different, but Aunt Alexandra's aim was the same. Perhaps this
was why she had come to live with us- to help us choose
our friends. I would hold her off as long as I could: "If they're
good folks, then why can't I be nice to Walter?" "I didn't say not
to be nice to him. You should be friendly and polite to
him, you should be gracious to everybody, dear. But you don't
have to invite him home." "What if he was kin to us, Aunty?" "The
fact is that he is not kin to us, but if he were, my
answer would be the same." "Aunty," Jem spoke up, "Atticus says
you can choose your friends but you sho' can't choose your
family, an' they're still kin to you no matter whether you
acknowledge 'em or not, and it makes you look right silly when you
don't." "That's your father all over again," said Aunt
Alexandra, "and I still say that Jean Louise will not invite
Walter Cunningham to this house. If he were her double first
cousin once removed he would still not be received in this
house unless he comes to see Atticus on business. Now that is that."
She had said Indeed Not, but this time she would give her reasons:
"But I want to play with Walter, Aunty, why can't I?" She
took off her glasses and stared at me. "I'll tell you why,"
she said. "Because- he- is- trash, that's why you can't play with
him. I'll not have you around him, picking up his habits and
learning Lord-knows-what. You're enough of a problem to your
father as it is." I don't know what I would have done, but Jem
stopped me. He caught me by the shoulders, put his arm around
me, and led me sobbing in fury to his bedroom. Atticus heard us and
poked his head around the door. "'s all right, sir," Jem
said gruffly, "'s not anything." Atticus went away. "Have a chew,
Scout." Jem dug into his pocket and extracted a Tootsie Roll.
It took a few minutes to work the candy into a comfortable wad
inside my jaw. Jem was rearranging the objects on his dresser.
His hair stuck up behind and down in front, and I wondered
if it would ever look like a man's- maybe if he shaved it off and
started over, his hair would grow back neatly in place. His
eyebrows were becoming heavier, and I noticed a new slimness
about his body. He was growing taller. When he looked around, he
must have thought I would start crying again, for he said, "Show
you something if you won't tell anybody." I said what. He
unbuttoned his shirt, grinning shyly. "Well what?" "Well can't you
see it?" "Well no." "Well it's hair." "Where?" "There. Right
there." He had been a comfort to me, so I said it looked lovely, but
I didn't see anything. "It's real nice, Jem." "Under my arms,
too," he said. "Goin' out for football next year. Scout, don't
let Aunty aggravate you." It seemed only yesterday that he was
telling me not to aggravate Aunty. "You know she's not used
to girls," said Jem, "leastways, not girls like you. She's trying
to make you a lady. Can't you take up sewin' or somethin'?" "Hell no.
She doesn't like me, that's all there is to it, and I don't care. It
was her callin' Walter Cunningham trash that got me goin', Jem, not
what she said about being a problem to Atticus. We got that all
straight one time, I asked him if I was a problem and he said
not much of one, at most one that he could always figure out,
and not to worry my head a second about botherin' him. Naw, it
was Walter- that boy's not trash, Jem. He ain't like the Ewells."
Jem kicked off his shoes and swung his feet to the bed. He propped
himself against a pillow and switched on the reading light.
"You know something, Scout? I've got it all figured out, now.
I've thought about it a lot lately and I've got it figured
out. There's four kinds of folks in the world. There's the
ordinary kind like us and the neighbors, there's the kind like the
Cunninghams out in the woods, the kind like the Ewells down at
the dump, and the Negroes." "What about the Chinese, and the
Cajuns down yonder in Baldwin County?" "I mean in Maycomb County.
The thing about it is, our kind of folks don't like the Cunninghams,
the Cunninghams don't like the Ewells, and the Ewells hate and despise
the colored folks." I told Jem if that was so, then why didn't Tom's
jury, made up of folks like the Cunninghams, acquit Tom to
spite the Ewells?" Jem waved my question away as being infantile.
"You know," he said, "I've seen Atticus pat his foot when
there's fiddlin' on the radio, and he loves pot liquor better'n any
man I ever saw-" "Then that makes us like the Cunninghams," I said.
"I can't see why Aunty-" "No, lemme finish- it does, but we're
still different somehow. Atticus said one time the reason
Aunty's so hipped on the family is because all we've got's background
and not a dime to our names." "Well Jem, I don't know- Atticus told
me one time that most of this Old Family stuff's foolishness
because everybody's family's just as old as everybody else's.
I said did that include the colored folks and Englishmen and he
said yes." "Background doesn't mean Old Family," said Jem. "I
think it's how long your family's been readin' and writin'.
Scout, I've studied this real hard and that's the only reason
I can think of. Somewhere along when the Finches were in Egypt one of
'em must have learned a hieroglyphic or two and he taught his boy."
Jem laughed. "Imagine Aunty being proud her great-grandaddy could
read an' write- ladies pick funny things to be proud of." "Well I'm
glad he could, or who'da taught Atticus and them, and if Atticus
couldn't read, you and me'd be in a fix. I don't think that's what
background is, Jem." "Well then, how do you explain why the
Cunninghams are different? Mr. Walter can hardly sign his
name, I've seen him. We've just been readin' and writin'
longer'n they have." "No, everybody's gotta learn, nobody's
born knowin'. That Walter's as smart as he can be, he just
gets held back sometimes because he has to stay out and help his
daddy. Nothin's wrong with him. Naw, Jem, I think there's just one
kind of folks. Folks." Jem turned around and punched his pillow. When
he settled back his face was cloudy. He was going into one
of his declines, and I grew wary. His brows came together;
his mouth became a thin line. He was silent for a while. "That's
what I thought, too," he said at last, "when I was your
age. If there's just one kind of folks, why can't they get
along with each other? If they're all alike, why do they go out of
their way to despise each other? Scout, I think I'm beginning to
understand something. I think I'm beginning to understand why
Boo Radley's stayed shut up in the house all this time... it's
because he wants to stay inside." 24 Calpurnia wore her
stiffest starched apron. She carried a tray of charlotte. She
backed up to the swinging door and pressed gently. I admired
the ease and grace with which she handled heavy loads of
dainty things. So did Aunt Alexandra, I guess, because she
had let Calpurnia serve today. August was on the brink of
September. Dill would be leaving for Meridian tomorrow; today he
was off with Jem at Barker's Eddy. Jem had discovered with
angry amazement that nobody had ever bothered to teach Dill how to
swim, a skill Jem considered necessary as walking. They had
spent two afternoons at the creek, they said they were going
in naked and I couldn't come, so I divided the lonely hours
between Calpurnia and Miss Maudie. Today Aunt Alexandra and her
missionary circle were fighting the good fight all over the house.
From the kitchen, I heard Mrs. Grace Merriweather giving a
report in the livingroom on the squalid lives of the Mrunas,
it sounded like to me. They put the women out in huts when their time
came, whatever that was; they had no sense of family- I knew
that'd distress Aunty- they subjected children to terrible
ordeals when they were thirteen; they were crawling with yaws
and earworms, they chewed up and spat out the bark of a tree
into a communal pot and then got drunk on it. Immediately
refreshments. thereafter, the ladies adjourned for I didn't
know whether to go into the diningroom or stay out. Aunt Alexandra
told me to join them for refreshments; it was not necessary
that I attend the business part of the meeting, she said
it'd bore me. I was wearing my pink Sunday dress, shoes, and a
petticoat, and reflected that if I spilled anything Calpurnia would
have to wash my dress again for tomorrow. This had been a
busy day for her. I decided to stay out. "Can I help you,
Cal?" I asked, wishing to be of some service. Calpurnia paused
in the doorway. "You be still as a mouse in that corner," she said,
"an' you can help me load up the trays when I come back." The
gentle hum of ladies' voices grew louder as she opened the door:
"Why, Alexandra, I never saw such charlotte... just lovely... I
never can get my crust like this, never can... who'd've thought of
little dewberry tarts... Calpurnia?... who'da thought it...
anybody tell you that the preacher's wife's... nooo, well she
is, and that other one not walkin' yet..." They became quiet,
and I knew they had all been served. Calpurnia returned and put
my mother's heavy silver pitcher on a tray. "This coffee pitcher's a
curiosity," she murmured, "they don't make 'em these days." "Can I
carry it in?" "If you be careful and don't drop it. Set it down at
the end of the table by Miss Alexandra. Down there by the
cups'n things. She's gonna pour." I tried pressing my behind
against the door as Calpurnia had done, but the door didn't
budge. Grinning, she held it open for me. "Careful now,
it's heavy. Don't look at it and you won't spill it." journey
was successful: Aunt Alexandra smiled My brilliantly. "Stay with
us, Jean Louise," she said. This was a part of her campaign to teach
me to be a lady. in It was customary for every circle hostess
to invite her for refreshments, be they Baptists or neighbors
Presbyterians, which accounted for the presence of Miss Rachel
(sober as a judge), Miss Maudie and Miss Stephanie Crawford. Rather
nervous, I took a seat beside Miss Maudie and wondered why ladies put
on their hats to go across the street. Ladies in bunches always
filled me with vague apprehension and a firm desire to be
elsewhere, but this feeling was what Aunt Alexandra called being
"spoiled." The ladies were cool in fragile pastel prints:
most of them were heavily powdered but unrouged; the only
lipstick in the room was Tangee Natural. Cutex Natural
sparkled on their fingernails, but some of the younger ladies wore
Rose. They smelled heavenly. I sat quietly, having conquered
my hands by tightly gripping the arms of the chair, and waited for
someone to speak to me. Miss Maudie's gold bridgework twinkled.
"You're mighty dressed up, Miss Jean Louise," she said, "Where
are your britches today?" "Under my dress." I hadn't meant to
be funny, but the ladies laughed. My cheeks grew hot as I
realized my mistake, but Miss Maudie looked gravely down at me.
She never laughed at me unless I meant to be funny. In the
sudden silence that followed, Miss Stephanie Crawford called
from across the room, "Whatcha going to be when you grow up,
Jean Louise? A lawyer?" "Nome, I hadn't thought about it..." I
answered, grateful that Miss Stephanie was kind enough to change the
subject. Hurriedly I began choosing my vocation. Nurse?
Aviator? "Well..." "Why shoot, I thought you wanted to be a
lawyer, you've already commenced going to court." The ladies
laughed again. "That Stephanie's a card," somebody said. Miss
Stephanie was encouraged to pursue the subject: "Don't you want to
grow up to be a lawyer?" Miss Maudie's hand touched mine and I
answered mildly enough, "Nome, just a lady." Miss Stephanie eyed me
suspiciously, decided that I meant no impertinence, and
contented herself with, "Well, you won't get very far until
you start wearing dresses more often." Miss Maudie's hand
closed tightly on mine, and I said nothing. Its warmth was
enough. Mrs. Grace Merriweather sat on my left, and I felt
it would be polite to talk to her. Mr. Merriweather, a
faithful Methodist under duress, apparently saw nothing personal in
singing, "Amazing Grace, how sweet the sound, that saved a wretch
like me..." It was the general opinion of Maycomb, however, that
Mrs. Merriweather had sobered him up and made a reasonably
useful citizen of him. For certainly Mrs. Merriweather was the
most devout lady in Maycomb. I searched for a topic of
interest to her. "What did you all study this afternoon?" I
asked. "Oh child, those poor Mrunas," she said, and was
off. Few other questions would be necessary. Mrs. Merriweather's
large brown eyes always filled with tears when she considered
the oppressed. "Living in that jungle with nobody but J. Grimes
Everett," she said. "Not a white person'll go near 'em but that
saintly J. Grimes Everett." Mrs. Merriweather played her voice
like an organ; every word she said received its full measure: "The
poverty... the darkness... the immorality- nobody but J. Grimes
Everett knows. You know, when the church gave me that trip to the camp
grounds J. Grimes Everett said to me-" "Was he there, ma'am? I
thought-" "Home on leave. J. Grimes Everett said to me, he said,
'Mrs. Merriweather, you have no conception, no con cep tion
of what we are fighting over there.' That's what he said to
me." "Yes ma'am." "I said to him, 'Mr. Everett,' I said,
'the ladies of the Maycomb Alabama Methodist Episcopal Church
South are behind you one hundred percent.' That's what I said to him.
And you know, right then and there I made a pledge in my heart. I said
to myself, when I go home I'm going to give a course on the Mrunas
and bring J. Grimes Everett's message to Maycomb and that's just
what I'm doing." "Yes ma'am." When Mrs. Merriweather shook her
head, her black curls jiggled. "Jean Louise," she said, "you
are a fortunate girl. You live in a Christian home with
Christian folks in a Christian town. Out there in J. Grimes
Everett's land there's nothing but sin and squalor." "Yes ma'am."
that, Gertrude?" Mrs. "Sin and squalor- what was Merriweather
turned on her chimes for the lady sitting beside her. "Oh that.
Well, I always say forgive and forget, forgive and forget. Thing
that church ought to do is help her lead a Christian life for
those children from here on out. Some of the men ought to
go out there and tell that preacher to encourage her." "Excuse
me, Mrs. Merriweather," I interrupted, "are you all talking
about Mayella Ewell?" "May-? No, child. That darky's wife. Tom's
wife, Tom-" "Robinson, ma'am." Mrs. Merriweather turned back to her
neighbor. "There's one thing I truly believe, Gertrude," she
continued, "but some people just don't see it my way. If we just let
them know we forgive 'em, that we've forgotten it, then this whole
thing'll blow over." "Ah- Mrs. Merriweather," I interrupted once
more, "what'll blow over?" Again, she turned to me. Mrs.
Merriweather was one of those childless adults who find it
necessary to assume a different tone of voice when speaking to
children. "Nothing, Jean Louise," she said, in stately largo, "the
cooks and field hands are just dissatisfied, but they're
settling down now- they grumbled all next day after that trial."
Mrs. Merriweather faced Mrs. Farrow: "Gertrude, I tell you
there's nothing more distracting than a sulky darky. Their
mouths go down to here. Just ruins your day to have one of 'em in
the kitchen. You know what I said to my Sophy, Gertrude? I
said, 'Sophy,' I said, 'you simply are not being a Christian today.
Jesus Christ never went around grumbling and complaining,' and
you know, it did her good. She took her eyes off that floor
and said, 'Nome, Miz Merriweather, Jesus never went around
grumblin'.' I tell you, Gertrude, you never ought to let an
opportunity go by to witness for the Lord." I was reminded of
the ancient little organ in the chapel at Finch's Landing.
When I was very small, and if I had been very good during
the day, Atticus would let me pump its bellows while he picked
out a tune with one finger. The last note would linger as long as
there was air to sustain it. Mrs. Merriweather had run out of
air, I judged, and was replenishing her supply while Mrs. Farrow
composed herself to speak. Mrs. Farrow was a splendidly built
woman with pale eyes and narrow feet. She had a fresh permanent
wave, and her hair was a mass of tight gray ringlets. She was the
second most devout lady in Maycomb. She had a curious habit
of prefacing everything she said with a soft sibilant sound. "S-s-s
Grace," she said, "it's just like I was telling Brother
Hutson the other day. 'S-s-s Brother Hutson,' I said, 'looks
like we're fighting a losing battle, a losing battle.' I said, 'S- s-s
it doesn't matter to 'em one bit. We can educate 'em till we're blue
in the face, we can try till we drop to make Christians out
of 'em, but there's no lady safe in her bed these nights.'
He said to me, 'Mrs. Farrow, I don't know what we're coming to
down here.' S-s-s I told him that was certainly a fact." Mrs.
Merriweather nodded wisely. Her voice soared over the clink of coffee
cups and the soft bovine sounds of the ladies munching their
dainties. "Gertrude," she said, "I tell you there are some
good but misguided people in this town. Good, but misguided.
Folks in this town who think they're doing right, I mean. Now
far be it from me to say who, but some of 'em in this town thought
they were doing the right thing a while back, but all they did
was stir 'em up. That's all they did. Might've looked like the
right thing to do at the time, I'm sure I don't know, I'm not
read in that field, but sulky... dissatisfied... I tell you
if my Sophy'd kept it up another day I'd have let her go. It's
never entered that wool of hers that the only reason I keep
her is because this depression's on and she needs her dollar
and a quarter every week she can get it." "His food doesn't stick
going down, does it?" Miss Maudie said it. Two tight lines had
appeared at the corners of her mouth. She had been sitting
silently beside me, her coffee cup balanced on one knee. I
had lost the thread of conversation long ago, when they quit
talking about Tom Robinson's wife, and had contented myself
with thinking of Finch's Landing and the river. Aunt Alexandra
had got it backwards: the business part of the meeting was blood-
curdling, the social hour was dreary. "Maudie, I'm sure I don't
know what you mean," said Mrs. Merriweather. "I'm sure you do,"
Miss Maudie said shortly. She said no more. When Miss Maudie was
angry her brevity was icy. Something had made her deeply angry,
and her gray eyes were as cold as her voice. Mrs.
Merriweather reddened, glanced at me, and looked away. I could not
see Mrs. Farrow. Aunt Alexandra got up from the table and
swiftly passed more refreshments, neatly engaging Mrs. Merriweather
and Mrs. Gates in brisk conversation. When she had them well
on the road with Mrs. Perkins, Aunt Alexandra stepped back.
She gave Miss Maudie a look of pure gratitude, and I wondered at the
world of women. Miss Maudie and Aunt Alexandra had never been
especially close, and here was Aunty silently thanking her for
something. For what, I knew not. I was content to learn that
Aunt Alexandra could be pierced sufficiently to feel gratitude
for help given. There was no doubt about it, I must soon enter this
world, where on its surface fragrant ladies rocked slowly,
fanned gently, and drank cool water. But I was more at home in
my father's world. People like Mr. Heck Tate did not trap
you with innocent questions to make fun of you; even Jem was
not highly critical unless you said something stupid. Ladies
seemed to live in faint horror of men, seemed unwilling to approve
wholeheartedly of them. But I liked them. There was something
about them, no matter how much they cussed and drank and
gambled and chewed; no matter how undelectable they were,
there was something about them that I instinctively liked...
they weren't- Perkins, born hypocrites," Mrs. "Hypocrites, Mrs.
Merriweather was saying. "At least we don't have that sin on
our shoulders down here. People up there set 'em free, but
you don't see 'em settin' at the table with 'em. At least we don't
have the deceit to say to 'em yes you're as good as we are
but stay away from us. Down here we just say you live your
way and we'll live ours. I think that woman, that Mrs.
Roosevelt's lost her mind- just plain lost her mind coming down to
Birmingham and tryin' to sit with 'em. If I was the Mayor of
Birmingham I'd-" Well, neither of us was the Mayor of
Birmingham, but I wished I was the Governor of Alabama for
one day: I'd let Tom Robinson go so quick the Missionary
Society wouldn't have time to catch its breath. Calpurnia was
telling Miss Rachel's cook the other day how bad Tom was taking
things and she didn't stop talking when I came into the
kitchen. She said there wasn't a thing Atticus could do to
make being shut up easier for him, that the last thing he said to
Atticus before they took him down to the prison camp was, "Good-bye,
Mr. Finch, there ain't nothin' you can do now, so there ain't no use
tryin'." Calpurnia said Atticus told her that the day they took Tom to
prison he just gave up hope. She said Atticus tried to explain things
to him, and that he must do his best not to lose hope because
Atticus was doing his best to get him free. Miss Rachel's
cook asked Calpurnia why didn't Atticus just say yes, you'll go
free, and leave it at that- seemed like that'd be a big comfort to
Tom. Calpurnia said, "Because you ain't familiar with the law.
First thing you learn when you're in a lawin' family is that
there ain't any definite answers to anything. Mr. Finch
couldn't say somethin's so when he doesn't know for sure it's so."
The front door slammed and I heard Atticus's footsteps in the
hall. Automatically I wondered what time it was. Not nearly
time for him to be home, and on Missionary Society days he usually
stayed downtown until black dark. He stopped in the doorway. His hat
was in his hand, and his face was white. "Excuse me, ladies," he
said. "Go right ahead with your meeting, don't let me disturb
you. Alexandra, could you come to the kitchen a minute? I
want to borrow Calpurnia for a while." He didn't go through
the diningroom, but went down the back hallway and entered
the kitchen from the rear door. Aunt Alexandra and I met him. The
diningroom door opened again and Miss Maudie joined us.
Calpurnia had half risen from her chair. "Cal," Atticus said, "I
want you to go with me out to Helen Robinson's house-" "What's the
matter?" Aunt Alexandra asked, alarmed by the look on my father's
face. "Tom's dead." Aunt Alexandra put her hands to her mouth.
"They shot him," said Atticus. "He was running. It was during
their exercise period. They said he just broke into a blind raving
charge at the fence and started climbing over. Right in front
of them-" "Didn't they try to stop him? Didn't they give him
any warning?" Aunt Alexandra's voice shook. "Oh yes, the guards
called to him to stop. They fired a few shots in the air, then to
kill. They got him just as he went over the fence. They
said if he'd had two good arms he'd have made it, he was
moving that fast. Seventeen bullet holes in him. They didn't have
to shoot him that much. Cal, I want you to come out with me and help
me tell Helen." "Yes sir," she murmured, fumbling at her
apron. Miss Maudie went to Calpurnia and untied it. "This is the
last straw, Atticus," Aunt Alexandra said. "Depends on how you
look at it," he said. "What was one Negro, more or less, among
two hundred of 'em? He wasn't Tom to them, he was an escaping
prisoner." Atticus leaned against the refrigerator, pushed up
his glasses, and rubbed his eyes. "We had such a good
chance," he said. "I told him what I thought, but I couldn't in truth
say that we had more than a good chance. I guess Tom was tired of
white men's chances and preferred to take his own. Ready, Cal?"
"Yessir, Mr. Finch." "Then let's go." Aunt Alexandra sat down in
Calpurnia's chair and put her hands to her face. She sat
quite still; she was so quiet I wondered if she would faint. I
heard Miss Maudie breathing as if she had just climbed the steps, and
in the diningroom the ladies chattered happily. I thought Aunt
Alexandra was crying, but when she took her hands away from her face,
she was not. She looked weary. She spoke, and her voice was flat. "I
can't say I approve of everything he does, Maudie, but he's
my brother, and I just want to know when this will ever end." Her
voice rose: "It tears him to pieces. He doesn't show it
much, but it tears him to pieces. I've seen him when- what
else do they want from him, Maudie, what else?" "What does who
want, Alexandra?" Miss Maudie asked. "I mean this town. They're
perfectly willing to let him do what they're too afraid to do
themselves- it might lose 'em a nickel. They're perfectly willing to
let him wreck his health doing what they're afraid to do, they're-"
"Be quiet, they'll hear you," said Miss Maudie. "Have you
ever thought of it this way, Alexandra? Whether Maycomb knows
it or not, we're paying the highest tribute we can pay a man. We trust
him to do right. It's that simple." "Who?" Aunt Alexandra never
knew she was echoing her twelve-year-old nephew. "The handful of
people in this town who say that fair play is not marked White
Only; the handful of people who say a fair trial is for
everybody, not just us; the handful of people with enough humility
to think, when they look at a Negro, there but for the
Lord's kindness am l." Miss Maudie's old crispness was
returning: "The handful of people in this town with background, that's
who they are." Had I been attentive, I would have had another
scrap to add to Jem's definition of background, but I found
myself shaking and couldn't stop. I had seen Enfield Prison
Farm, and Atticus had pointed out the exercise yard to me. It was the
size of a football field. "Stop that shaking," commanded Miss
Maudie, and I stopped. "Get up, Alexandra, we've left 'em long
enough." Aunt Alexandra rose and smoothed the various
whalebone ridges along her hips. She took her handkerchief
from her belt and wiped her nose. She patted her hair and said, "Do I
show it?" "Not a sign," said Miss Maudie. "Are you together
again, Jean Louise?" "Yes ma'am." "Then let's join the ladies," she
said grimly. Their voices swelled when Miss Maudie opened the
door to the diningroom. Aunt Alexandra was ahead of me, and
I saw her head go up as she went through the door. "Oh, Mrs.
Perkins," she said, "you need some more coffee. Let me get it."
"Calpurnia's on an errand for a few minutes, Grace," said
Miss Maudie. "Let me pass you some more of those dewberry
tarts. 'dyou hear what that cousin of mine did the other day, the one
who likes to go fishing?..." And so they went, down the row of
laughing women, around the diningroom, refilling coffee cups, dishing
out goodies as though their only regret was the temporary
domestic disaster of losing Calpurnia. The gentle hum began
again. "Yes sir, Mrs. Perkins, that J. Grimes Everett is a
martyred saint, he... needed to get married so they ran... to
the beauty parlor every Saturday afternoon... soon as the sun
goes down. He goes to bed with the... chickens, a crate full of
sick chickens, Fred says that's what started it all. Fred says...."
Aunt Alexandra looked across the room at me and smiled. She
looked at a tray of cookies on the table and nodded at them. I
carefully picked up the tray and watched myself walk to Mrs.
Merriweather. With my best company manners, I asked her if she would
have some. After all, if Aunty could be a lady at a time
like this, so could I. 25 "Don't do that, Scout. Set him out on
the back steps." "Jem, are you crazy?...." "I said set him out on
the back steps." Sighing, I scooped up the small creature, placed him
on the bottom step and went back to my cot. September had
come, but not a trace of cool weather with it, and we were still
sleeping on the back screen porch. Lightning bugs were still about,
the night crawlers and flying insects that beat against the
screen the summer long had not gone wherever they go when autumn
comes. A roly-poly had found his way inside the house; I reasoned
that the tiny varmint had crawled up the steps and under the
door. I was putting my book on the floor beside my cot when I saw
him. The creatures are no more than an inch long, and when you
touch them they roll themselves into a tight gray ball. I lay on
my stomach, reached down and poked him. He rolled up. Then,
feeling safe, I suppose, he slowly unrolled. He traveled a few inches
on his hundred legs and I touched him again. He rolled up.
Feeling sleepy, I decided to end things. My hand was going down
on him when Jem spoke. Jem was scowling. It was probably a
part of the stage he was going through, and I wished he would
hurry up and get through it.
He was certainly never cruel to
animals, but I had never known his charity to embrace the insect
world. "Why couldn't I mash him?" I asked. "Because they don't
bother you," Jem answered in the darkness. He had turned out his
reading light. "Reckon you're at the stage now where you
don't kill flies and mosquitoes now, I reckon," I said. "Lemme know
when you change your mind. Tell you one thing, though, I
ain't gonna sit around and not scratch a redbug." "Aw dry up," he
answered drowsily. Jem was the one who was getting more like
a girl every day, not I. Comfortable, I lay on my back and
waited for sleep, and while waiting I thought of Dill. He had left us
the first of the month with firm assurances that he would return the
minute school was out- he guessed his folks had got the general idea
that he liked to spend his summers in Maycomb. Miss Rachel
took us with them in the taxi to Maycomb Junction, and Dill
waved to us from the train window until he was out of sight. He
was not out of mind: I missed him. The last two days of his time with
us, Jem had taught him to swim- Taught him to swim. I was wide awake,
remembering what Dill had told me. Barker's Eddy is at the end
of a dirt road off the Meridian highway about a mile from
town. It is easy to catch a ride down the highway on a
cotton wagon or from a passing motorist, and the short walk
to the creek is easy, but the prospect of walking all the
way back home at dusk, when the traffic is light, is
tiresome, and swimmers are careful not to stay too late.
According to Dill, he and Jem had just come to the highway when they
saw Atticus driving toward them. He looked like he had not
seen them, so they both waved. Atticus finally slowed down;
when they caught up with him he said, "You'd better catch a ride back.
I won't be going home for a while." Calpurnia was in the back seat.
Jem protested, then pleaded, and Atticus said, "All right, you
can come with us if you stay in the car." On the way to Tom
Robinson's, Atticus told them what had happened. They turned off
the highway, rode slowly by the dump and past the Ewell
residence, down the narrow lane to the Negro cabins. Dill
said a crowd of black children were playing marbles in Tom's
front yard. Atticus parked the car and got out. Calpurnia followed
him through the front gate. Dill heard him ask one of the
children, "Where's your mother, Sam?" and heard Sam say, "She
down at Sis Stevens's, Mr. Finch. Want me run fetch her?" Dill
said Atticus looked uncertain, then he said yes, and Sam
scampered off. "Go on with your game, boys," Atticus said to the
children. A little girl came to the cabin door and stood
looking at Atticus. Dill said her hair was a wad of tiny
stiff pigtails, each ending in a bright bow. She grinned from
ear to ear and walked toward our father, but she was too
small to navigate the steps. Dill said Atticus went to her, took off
his hat, and offered her his finger. She grabbed it and he eased her
down the steps. Then he gave her to Calpurnia. Sam was trotting
behind his mother when they came up. Dill said Helen said,
"'evenin', Mr. Finch, won't you have a seat?" But she didn't say
any more. Neither did Atticus. "Scout," said Dill, "she just
fell down in the dirt. Just fell down in the dirt, like a giant
with a big foot just came along and stepped on her. Just ump-" Dill's
fat foot hit the ground. "Like you'd step on an ant." Dill said
Calpurnia and Atticus lifted Helen to her feet and half
carried, half walked her to the cabin. They stayed inside a long
time, and Atticus came out alone. When they drove back by the
dump, some of the Ewells hollered at them, but Dill didn't catch what
they said. Maycomb was interested by the news of Tom's death
for perhaps two days; two days was enough for the information to
spread through the county. "Did you hear about?.... No? Well, they
say he was runnin' fit to beat lightnin'..." To Maycomb,
Tom's death was typical. Typical of a nigger to cut and run.
Typical of a nigger's mentality to have no plan, no thought for the
future, just run blind first chance he saw. Funny thing, Atticus
Finch might've got him off scot free, but wait-? Hell no. You
know how they are. Easy come, easy go. Just shows you, that Robinson
boy was legally married, they say he kept himself clean, went to
church and all that, but when it comes down to the line the
veneer's mighty thin. Nigger always comes out in 'em. A few more
details, enabling the listener to repeat his version in turn,
then nothing to talk about until The Maycomb Tribune appeared
the following Thursday. There was a brief obituary in the Colored
News, but there was also an editorial. Mr. B. B. Underwood was at his
most bitter, and he couldn't have cared less who canceled advertising
and subscriptions. (But Maycomb didn't play that way: Mr.
Underwood could holler till he sweated and write whatever he wanted
to, he'd still get his advertising and subscriptions. If he
wanted to make a fool of himself in his paper that was
his business.) Mr. Underwood didn't talk about miscarriages of
justice, he was writing so children could understand. Mr.
Underwood simply figured it was a sin to kill cripples, be they
standing, sitting, or escaping. He likened Tom's death to the
senseless slaughter of songbirds by hunters and children, and
Maycomb thought he was trying to write an editorial poetical
enough to be reprinted in The Montgomery Advertiser. How could
this be so, I wondered, as I read Mr. Underwood's editorial.
Senseless killing- Tom had been given due process of law to
the day of his death; he had been tried openly and convicted
by twelve good men and true; my father had fought for him
all the way. Then Mr. Underwood's meaning became clear: Atticus
had used every tool available to free men to save Tom Robinson, but in
the secret courts of men's hearts Atticus had no case. Tom was a dead
man the minute Mayella Ewell opened her mouth and screamed.
The name Ewell gave me a queasy feeling. Maycomb had lost no
time in getting Mr. Ewell's views on Tom's demise and passing
them along through that English Channel of gossip, Miss
Stephanie Crawford. Miss Stephanie told Aunt Alexandra in Jem's
presence ("Oh foot, he's old enough to listen.") that Mr. Ewell
said it made one down and about two more to go. Jem told me not
to be afraid, Mr. Ewell was more hot gas than anything. Jem
also told me that if I breathed a word to Atticus, if in any way
I let Atticus know I knew, Jem would personally never speak to me
again. 26 School started, and so did our daily trips past
the Radley Place. Jem was in the seventh grade and went to
high school, beyond the grammar-school building; I was now in
the third grade, and our routines were so different I only
walked to school with Jem in the mornings and saw him at mealtimes.
He went out for football, but was too slender and too young
yet to do anything but carry the team water buckets. This he did
with enthusiasm; most afternoons he was seldom home before dark.
The Radley Place had ceased to terrify me, but it was no
less gloomy, no less chilly under its great oaks, and no less
uninviting. Mr. Nathan Radley could still be seen on a clear
day, walking to and from town; we knew Boo was there, for the same
old reason- nobody'd seen him carried out yet. I sometimes
felt a twinge of remorse, when passing by the old place, at
ever having taken part in what must have been sheer torment to
Arthur Radley- what reasonable recluse wants children peeping
through his shutters, delivering greetings on the end of a
fishing-pole, wandering in his collards at night? And yet I
remembered. Two Indian-head pennies, chewing gum, soap dolls, a
rusty medal, a broken watch and chain. Jem must have put them
away somewhere. I stopped and looked at the tree one
afternoon: the trunk was swelling around its cement patch. The
patch itself was turning yellow. We had almost seen him a couple
of times, a good enough score for anybody. But I still looked
for him each time I went by. Maybe someday we would see
him. I imagined how it would be: when it happened, he'd just
be sitting in the swing when I came along. "Hidy do, Mr.
Arthur," I would say, as if I had said it every afternoon
of my life. "Evening, Jean Louise," he would say, as if he had
said it every afternoon of my life, "right pretty spell we're
having, isn't it?" "Yes sir, right pretty," I would say, and go
on. It was only a fantasy. We would never see him. He probably did
go out when the moon was down and gaze upon Miss Stephanie
Crawford. I'd have picked somebody else to look at, but that was his
business. He would never gaze at us. "You aren't starting that
again, are you?" said Atticus one night, when I expressed a
stray desire just to have one good look at Boo Radley before
I died. "If you are, I'll tell you right now: stop it. I'm too
old to go chasing you off the Radley property. Besides, it's
dangerous. You might get shot. You know Mr. Nathan shoots at every
shadow he sees, even shadows that leave size-four bare footprints. You
were lucky not to be killed." I hushed then and there. At the
same time I marveled at Atticus. This was the first he had let us
know he knew a lot more about something than we thought he knew. And
it had happened years ago. No, only last summer- no, summer
before last, when... time was playing tricks on me. I must
remember to ask Jem. So many things had happened to us, Boo
Radley was the least of our fears. Atticus said he didn't
see how anything else could happen, that things had a way of
settling down, and after enough time passed people would forget that
Tom Robinson's existence was ever brought to their attention.
Perhaps Atticus was right, but the events of the summer hung
over us like smoke in a closed room. The adults in Maycomb
never discussed the case with Jem and me; it seemed that they
discussed it with their children, and their attitude must have been
that neither of us could help having Atticus for a parent, so
their children must be nice to us in spite of him. The children
would never have thought that up for themselves: had our
classmates been left to their own devices, Jem and I would have had
several swift, satisfying fist-fights apiece and ended the matter for
good. As it was, we were compelled to hold our heads high
and be, respectively, a gentleman and a lady. In a way, it
was like the era of Mrs. Henry Lafayette Dubose, without all her
yelling. There was one odd thing, though, that I never
understood: in spite of Atticus's shortcomings as a parent,
people were content to re-elect him to the state legislature that
year, as usual, without opposition. I came to the conclusion
that people were just peculiar, I withdrew from them, and never
thought about them until I was forced to. I was forced to one
day in school. Once a week, we had a Current Events period.
Each child was supposed to clip an item from a newspaper,
absorb its contents, and reveal them to the class. This
practice allegedly overcame a variety of evils: standing in
front of his fellows encouraged good posture and gave a child
poise; delivering a short talk made him word-conscious; learning
his current event strengthened his memory; being singled out
made him more than ever anxious to return to the Group. The idea
was profound, but as usual, in Maycomb it didn't work very
well. In the first place, few rural children had access to
newspapers, so the burden of Current Events was borne by the town
children, convincing the bus children more deeply that the
town children got all the attention anyway. The rural children
who could, usually brought clippings from what they called The
Grit Paper, a publication spurious in the eyes of Miss Gates,
our teacher. Why she frowned when a child recited from The
Grit Paper I never knew, but in some way it was associated with
liking fiddling, eating syrupy biscuits for lunch, being a holy-
roller, singing Sweetly Sings the Donkey and pronouncing it dunkey,
all of which the state paid teachers to discourage. Even so, not
many of the children knew what a Current Event was. Little
Chuck Little, a hundred years old in his knowledge of cows and
their habits, was halfway through an Uncle Natchell story when
Miss Gates stopped him: "Charles, that is an advertisement." is
not a current event. That Cecil Jacobs knew what one was,
though. When his turn came, he went to the front of the
room and began, "Old Hitler-" "Adolf Hitler, Cecil," said Miss
Gates. "One never begins with Old anybody." "Yes ma'am," he said.
"Old Adolf Hitler has been prosecutin' the-" "Persecuting Cecil...."
"Nome, Miss Gates, it says here- well anyway, old Adolf
Hitler has been after the Jews and he's puttin' 'em in
prisons and he's taking away all their property and he won't let any
of 'em out of the country and he's washin' all the feeble-
minded and-" "Washing the feeble-minded?" "Yes ma'am, Miss Gates,
I reckon they don't have sense enough to wash themselves, I
don't reckon an idiot could keep hisself clean. Well anyway,
Hitler's started a program to round up all the half-Jews too
and he wants to register 'em in case they might wanta cause him
any trouble and I think this is a bad thing and that's my current
event." "Very good, Cecil," said Miss Gates. Puffing, Cecil
returned to his seat. A hand went up in the back of the
room. "How can he do that?" "Who do what?" asked Miss Gates
patiently. "I mean how can Hitler just put a lot of folks
in a pen like that, looks like the govamint'd stop him," said the
owner of the hand. "Hitler is the government," said Miss Gates,
and seizing an opportunity to make education dynamic, she went
to the blackboard. She printed DEMOCRACY in large letters.
"Democracy," she said. "Does anybody have a definition?" "Us,"
somebody said. I raised my hand, remembering an old campaign
slogan Atticus had once told me about. "What do you think it means,
Jean Louise?" "'Equal rights for all, special privileges for none,'"
I quoted. "Very good, Jean Louise, very good," Miss Gates smiled. In
front of DEMOCRACY, she printed WE ARE A. "Now class, say it
all together, 'We are a democracy.'" We said it. Then Miss Gates
said, "That's the difference between America and Germany. We
are a democracy and Germany is a dictatorship. Dictator-
ship," she said. "Over here we don't believe in persecuting
anybody. Persecution comes from people who are prejudiced.
Prejudice," she enunciated carefully. "There are no better
people in the world than the Jews, and why Hitler doesn't
think so is a mystery to me." An inquiring soul in the middle of
the room said, "Why don't they like the Jews, you reckon, Miss Gates?"
"I don't know, Henry. They contribute to every society they live in,
and most of all, they are a deeply religious people. Hitler's
trying to do away with religion, so maybe he doesn't like them for
that reason." Cecil spoke up. "Well I don't know for
certain," he said, "they're supposed to change money or
somethin', but that ain't no cause to persecute 'em. They're white,
ain't they?" Miss Gates said, "When you get to high school, Cecil,
you'll learn that the Jews have been persecuted since the
beginning of history, even driven out of their own country.
It's one of the most terrible stories in history. Time for
arithmetic, children." As I had never liked arithmetic, I
spent the period looking out the window. The only time I ever saw
Atticus scowl was when Elmer Davis would give us the latest on Hitler.
Atticus would snap off the radio and say, "Hmp!" I asked him once why
he was impatient with Hitler and Atticus said, "Because he's a
maniac." This would not do, I mused, as the class proceeded with its
sums. One maniac and millions of German folks. Looked to me like
they'd shut Hitler in a pen instead of letting him shut them
up. There was something else wrong- I would ask my father about
it. I did, and he said he could not possibly answer my question
because he didn't know the answer. "But it's okay to hate Hitler?"
"It is not," he said. "It's not okay to hate anybody." "Atticus," I
said, "there's somethin' I don't understand. Miss Gates said it was
awful, Hitler doin' like he does, she got real red in the face
about it-" "I should think she would." "But-" "Yes?" "Nothing,
sir." I went away, not sure that I could explain to Atticus what was
on my mind, not sure that I could clarify what was only a
feeling. Perhaps Jem could provide the answer. Jem understood
school things better than Atticus. Jem was worn out from a day's
water-carrying. There were at least twelve banana peels on the
floor by his bed, surrounding an empty milk bottle. "Whatcha
stuffin' for?" I asked. "Coach says if I can gain twenty-five
pounds by year after next I can play," he said. "This is the
quickest way." "If you don't throw it all up. Jem," I said, "I wanta
ask you somethin'." "Shoot." He put down his book and stretched his
legs. "Miss Gates is a nice lady, ain't she?" "Why sure," said Jem.
"I liked her when I was in her room." "She hates Hitler a lot..."
"What's wrong with that? " "Well, she went on today about how bad it
was him treatin' the Jews like that. Jem, it's not right to persecute
anybody, is it? I mean have mean thoughts about anybody,
even, is it?" "Gracious no, Scout. What's eatin' you?" "Well,
coming out of the courthouse that night Miss Gates was- she
was goin' down the steps in front of us, you musta not seen her- she
was talking with Miss Stephanie Crawford. I heard her say it's
time somebody taught 'em a lesson, they were gettin' way above
themselves, an' the next thing they think they can do is marry us.
Jem, how can you hate Hitler so bad an' then turn around and
be ugly about folks right at home-" Jem was suddenly furious.
He leaped off the bed, grabbed me by the collar and shook me. "I
never wanta hear about that courthouse again, ever, ever, you
hear me? You hear me? Don't you ever say one word to me about it
again, you hear? Now go on!" I was too surprised to cry. I crept from
Jem's room and shut the door softly, lest undue noise set him off
again. Suddenly tired, I wanted Atticus. He was in the
livingroom, and I went to him and tried to get in his lap. Atticus
smiled. "You're getting so big now, I'll just have to hold a
part of you." He held me close. "Scout," he said softly,
"don't let Jem get you down. He's having a rough time these
days. I heard you back there." Atticus said that Jem was trying
hard to forget something, but what he was really doing was
storing it away for a while, until enough time passed. Then
he would be able to think about it and sort things out.
When he was able to think about it, Jem would be himself again.
27 Things did settle down, after a fashion, as Atticus said they
would. By the middle of October, only two small things out of
the ordinary happened to two Maycomb citizens. No, there were
three things, and they did not directly concern us- the
Finches- but in a way they did. found himself as The first
thing was that Mr. Bob Ewell acquired and lost a job in a
matter of days and probably made himself unique in the annals
of the nineteen-thirties: he was the only man I ever heard of who
was fired from the WPA for laziness. I suppose his brief burst
of fame brought on a briefer burst of industry, but his job lasted
only as long as his notoriety: Mr. forgotten as Tom Robinson. Ewell
Thereafter, he resumed his regular weekly appearances at the
welfare office for his check, and received it with no grace
amid obscure mutterings that the bastards who thought they ran
this town wouldn't permit an honest man to make a living. Ruth
Jones, the welfare lady, said Mr. Ewell openly accused Atticus of
getting his job. She was upset enough to walk down to
Atticus's office and tell him about it. Atticus told Miss
Ruth not to fret, that if Bob Ewell wanted to discuss
Atticus's "getting" his job, he knew the way to the office. The
second thing happened to Judge Taylor. Judge Taylor was not a
Sunday-night churchgoer: Mrs. Taylor was. Judge Taylor savored his
Sunday night hour alone in his big house, and churchtime found him
holed up in his study reading the writings of Bob Taylor (no kin,
but the judge would have been proud to claim it). One Sunday
night, lost in fruity metaphors and florid diction, Judge
Taylor's attention was wrenched from the page by an irritating
scratching noise. "Hush," he said to Ann Taylor, his fat
nondescript dog. Then he realized he was speaking to an empty
room; the scratching noise was coming from the rear of the
house. Judge Taylor clumped to the back porch to let Ann out and found
the screen door swinging open. A shadow on the corner of the
house caught his eye, and that was all he saw of his visitor. Mrs.
Taylor came home from church to find her husband in his chair, lost in
the writings of Bob Taylor, with a shotgun across his lap. The third
thing happened to Helen Robinson, Tom's widow. If Mr. Ewell
was as forgotten as Tom Robinson, Tom Robinson was as forgotten
as Boo Radley. But Tom was not forgotten by his employer, Mr.
Link Deas. Mr. Link Deas made a job for Helen. He didn't really
need her, but he said he felt right bad about the way things
turned out. I never knew who took care of her children while
Helen was away. Calpurnia said it was hard on Helen, because
she had to walk nearly a mile out of her way to avoid the Ewells,
who, according to Helen, "chunked at her" the first time she tried to
use the public road. Mr. Link Deas eventually received the impression
that Helen was coming to work each morning from the wrong
direction, and dragged the reason out of her. "Just let it
be, Mr. Link, please suh," Helen begged. "The hell I will,"
said Mr. Link. He told her to come by his store that
afternoon before she left. She did, and Mr. Link closed his
store, put his hat firmly on his head, and walked Helen home. He
walked her the short way, by the Ewells'. On his way back, Mr.
Link stopped at the crazy gate. "Ewell?" he called. "I say Ewell!"
The windows, normally packed with children, were empty. "I know every
last one of you's in there a-layin' on the floor! Now hear me, Bob
Ewell: if I hear one more peep outa my girl Helen about not bein'
able to walk this road I'll have you in jail before sundown!" Mr. Link
spat in the dust and walked home. Helen went to work next morning and
used the public road. Nobody chunked at her, but when she was
a few yards beyond the Ewell house, she looked around and
saw Mr. Ewell walking behind her. She turned and walked on,
and Mr. Ewell kept the same distance behind her until she
reached Mr. Link Deas's house. All the way to the house,
Helen said, she heard a soft voice behind her, crooning foul words.
Thoroughly frightened, she telephoned Mr. Link at his store,
which was not too far from his house. As Mr. Link came out of his
store he saw Mr. Ewell leaning on the fence. Mr. Ewell said, "Don't
you look at me, Link Deas, like I was dirt. I ain't jumped your-"
"First thing you can do, Ewell, is get your stinkin' carcass off my
property. You're leanin' on it an' I can't afford fresh paint
for it. Second thing you can do is stay away from my cook or I'll have
you up for assault-" "I ain't touched her, Link Deas, and ain't about
to go with no nigger!" "You don't have to touch her, all you have to
do is make her afraid, an' if assault ain't enough to keep you
locked up awhile, I'll get you in on the Ladies' Law, so
get outa my sight! If you don't think I mean it, just
bother that girl again!" Mr. Ewell evidently thought he meant it,
for Helen reported no further trouble. "I don't like it, Atticus,
I don't like it at all," was Aunt Alexandra's assessment of
these events. "That man seems to have a permanent running
grudge against everybody connected with that case. I know
how that kind are about paying off grudges, but I don't
understand why he should harbor one- he had his way in court,
didn't he?" "I think I understand," said Atticus. "It might be
because he knows in his heart that very few people in Maycomb
really believed his and Mayella's yarns. He thought he'd be a hero,
but all he got for his pain was... was, okay, we'll convict this Negro
but get back to your dump. He's had his fling with about
everybody now, so he ought to be satisfied. He'll settle down
when the weather changes." "But why should he try to burgle
John Taylor's house? He obviously didn't know John was home
or he wouldn't've tried. Only lights John shows on Sunday
nights are on the front porch and back in his den..." "You don't
know if Bob Ewell cut that screen, you don't know who did
it," said Atticus. "But I can guess. I proved him a liar
but John made him look like a fool. All the time Ewell was
on the stand I couldn't dare look at John and keep a
straight face. John looked at him as if he were a three-
legged chicken or a square egg. Don't tell me judges don't try to
prejudice juries," Atticus chuckled. By the end of October, our
lives had become the familiar routine of school, play, study. Jem
seemed to have put out of his mind whatever it was he wanted
to forget, and our father's let us classmates mercifully
eccentricities. Cecil Jacobs asked me one time if Atticus was a
Radical. When I asked Atticus, Atticus was so amused I was
rather annoyed, but he said he wasn't laughing at me. He said, "You
tell Cecil I'm about as radical as Cotton Tom Heflin." forget
our Aunt Alexandra was thriving. Miss Maudie must have
silenced the whole missionary society at one blow, for Aunty again
ruled that roost. Her refreshments grew even more delicious. I
learned more about the poor Mrunas' social life from listening to
Mrs. Merriweather: they had so little sense of family that the
whole tribe was one big family. A child had as many fathers as
there were men in the community, as many mothers as there were
women. J. Grimes Everett was doing his utmost to change this
state of affairs, and desperately needed our prayers. Maycomb was
itself again. Precisely the same as last year and the year
before that, with only two minor changes. Firstly, people had
removed from their store windows and automobiles the stickers
that said NRA- WE DO OUR PART. I asked Atticus why, and he said it was
because the National Recovery Act was dead. I asked who killed
it: he said nine old men. The second change in Maycomb since last
year was not one of national significance. Until then, Halloween
in Maycomb was a completely unorganized affair. Each child did what
he wanted to do, with assistance from other children if there
was anything to be moved, such as placing a light buggy on top of the
livery stable. But parents thought things went too far last year,
when the peace of Miss Tutti and Miss Frutti was shattered.
Misses Tutti and Frutti Barber were maiden ladies, sisters,
who lived together in the only Maycomb residence boasting a cellar.
The Barber ladies were rumored to be Republicans, having migrated
from Clanton, Alabama, in 1911. Their ways were strange to
us, and why they wanted a cellar nobody knew, but they wanted
one and they dug one, and they spent the rest of their lives
chasing generations of children out of it. Misses Tutti and
Frutti (their names were Sarah and Frances), aside from their
Yankee ways, were both deaf. Miss Tutti denied it and lived in a
world of silence, but Miss Frutti, not about to miss anything,
employed an ear trumpet so enormous that Jem declared it was a
loudspeaker from one of those dog Victrolas. With these facts in
mind and Halloween at hand, some wicked children had waited
until the Misses Barber were thoroughly asleep, slipped into their
livingroom (nobody but the Radleys locked up at night),
stealthily made away with every stick of furniture therein,
and hid it in the cellar. I deny having taken part in such a
thing. "I heard 'em!" was the cry that awoke the Misses
Barber's neighbors at dawn next morning. "Heard 'em drive a
truck up to the door! Stomped around like horses. They're in New
Orleans by now!" Miss Tutti was sure those traveling fur
sellers who came through town two days ago had purloined
their furniture. "Da-rk they were," she said. "Syrians." Mr. Heck
Tate was summoned. He surveyed the area and said he thought
it was a local job. Miss Frutti said she'd know a Maycomb
voice anywhere, and there were no Maycomb voices in that parlor
last night- rolling their r's all over her premises, they were.
Nothing less than the bloodhounds must be used to locate
their furniture, Miss Tutti insisted, so Mr. Tate was obliged
to go ten miles out the road, round up the county hounds, and put
them on the trail. Mr. Tate started them off at the Misses Barber's
front steps, but all they did was run around to the back of
the house and howl at the cellar door. When Mr. Tate set
them in motion three times, he finally guessed the truth.
By noontime that day, there was not a barefooted child to be
seen in Maycomb and nobody took off his shoes until the
hounds were returned. So the Maycomb ladies said things would
be different this year. The high-school auditorium would be
open, there would be a pageant for the grown-ups; apple-
bobbing, taffy-pulling, pinning the tail on the donkey for the
children. There would also be a prize of twenty-five cents for the
best Halloween costume, created by the wearer. Jem and I both
groaned. Not that we'd ever done anything, it was the principle of the
thing. Jem considered himself too old for Halloween anyway; he
said he wouldn't be caught anywhere near the high school at
something like that. Oh well, I thought, Atticus would take me. I
soon learned, however, that my services would be required on
stage that evening. Mrs. Grace Merriweather had composed an
original pageant entitled Maycomb County: Ad Astra Per Aspera,
and I was to be a ham. She thought it would be adorable if
some of the children were costumed to represent the county's
agricultural products: Cecil Jacobs would be dressed up to look like
a cow; Agnes Boone would make a lovely butterbean, another child would
be a peanut, and on down the line until Mrs. Merriweather's
imagination and the supply of children were exhausted. Our only
duties, as far as I could gather from our two rehearsals,
were to enter left as Mrs. Merriweather (not only the author,
but the narrator) identified us. When she called out, "Pork," that
was my cue. Then the assembled company would sing, "Maycomb
County, Maycomb County, we will aye be true to thee," as
from stage the grand finale, and Mrs. Merriweather would
mount the stage with the state flag. My costume was not much of
a problem. Mrs. Crenshaw, the local seamstress, had as much
imagination as Mrs. Merriweather. Mrs. Crenshaw took some
chicken wire and bent it into the shape of a cured ham. This she
covered with brown cloth, and painted it to resemble the original. I
could duck under and someone would pull the contraption down
over my head. It came almost to my knees. Mrs. Crenshaw thoughtfully
left two peepholes for me. She did a fine job. Jem said I
looked exactly like a ham with legs. There were several discomforts,
though: it was hot, it was a close fit; if my nose itched I
couldn't scratch, and once inside I could not get out of it
alone. When Halloween came, I assumed that the whole family
would be present to watch me perform, but I was disappointed.
Atticus said as tactfully as he could that he just didn't
think he could stand a pageant tonight, he was all in. He had
been in Montgomery for a week and had come home late that afternoon.
He thought Jem might escort me if I asked him. Aunt Alexandra said
she just had to get to bed early, she'd been decorating the stage all
afternoon and was worn out- she stopped short in the middle of her
sentence. She closed her mouth, then opened it to say something, but
no words came. "'s matter, Aunty?" I asked. "Oh nothing, nothing,"
she said, "somebody just walked over my grave." She put away
from her whatever it was that gave her a pinprick of
apprehension, and suggested that I give the family a preview
in the livingroom. So Jem squeezed me into my costume,
stood at the livingroom door, called out "Po-ork," exactly as
Mrs. Merriweather would have done, and I marched in. Atticus
and Aunt Alexandra were delighted. I repeated my part for Calpurnia
in the kitchen and she said I was wonderful. I wanted to go
across the street to show Miss Maudie, but Jem said she'd probably
be at the pageant anyway. After that, it didn't matter whether
they went or not. Jem said he would take me. Thus began our
longest journey together. 28 The weather was unusually warm
for the last day of October. We didn't even need jackets.
The wind was growing stronger, and Jem said it might be
raining before we got home. There was no moon. The street light
on the corner cast sharp shadows on the Radley house. I
heard Jem laugh softly. "Bet nobody bothers them tonight," he
said. Jem was carrying my ham costume, rather awkwardly, as
it was hard to hold. I thought it gallant of him to do so. "It
is a scary place though, ain't it?" I said. "Boo doesn't
mean anybody any harm, but I'm right glad you're along." "You know
Atticus wouldn't let you go to the schoolhouse by yourself," Jem said.
"Don't see why, it's just around the corner and across the
yard." "That yard's a mighty long place for little girls to
cross at night," Jem teased. "Ain't you scared of haints?" We
laughed. Haints, Hot Steams, incantations, secret signs, had vanished
with our years as mist with sunrise. "What was that old
thing," Jem said, "Angel bright, life-in-death; get off the road,
don't suck my breath." "Cut it out, now," I said. We were in
front of the Radley Place. Jem said, "Boo must not be at home.
Listen." High above us in the darkness a solitary mocker poured out
his repertoire in blissful unawareness of whose tree he sat
in, plunging from the shrill kee, kee of the sunflower bird to the
irascible qua-ack of a bluejay, to the sad lament of Poor Will, Poor
Will, Poor Will. We turned the corner and I tripped on a root growing
in the road. Jem tried to help me, but all he did was drop
my costume in the dust. I didn't fall, though, and soon we were on our
way again. We turned off the road and entered the schoolyard.
It was pitch black. "How do you know where we're at, Jem?" I asked,
when we had gone a few steps. "I can tell we're under the big
oak because we're passin' through a cool spot. Careful now, and
don't fall again." We had slowed to a cautious gait, and were feeling
our way forward so as not to bump into the tree. The tree
was a single and ancient oak; two children could not reach around its
trunk and touch hands. It was far away from teachers, their
spies, and curious neighbors: it was near the Radley lot, but
the Radleys were not curious. A small patch of earth beneath its
branches was packed hard from many fights and furtive crap games. The
lights in the high school auditorium were blazing in the distance,
but they blinded us, if anything. "Don't look ahead, Scout,"
Jem said. "Look at the ground and you won't fall." "You should have
brought the flashlight, Jem." "Didn't know it was this dark.
Didn't look like it'd be this dark earlier in the evening.
So cloudy, that's why. It'll hold off a while, though." Someone
leaped at us. "God almighty!" Jem yelled. A circle of light burst in
our faces, and Cecil Jacobs jumped in glee behind it. "Ha-a-a,
gotcha!" he shrieked. "Thought you'd be comin' along this way!"
"What are you doin' way out here by yourself, boy? Ain't you
scared of Boo Radley?" Cecil had ridden safely to the
auditorium with his parents, hadn't seen us, then had ventured down
this far because he knew good and well we'd be coming along.
He thought Mr. Finch'd be with us, though. "Shucks, ain't much
but around the corner," said Jem. "Who's scared to go around
the corner?" We had to admit that Cecil was pretty good,
though. He had given us a fright, and he could tell it all over
the schoolhouse, that was his privilege. "Say," I said, "ain't
you a cow tonight? Where's your costume?" "It's up behind the
stage," he said. "Mrs. Merriweather says the pageant ain't comin'
on for a while. You can put yours back of the stage by
mine, Scout, and we can go with the rest of 'em." This was an
excellent idea, Jem thought. He also thought it a good thing that
Cecil and I would be together. This way, Jem would be left to
go with people his own age. When we reached the auditorium, the
whole town was there except Atticus and the ladies worn out from
decorating, and the usual outcasts and shut-ins. Most of the
county, it seemed, was there: the hall was teeming with
slicked-up country people. The high school building had a wide
downstairs hallway; people milled around booths that had been
installed along each side. "Oh Jem. I forgot my money," I sighed,
when I saw them. "Atticus didn't," Jem said. "Here's thirty
cents, you can do six things. See you later on." "Okay," I said,
quite content with thirty cents and Cecil. I went with Cecil
down to the front of the auditorium, through a door on one side,
and backstage. I got rid of my ham costume and departed in a
hurry, for Mrs. Merriweather was standing at a lectern in front
of the first row of seats making last-minute, frenzied changes in
the script. "How much money you got?" I asked Cecil. Cecil had thirty
cents, too, which made us even. We squandered our first
nickels on the House of Horrors, which scared us not at all; we
entered the black seventh-grade room and were led around by the
temporary ghoul in residence and were made to touch several objects
alleged to be component parts of a human being. "Here's his eyes,"
we were told when we touched two peeled grapes on a saucer.
"Here's his heart," which felt like raw liver. "These are his
innards," and our hands were thrust into a plate of cold spaghetti.
Cecil and I visited several booths. We each bought a sack of Mrs.
Judge Taylor's homemade divinity. I wanted to bob for apples, but
Cecil said it wasn't sanitary. His mother said he might catch
something from everybody's heads having been in the same tub. "Ain't
anything around town now to catch," I protested. But Cecil said his
mother said it was unsanitary to eat after folks. I later asked
Aunt Alexandra about this, and she said people who held such
views were usually climbers. We were about to purchase a blob
of taffy when Mrs. Merriweather's runners appeared and told us
to go backstage, it was time to get ready. The auditorium
was filling with people; the Maycomb County High School band
had assembled in front below the stage; the stage footlights were on
and the red velvet curtain rippled and billowed from the
scurrying going on behind it. Backstage, Cecil and I found the
narrow hallway teeming with people: adults in homemade three-
corner hats, Confederate caps, Spanish-American War hats, and
World War helmets. Children dressed as various agricultural
enterprises crowded around the one small window. "Somebody's mashed
my costume," I wailed in dismay. Mrs. Merriweather galloped to me,
reshaped the chicken wire, and thrust me inside. "You all right
in there, Scout?" asked Cecil. "You sound so far off, like you
was on the other side of a hill." "You don't sound any nearer," I
said. The band played the national anthem, and we heard the
audience rise. Then the bass drum sounded. Mrs. Merriweather,
stationed behind her lectern beside the band, said: "Maycomb County
Ad Astra Per Aspera." The bass drum boomed again. "That means,"
said Mrs. Merriweather, translating for the rustic elements,
"from the mud to the stars." She added, unnecessarily, it
seemed to me, "A pageant." "Reckon they wouldn't know what
it was if she didn't tell 'em," whispered Cecil, who was
immediately shushed. "The whole town knows it," I breathed. "But the
country folks've come in," Cecil said. "Be quiet back there," a man's
voice ordered, and we were silent. The bass drum went boom with
every sentence Mrs. Merriweather uttered. She chanted mournfully
about Maycomb County being older than the state, that it was
a part of the Mississippi and Alabama Territories, that the first
white man to set foot in the virgin forests was the Probate
Judge's great-grandfather five times removed, who was never
heard of again. Then came the fearless Colonel Maycomb, for
whom the county was named. Andrew Jackson appointed him to a
position of authority, and Colonel Maycomb's misplaced self-
confidence and slender sense of direction brought disaster to
all who rode with him in the Creek Indian Wars. Colonel
Maycomb persevered in his efforts to make the region safe for
democracy, but his first campaign was his last. His orders,
relayed to him by a friendly Indian runner, were to move
south. After consulting a tree to ascertain from its lichen
which way was south, and taking no lip from the to correct
him, Colonel subordinates who ventured Maycomb set out on a
purposeful journey to rout the enemy and entangled his troops so
far northwest in the forest primeval that they were eventually
rescued by settlers moving inland. Mrs. Merriweather gave a
thirty-minute description of Colonel Maycomb's exploits. I
discovered that if I bent my knees I could tuck them under
my costume and more or less sit. I sat down, listened to
Mrs. Merriweather's drone and the bass drum's boom and was soon fast
asleep. They said later that Mrs. Merriweather was putting
her all into the grand finale, that she had crooned, "Po-ork," with a
confidence born of pine trees and butterbeans entering on cue.
She waited a few seconds, then called, "Po-ork?" When nothing
materialized, she yelled, "Pork!" I must have heard her in my
sleep, or the band playing Dixie woke me, but it was when
Mrs. Merriweather triumphantly mounted the stage with the state
flag that I chose to make my entrance. Chose is incorrect: I
thought I'd better catch up with the rest of them. They told me
later that Judge Taylor went out behind the auditorium and
stood there slapping his knees so hard Mrs. Taylor brought him a glass
of water and one of his pills. Mrs. Merriweather seemed to have
a hit, everybody was cheering so, but she caught me backstage
and told me I had ruined her pageant. She made me feel awful, but
when Jem came to fetch me he was sympathetic. He said he
couldn't see my costume much from where he was sitting. How
he could tell I was feeling bad under my costume I don't
know, but he said I did all right, I just came in a little late, that
was all. Jem was becoming almost as good as Atticus at
making you feel right when things went wrong. Almost- not
even Jem could make me go through that crowd, and he
consented to wait backstage with me until the audience left.
"You wanta take it off, Scout?" he asked . "Naw, I'll just keep
it on," I said. I could hide my mortification under it. "You
all want a ride home?" someone asked. "No sir, thank you," I heard
Jem say. "It's just a little walk." "Be careful of haints," the
voice said. "Better still, tell the haints to be careful of
Scout." "There aren't many folks left now," Jem told me. "Let's go."
We went through the auditorium to the hallway, then down the steps.
It was still black dark. The remaining cars were parked on
the other side of the building, and their headlights were
little help. "If some of 'em were goin' in our direction we could
see better," said Jem. "Here Scout, let me hold onto your- hock.
You might lose your balance." "I can see all right." "Yeah, but
you might lose your balance." I felt a slight pressure on my
head, and assumed that Jem had grabbed that end of the ham. "You
got me?" "Uh huh. " We began crossing the black schoolyard,
straining to see our feet. "Jem," I said, "I forgot my
shoes, they're back behind the stage." "Well let's go get 'em."
But as we turned around the auditorium lights went off. "You can
get 'em tomorrow," he said. "But tomorrow's Sunday," I
protested, as Jem turned me homeward. "You can get the Janitor to
let you in... Scout?" "Hm?" "Nothing." Jem hadn't started that in a
long time. I wondered what he was thinking. He'd tell me when he
wanted to, probably when we got home. I felt his fingers
press the top of my costume, too hard, it seemed. I shook my head.
"Jem, you don't hafta-" "Hush a minute, Scout," he said, pinching me.
We walked along silently. "Minute's up," I said. "Whatcha
thinkin' about?" I turned to look at him, but his outline was barely
visible. "Thought I heard something," he said. "Stop a minute." We
stopped. "Hear anything?" he asked. "No." We had not gone five
paces before he made me stop again. "Jem, are you tryin' to scare me?
You know I'm too old-" "Be quiet," he said, and I knew he was not
joking. The night was still. I could hear his breath coming
easily beside me. Occasionally there was a sudden breeze that hit my
bare legs, but it was all that remained of a promised
windy night. This was the stillness before a thunderstorm. We
listened. "Heard an old dog just then," I said. "It's not that," Jem
answered. "I hear it when we're walkin' along, but when we stop I
don't hear it." "You hear my costume rustlin'. Aw, it's just
Halloween got you...." I said it more to convince myself than
Jem, for sure enough, as we began walking, I heard what he was
talking about. It was not my costume. "It's just old Cecil," said
Jem presently. "He won't get us again. Let's don't let him think
we're hurrying." We slowed to a crawl. I asked Jem how Cecil could
follow us in this dark, looked to me like he'd bump into us
from behind. "I can see you, Scout," Jem said. "How? I can't see
you." "Your fat streaks are showin'. Mrs. Crenshaw painted
'em with some of that shiny stuff so they'd show up under
the footlights. I can see you pretty well, an' I expect
Cecil can see you well enough to keep his distance." I would show
Cecil that we knew he was behind us and we were ready for him.
"Cecil Jacobs is a big wet he-en!" I yelled suddenly, turning
around. We stopped. There was no acknowledgement save he-en
bouncing off the distant schoolhouse wall. "I'll get him," said Jem.
"He-y!" Hay-e-hay-e-hay-ey, answered the schoolhouse wall. It was
unlike Cecil to hold out for so long; once he pulled a
joke he'd repeat it time and again. We should have been leapt at
already. Jem signaled for me to stop again. He said softly, "Scout,
can you take that thing off?" "I think so, but I ain't got anything
on under it much." "I've got your dress here." "I can't get it on in
the dark." "Okay," he said, "never mind." "Jem, are you afraid?"
"No. Think we're almost to the tree now. Few yards from
that, an' we'll be to the road. We can see the street
light then." Jem was talking in an unhurried, flat toneless voice. I
wondered how long he would try to keep the Cecil myth going.
"You reckon we oughta sing, Jem?" "No. Be real quiet again, Scout."
We had not increased our pace. Jem knew as well as I that it was
difficult to walk fast without stumping a toe, tripping on stones, and
other inconveniences, and I was barefooted. Maybe it was the wind
rustling the trees. But there wasn't any wind and there weren't
any trees except the big oak. Our company shuffled and dragged
his feet, as if wearing heavy shoes. Whoever it was wore thick
cotton pants; what I thought were trees rustling was the soft swish
of cotton on cotton, wheek, wheek, with every step. I felt the
sand go cold under my feet and I knew we were near the big
oak. Jem pressed my head. We stopped and listened. Shuffle-
foot had not stopped with us this time. His trousers swished softly
and steadily. Then they stopped. He was running, running toward
us with no child's steps. "Run, Scout! Run! Run!" Jem screamed. I
took one giant step and found myself reeling: my arms
useless, in the dark, I could not keep my balance. "Jem, Jem, help
me, Jem!" Something crushed the chicken wire around me. Metal
ripped on metal and I fell to the ground and rolled as far as I
could, floundering to escape my wire prison. From somewhere
near by came scuffling, kicking sounds, sounds of shoes and flesh
scraping dirt and roots. Someone rolled against me and I felt
Jem. He was up like lightning and pulling me with him but,
though my head and shoulders were free, I was so entangled we
didn't get very far. We were nearly to the road when I felt
Jem's hand leave me, felt him jerk backwards to the ground.
More scuffling, and there came a dull crunching sound and Jem
screamed. I ran in the direction of Jem's scream and sank into a
flabby male stomach. Its owner said, "Uff!" and tried to catch my
arms, but they were tightly pinioned. His stomach was soft but his
arms were like steel. He slowly squeezed the breath out of me. I
could not move. Suddenly he was jerked backwards and flung
on the ground, almost carrying me with him. I thought, Jem's up.
One's mind works very slowly at times. Stunned, I stood there
dumbly. The scuffling noises were dying; someone wheezed and the
night was still again. Still but for a man breathing heavily,
breathing heavily and staggering. I thought he went to the tree
and leaned against it. He coughed violently, a sobbing, bone-
shaking cough. "Jem?" There was no answer but the man's heavy
breathing. "Jem?" Jem didn't answer. The man began moving
around, as if searching for something. I heard him groan and
pull something heavy along the ground. It was slowly coming
to me that there were now four people under the tree.
"Atticus...?" The man was walking heavily and unsteadily
toward the road. I went to where I thought he had been and
felt frantically along the ground, reaching out with my toes.
Presently I touched someone. "Jem?" My toes touched trousers, a
belt buckle, buttons, something I could not identify, a collar, and a
face. A prickly stubble on the face told me it was not Jem's. I
smelled stale whiskey. I made my way along in what I thought was the
direction of the road. I was not sure, because I had been turned
around so many times. But I found it and looked down to the street
light. A man was passing under it. The man was walking with
the staccato steps of someone carrying a load too heavy for
him. He was going around the corner. He was carrying Jem.
Jem's arm was dangling crazily in front of him. By the time I
reached the corner the man was crossing our front yard. Light from
our front door framed Atticus for an instant; he ran down
the steps, and together, he and the man took Jem inside. I was
at the front door when they were going down the hall. Aunt Alexandra
was running to meet me. "Call Dr. Reynolds!" Atticus's voice
came sharply from Jem's room. "Where's Scout?" "Here she is,"
Aunt Alexandra called, pulling me along with her to the telephone.
She tugged at me anxiously. "I'm all right, Aunty," I said, "you
better call. " She pulled the receiver from the hook and said, "Eula
May, get Dr. Reynolds, quick!" "Agnes, is your father home? Oh
God, where is he? Please tell him to come over here as soon as he
comes in. Please, it's urgent!" There was no need for Aunt
Alexandra to identify herself, people in Maycomb knew each other's
voices. Atticus came out of Jem's room. The moment Aunt
Alexandra broke the connection, Atticus took the receiver from
her. He rattled the hook, then said, "Eula May, get me the sheriff,
please." "Heck? Atticus Finch. Someone's been after my
children. Jem's hurt. Between here and the schoolhouse. I can't leave
my boy. Run out there for me, please, and see if he's
still around. Doubt if you'll find him now, but I'd like to see him if
you do. Got to go now. Thanks, Heck." "Atticus, is Jem dead?" "No,
Scout. Look after her, sister," he called, as he went down
the hall. Aunt Alexandra's fingers trembled as she unwound the
crushed fabric and wire from around me. "Are you all right, darling?"
she asked over and over as she worked me free. It was a relief to be
out. My arms were beginning to tingle, and they were red with
small hexagonal marks. I rubbed them, and they felt better.
"Aunty, is Jem dead?" "No- no, darling, he's unconscious. We
won't know how badly he's hurt until Dr. Reynolds gets here.
Jean Louise, what happened?" "I don't know." She left it at
that. She brought me something to put on, and had I thought
about it then, I would have never let her forget it: in her
distraction, Aunty brought me my overalls. "Put these on, darling,"
she said, handing me the garments she most despised. She rushed
back to Jem's room, then came to me in the hall. She patted
me vaguely, and went back to Jem's room. A car stopped in front
of the house. I knew Dr. Reynolds's step almost as well as my
father's. He had brought Jem and me into the world, had led us
through every childhood disease known to man including the time Jem
fell out of the treehouse, and he had never lost our
friendship. Dr. Reynolds said if we had been boil-prone things
would have been different, but we doubted it. He came in the door
and said, "Good Lord." He walked toward me, said, "You're
still standing," and changed his course. He knew every room
in the house. He also knew that if I was in bad shape, so was
Jem. After ten forevers Dr. Reynolds returned. "Is Jem dead?"
I asked. "Far from it," he said, squatting down to me. "He's
got a bump on the head just like yours, and a broken arm. Scout, look
that way- no, don't turn your head, roll your eyes. Now look over
yonder. He's got a bad break, so far as I can tell now it's in the
elbow. Like somebody tried to wring his arm off... Now look at me."
"Then he's not dead?" "No-o!" Dr. Reynolds got to his feet.
"We can't do much tonight," he said, "except try to make him
as comfortable as we can. We'll have to X-ray his arm- looks
like he'll be wearing his arm 'way out by his side for a
while. Don't worry, though, he'll be as good as new. Boys
his age bounce." While he was talking, Dr. Reynolds had been looking
keenly at me, lightly fingering the bump that was coming on
my forehead. "You don't feel broke anywhere, do you?" Dr.
Reynolds's small joke made me smile. "Then you don't think
he's dead, then?" He put on his hat. "Now I may be wrong,
of course, but I think he's very alive. Shows all the symptoms of
it. Go have a look at him, and when I come back we'll get together and
decide." Dr. Reynolds's step was young and brisk. Mr. Heck
Tate's was not. His heavy boots punished the porch and he opened the
door awkwardly, but he said the same thing Dr. Reynolds said
when he came in. "You all right, Scout?" he added. "Yes sir,
I'm goin' in to see Jem. Atticus'n'them's in there." "I'll go with
you," said Mr. Tate. Aunt Alexandra had shaded Jem's reading light
with a towel, and his room was dim. Jem was lying on his back. There
was an ugly mark along one side of his face. His left arm lay out from
his body; his elbow was bent slightly, but in the wrong direction. Jem
was frowning. "Jem...?" Atticus spoke. "He can't hear you,
Scout, he's out like a light. He was coming around, but Dr.
Reynolds put him out again." "Yes sir." I retreated. Jem's room
was large and square. Aunt Alexandra was sitting in a
rocking-chair by the fireplace. The man who brought Jem in
was standing in a corner, leaning against the wall. He was some
countryman I did not know. He had probably been at the
pageant, and was in the vicinity when it happened. He must
have heard our screams and come running. Atticus was standing by
Jem's bed. Mr. Heck Tate stood in the doorway. His hat was in his
hand, and a flashlight bulged from his pants pocket. He was in his
working clothes. "Come in, Heck," said Atticus. "Did you find
anything? I can't conceive of anyone low-down enough to do a thing
like this, but I hope you found him." Mr. Tate sniffed. He
glanced sharply at the man in the corner, nodded to him,
then looked around the room- at Jem, at Aunt Alexandra, then at
Atticus. "Sit down, Mr. Finch," he said pleasantly. Atticus said,
"Let's all sit down. Have that chair, Heck. I'll get another
one from the livingroom." Mr. Tate sat in Jem's desk chair. He
waited until Atticus returned and settled himself. I wondered
why Atticus had not brought a chair for the man in the
corner, but Atticus knew the ways of country people far better than
I. Some of his rural clients would park their long-eared steeds
under the chinaberry trees in the back yard, and Atticus
would often keep appointments on the back steps. This one was
probably more comfortable where he was. "Mr. Finch," said Mr. Tate,
"tell you what I found. I found a little girl's dress- it's out
there in my car. That your dress, Scout?" "Yes sir, if it's a
pink one with smockin'," I said. Mr. Tate was behaving as if he were
on the witness stand. He liked to tell things his own way,
untrammeled by state or defense, and sometimes it took him a
while. "I found some funny-looking pieces of muddy-colored cloth- "
"That's m'costume, Mr. Tate." Mr. Tate ran his hands down his
thighs. He rubbed his left arm and investigated Jem's mantelpiece,
then he seemed to be interested in the fireplace. His fingers
sought his long nose. "What is it, Heck?" said Atticus. Mr. Tate
found his neck and rubbed it. "Bob Ewell's lyin' on the ground under
that tree down yonder with a kitchen knife stuck up under his ribs.
He's dead, Mr. Finch." 29 Aunt Alexandra got up and reached for
the mantelpiece. Mr. Tate rose, but she declined assistance.
For
once in his life, Atticus's instinctive courtesy failed him:
he sat where he was" . Somehow, I could think of nothing but Mr.
Bob Ewell saying he'd get Atticus if it took him the rest of
his life. Mr. Ewell almost got him, and it was the last thing he
did." "Are you sure?" Atticus said bleakly." "He's dead all right,"
said Mr. Tate. "He's good and dead. He won't hurt these children
again."" "I didn't mean that." Atticus seemed to be talking
in his sleep. His age was beginning to show, his one sign of inner
turmoil, the strong line of his jaw melted a little, one
became aware of telltale creases forming under his ears, one
noticed not his jet-black hair but the gray patches growing at
his temples." "Hadn't we better go to the livingroom?" Aunt
Alexandra said at last. " "If you don't mind," said Mr. Tate, "I'd
rather us stay in here if it won't hurt Jem any. I want to have a look
at his injuries while Scout... tells us about it." " "Is it all
right if I leave?" she asked. "I'm just one person too many
in here. I'll be in my room if you want me, Atticus." Aunt
Alexandra went to the door, but she stopped and turned. "Atticus,
I had a feeling about this tonight- I- this is my fault," she
began. "I should have-" " Mr. Tate held up his hand. "You go ahead,
Miss Alexandra, I know it's been a shock to you. And don't
you fret yourself about anything- why, if we followed our feelings
all the time we'd be like cats chasin' their tails. Miss
Scout, see if you can tell us what happened, while it's still fresh
in your mind. You think you can? Did you see him following you?"" I
went to Atticus and felt his arms go around me. I buried my
head in his lap. "We started home. I said Jem, I've forgot
m'shoes. Soon's we started back for 'em the lights went out.
Jem said I could get 'em tomorrow...."" "Scout, raise up so Mr.
Tate can hear you," Atticus said. I crawled into his lap. "
"Then Jem said hush a minute. I thought he was thinkin'- he
always wants you to hush so he can think- then he said he heard
somethin'. We thought it was Cecil."" "Cecil?"" "Cecil Jacobs. He
scared us once tonight, an' we thought it was him again. He had on a
sheet. They gave a quarter for the best costume, I don't know who won
it-" " " " "Where were you when you thought it was Cecil?"" " "Just a
little piece from the schoolhouse. I yelled somethin' at him-" " ""You
yelled, what?"" ""Cecil Jacobs is a big fat hen, I think. We didn't
hear nothin'- then Jem yelled hello or somethin' loud enough to wake
the dead-" " " "Just a minute, Scout," said Mr. Tate. "Mr.
Finch, did you hear them?"" " Atticus said he didn't. He had the
radio on. Aunt Alexandra had hers going in her bedroom. He
remembered because she told him to turn his down a bit so she could
hear hers. Atticus smiled. "I always play a radio too loud."" "I
wonder if the neighbors heard anything...." said Mr. Tate. "I doubt
it, Heck. Most of them listen to their radios or go to bed with the
chickens. Maudie Atkinson may have been up, but I doubt it." " "Go
ahead, Scout," Mr. Tate said. " " "Well, after Jem yelled we
walked on. Mr. Tate, I was shut up in my costume but I
could hear it myself, then. Footsteps, I mean. They walked
when we walked and stopped when we stopped. Jem said he
could see me because Mrs. Crenshaw put some kind of shiny paint on
my costume. I was a ham."" "" How's that?" asked Mr. Tate, startled.
" " Atticus described my role to Mr. Tate, plus the construction of
my garment. "You should have seen her when she came in," he said, "it
was crushed to a pulp." " Mr. Tate rubbed his chin. "I wondered
why he had those marks on him, His sleeves were perforated with
little holes. There were one or two little puncture marks on his arms
to match the holes. Let me see that thing if you will, sir."" "
Atticus fetched the remains of my costume. Mr. Tate turned it over
and bent it around to get an idea of its former shape. "This
thing probably saved her life," he said. "Look." He pointed with a
long forefinger. A shiny clean line stood out on the dull
wire. "Bob Ewell meant business," Mr. Tate muttered." "He was
out of his mind," said Atticus. " "Don't like to contradict you, Mr.
Finch- wasn't crazy, mean as hell. Low-down skunk with enough liquor
in him to make him brave enough to kill children. He'd never have met
you face to face." " Atticus shook his head. "I can't conceive of a
man who'd-" " "Mr. Finch, there's just some kind of men you have to
shoot before you can say hidy to 'em. Even then, they ain't worth the
bullet it takes to shoot 'em. Ewell 'as one of 'em." " Atticus said,
"I thought he got it all out of him the day he threatened
me. Even if he hadn't, I thought he'd come after me."" "He had guts
enough to pester a poor colored woman, he had guts enough to
pester Judge Taylor when he thought the house was empty, so
do you think he'da met you to your face in daylight?" Mr. Tate
sighed. "We'd better get on. Scout, you heard him behind you-" " "Yes
sir. When we got under the tree-" " "How'd you know you were under
the tree, you couldn't see thunder out there." " "I was barefooted,
and Jem says the ground's always cooler under a tree." " "We'll have
to make him a deputy, go ahead." "Then all of a sudden somethin'
grabbed me an' mashed my costume... think I ducked on the
ground... heard a tusslin' under the tree sort of... they
were bammin' against the trunk, sounded like. Jem found me
and started pullin' me toward the road. Some- Mr. Ewell
yanked him down, I reckon. They tussled some more and then
there was this funny noise- Jem hollered..." I stopped. That
was Jem's arm." "Anyway, Jem hollered and I didn't hear him
any more an' the next thing- Mr. Ewell was tryin' to squeeze me to
death, I reckon... then somebody yanked Mr. Ewell down. Jem
must have got up, I guess. That's all I know..." " "And then?" Mr.
Tate was looking at me sharply. "Somebody was staggerin' around
and pantin' and- coughing fit to die. I thought it was Jem at first,
but it didn't sound like him, so I went lookin' for Jem on
the ground. I thought Atticus had come to help us and had got wore
out- "" "Who was it?"" "Why there he is, Mr. Tate, he can tell you
his name." " " As I said it, I half pointed to the man in
the corner, but brought my arm down quickly lest Atticus reprimand
me for pointing. It was impolite to point." He was still leaning
against the wall. He had been leaning against the wall when I
came into the room, his arms folded across his chest. As I
pointed he brought his arms down and pressed the palms of
his hands against the wall. They were white hands, sickly
white hands that had never seen the sun, so white they stood
out garishly against the dull cream wall in the dim light of Jem's
room." I looked from his hands to his sand-stained khaki pants; my
eyes traveled up his thin frame to his torn denim shirt. His face was
as white as his hands, but for a shadow on his jutting chin.
His cheeks were thin to hollowness; his mouth was wide; there were
shallow, almost delicate indentations at his temples, and his
gray eyes were so colorless I thought he was blind. His hair
was dead and thin, almost feathery on top of his head." When I
pointed to him his palms slipped slightly, leaving greasy
sweat streaks on the wall, and he hooked his thumbs in his
belt. A strange small spasm shook him, as if he heard fingernails
scrape slate, but as I gazed at him in wonder the tension
slowly drained from his face. His lips parted into a timid
smile, and our neighbor's image blurred with my sudden tears. " "Hey,
Boo," I said. " 30 "Mr. Arthur, honey," said Atticus, gently
correcting me. "Jean Louise, this is Mr. Arthur Radley. I believe he
already knows you." If Atticus could blandly introduce me to
Boo Radley at a time like this, well- that was Atticus. Boo saw
me run instinctively to the bed where Jem was sleeping, for
the same shy smile crept across his face. Hot with
embarrassment, I tried to cover up by covering Jem up. "Ah-
ah, don't touch him," Atticus said. Mr. Heck Tate sat looking
intently at Boo through his horn- rimmed glasses. He was about to
speak when Dr. Reynolds came down the hall. "Everybody out," he said,
as he came in the door. "Evenin', Arthur, didn't notice you the first
time I was here." Dr. Reynolds's voice was as breezy as his step, as
though he had said it every evening of his life, an announcement that
astounded me even more than being in the same room with Boo Radley.
Of course... even Boo Radley got sick sometimes, I thought. But
on the other hand I wasn't sure. Dr. Reynolds was carrying a big
package wrapped in newspaper. He put it down on Jem's desk
and took off his coat. "You're quite satisfied he's alive, now?
Tell you how I knew. When I tried to examine him he kicked
me. Had to put him out good and proper to touch him. So scat," he
said to me. "Er-" said Atticus, glancing at Boo. "Heck, let's
go out on the front porch. There are plenty of chairs out
there, and it's still warm enough." I wondered why Atticus was
inviting us to the front porch instead of the livingroom, then I
understood. The livingroom lights were awfully strong . We filed
out, first Mr. Tate- Atticus was waiting at the door for him
to go ahead of him. Then he changed his mind and followed Mr. Tate.
People have a habit of doing everyday things even under the
oddest conditions. I was no exception: "Come along, Mr. Arthur," I
heard myself saying, "you don't know the house real well. I'll
just take you to the porch, sir." He looked down at me and nodded. I
led him through the hall and past the livingroom. "Won't you have a
seat, Mr. Arthur? This rocking-chair's nice and comfortable." My
small fantasy about him was alive again: he would be sitting
on the porch... right pretty spell we're having, isn't it, Mr.
Arthur? Yes, a right pretty spell. Feeling slightly unreal, I led him
to the chair farthest from Atticus and Mr. Tate. It was in deep
shadow. Boo would feel more comfortable in the dark . Atticus was
sitting in the swing, and Mr. Tate was in a chair next to him. The
light from the livingroom windows was strong on them. I sat
beside Boo. "Well, Heck," Atticus was saying, "I guess the
thing to do- good Lord, I'm losing my memory..." Atticus pushed up
his glasses and pressed his fingers to his eyes. "Jem's not quite
thirteen... no, he's already thirteen- I can't remember.
Anyway, it'll come before county court-" "What will, Mr. Finch?"
Mr. Tate uncrossed his legs and leaned forward. "Of course it
was clear-cut self defense, but I'll have to go to the office
and hunt up-" "Mr. Finch, do you think Jem killed Bob Ewell? Do you
think that?" "You heard what Scout said, there's no doubt about it.
She said Jem got up and yanked him off her- he probably got
hold of Ewell's knife somehow in the dark... we'll find out
tomorrow." "Mis-ter Finch, hold on," said Mr. Tate. "Jem never
stabbed Bob Ewell." Atticus was silent for a moment. He looked at Mr.
Tate as if he appreciated what he said. But Atticus shook his head.
"Heck, it's mighty kind of you and I know you're doing it
from that good heart of yours, but don't start anything like that."
Mr. Tate got up and went to the edge of the porch. He spat into the
shrubbery, then thrust his hands into his hip pockets and faced
Atticus. "Like what?" he said. "I'm sorry if I spoke sharply, Heck,"
Atticus said simply, "but nobody's hushing this up. I don't live that
way." v"Nobody's gonna hush anything up, Mr. Finch." Mr. Tate's
voice was quiet, but his boots were planted so solidly on
the porch floorboards it seemed that they grew there. A
curious contest, the nature of which eluded me, was developing
between my father and the sheriff. It was Atticus's turn to get
up and go to the edge of the porch. He said, "H'rm," and spat
dryly into the yard. He put his hands in his pockets and faced Mr.
Tate. "Heck, you haven't said it, but I know what you're thinking.
Thank you for it. Jean Louise-" he turned to me. "You said
Jem yanked Mr. Ewell off you?" "Yes sir, that's what I thought... I-"
"See there, Heck? Thank you from the bottom of my heart, but I don't
want my boy starting out with something like this over his
head. Best way to clear the air is to have it all out in the open. Let
the county come and bring sandwiches. I don't want him growing up
with a whisper about him, I don't want anybody saying, 'Jem
Finch... his daddy paid a mint to get him out of that.'
Sooner we get this over with the better." "Mr. Finch," Mr.
Tate said stolidly, "Bob Ewell fell on his knife. He killed
himself." Atticus walked to the corner of the porch. He looked at
the wisteria vine. In his own way, I thought, each was as
stubborn as the other. I wondered who would give in first.
Atticus's stubbornness was quiet and rarely evident, but in
some ways he was as set as the Cunninghams. Mr. Tate's was
unschooled and blunt, but it was equal to my father's. "Heck,"
Atticus's back was turned. "If this thing's hushed up it'll be a
simple denial to Jem of the way I've tried to raise him. Sometimes I
think I'm a total failure as a parent, but I'm all they've
got. Before Jem looks at anyone else he looks at me, and
I've tried to live so I can look squarely back at him... if I
connived at something like this, frankly I couldn't meet his eye, and
the day I can't do that I'll know I've lost him. I don't want to
lose him and Scout, because they're all I've got." "Mr. Finch."
Mr. Tate was still planted to the floorboards. "Bob Ewell fell
on his knife. I can prove it." Atticus wheeled around. His hands
dug into his pockets. "Heck, can't you even try to see it
my way? You've got children of your own, but I'm older than
you. When mine are grown I'll be an old man if I'm still
around, but right now I'm- if they don't trust me they won't
trust anybody. Jem and Scout know what happened. If they hear
of me saying downtown something different happened- Heck, I
won't have them any more. I can't live one way in town and another way
in my home." Mr. Tate rocked on his heels and said patiently,
"He'd flung Jem down, he stumbled over a root under that
tree and- look, I can show you." Mr. Tate reached in his side
pocket and withdrew a long switchblade knife. As he did so,
Dr. Reynolds came to the door. "The son- deceased's under
that tree, doctor, just inside the schoolyard. Got a
flashlight? Better have this one." "I can ease around and
turn my car lights on," said Dr. Reynolds, but he took Mr.
Tate's flashlight. "Jem's all right. He won't wake up tonight, I
hope, so don't worry. That the knife that killed him, Heck?" "No
sir, still in him. Looked like a kitchen knife from the
handle. Ken oughta be there with the hearse by now, doctor,
'night." Mr. Tate flicked open the knife. "It was like this," he
said. He held the knife and pretended to stumble; as he
leaned forward his left arm went down in front of him. "See there?
Stabbed himself through that soft stuff between his ribs. His whole
weight drove it in." Mr. Tate closed the knife and jammed it back in
his pocket. "Scout is eight years old," he said. "She was too
scared to know exactly what went on." "You'd be surprised," Atticus
said grimly. "I'm not sayin' she made it up, I'm sayin' she
was too scared to know exactly what happened. It was mighty dark out
there, black as ink. 'd take somebody mighty used to the dark
to make a competent witness..." "I won't have it," Atticus said
softly. "God damn it, I'm not thinking of Jem!" Mr. Tate's boot hit
the floorboards so hard the lights in Miss Maudie's bedroom went
on. Miss Stephanie Crawford's lights went on. Atticus and Mr. Tate
looked across the street, then at each other. They waited. When Mr.
Tate spoke again his voice was barely audible. "Mr. Finch, I
hate to fight you when you're like this. You've been under a strain
tonight no man should ever have to go through. Why you ain't in the
bed from it I don't know, but I do know that for once you haven't been
able to put two and two together, and we've got to settle this
tonight because tomorrow'll be too late. Bob Ewell's got a
kitchen knife in his craw." Mr. Tate added that Atticus wasn't
going to stand there and maintain that any boy Jem's size with
a busted arm had fight enough left in him to tackle and
kill a grown man in the pitch dark. "Heck," said Atticus
abruptly, "that was a switchblade you were waving. Where'd you
get it?" "Took it off a drunk man," Mr. Tate answered coolly. I was
trying to remember. Mr. Ewell was on me... then he went
down.... Jem must have gotten up. At least I thought...
"Heck?" "I said I took it off a drunk man downtown tonight.
Ewell probably found that kitchen knife in the dump somewhere.
Honed it down and bided his time... just bided his time." Atticus
made his way to the swing and sat down. His hands dangled limply
between his knees. He was looking at the floor. He had moved
with the same slowness that night in front of the jail,
when I thought it took him forever to fold his newspaper and
toss it in his chair. Mr. Tate clumped softly around the porch.
"It ain't your decision, Mr. Finch, it's all mine. It's my
decision and my responsibility. For once, if you don't see it
my way, there's not much you can do about it. If you wanta try, I'll
call you a liar to your face. Your boy never stabbed Bob
Ewell," he said slowly, "didn't come near a mile of it and
now you know it. All he wanted to do was get him and his
sister safely home." Mr. Tate stopped pacing. He stopped in front of
Atticus, and his back was to us. "I'm not a very good man, sir, but I
am sheriff of Maycomb County. Lived in this town all my life an' I'm
goin' on forty-three years old. Know everything that's happened
here since before I was born. There's a black boy dead for no
reason, and the man responsible for it's dead. Let the dead
bury the dead this time, Mr. Finch. Let the dead bury the
dead." Mr. Tate went to the swing and picked up his hat.
It was lying beside Atticus. Mr. Tate pushed back his hair
and put his hat on. "I never heard tell that it's against the
law for a citizen to do his utmost to prevent a crime from
being committed, which is exactly what he did, but maybe
you'll say it's my duty to tell the town all about it and
not hush it up. Know what'd happen then? All the ladies in Maycomb
includin' my wife'd be knocking on his door bringing angel food cakes.
To my way of thinkin', Mr. Finch, taking the one man who's
done you and this town a great service an' draggin' him with
his shy ways into the limelight- to me, that's a sin. It's a sin and
I'm not about to have it on my head. If it was any other man, it'd be
different. But not this man, Mr. Finch." Mr. Tate was trying to dig
a hole in the floor with the toe of his boot. He pulled his nose, then
he massaged his left arm. "I may not be much, Mr. Finch, but
I'm still sheriff of Maycomb County and Bob Ewell fell on
his knife. Good night, sir." Mr. Tate stamped off the porch
and strode across the front yard. His car door slammed and he
drove away. Atticus sat looking at the floor for a long
time. Finally he raised his head. "Scout," he said, "Mr. Ewell fell
on his knife. Can you possibly understand?" Atticus looked like he
needed cheering up. I ran to him and hugged him and kissed him
with all my might. "Yes sir, I understand," I reassured him.
"Mr. Tate was right." Atticus disengaged himself and looked at me.
"What do you mean?" "Well, it'd be sort of like shootin' a
mockingbird, wouldn't it?" Atticus put his face in my hair and
rubbed it. When he got up and walked across the porch into the
shadows, his youthful step had returned. Before he went inside
the house, he stopped in front of Boo Radley. "Thank you for
my children, Arthur," he said. 31 When Boo Radley shuffled to
his feet, light from the livingroom windows glistened on his
forehead. Every move he made was uncertain, as if he were
not sure his hands and feet could make proper contact with
the things he touched. He coughed his dreadful raling cough, and was
so shaken he had to sit down again. His hand searched for his hip
pocket, and he pulled out a handkerchief. He coughed into it,
then he wiped his forehead. Having been so accustomed to his
absence, I found it incredible that he had been sitting
beside me all this time, present. He had not made a sound. Once
more, he got to his feet. He turned to me and nodded toward the front
door. "You'd like to say good night to Jem, wouldn't you,
Mr. Arthur? Come right in." I led him down the hall. Aunt Alexandra
was sitting by Jem's bed. "Come in, Arthur," she said. "He's
still asleep. Dr. Reynolds gave him a heavy sedative. Jean
Louise, is your father in the livingroom?" "Yes ma'am, I think so."
"I'll just go speak to him a minute. Dr. Reynolds left
some..." her voice trailed away. Boo had drifted to a corner of
the room, where he stood with his chin up, peering from a distance
at Jem. I took him by the hand, a hand surprisingly warm for
its whiteness. I tugged him a little, and he allowed me to lead
him to Jem's bed. Dr. Reynolds had made a tent-like arrangement
over Jem's arm, to keep the cover off, I guess, and Boo leaned
forward and looked over it. An expression of timid curiosity was
on his face, as though he had never seen a boy before. His
mouth was slightly open, and he looked at Jem from head to
foot. Boo's hand came up, but he let it drop to his side. "You can
pet him, Mr. Arthur, he's asleep. You couldn't if he was awake,
though, he wouldn't let you..." I found myself explaining. "Go
ahead." Boo's hand hovered over Jem's head. "Go on, sir, he's
asleep." His hand came down lightly on Jem's hair. I was beginning
to learn his body English. His hand tightened on mine and he
indicated that he wanted to leave. I led him to the front porch,
where his uneasy steps halted. He was still holding my hand and he
gave no sign of letting me go. "Will you take me home?" He almost
whispered it, in the voice of a child afraid of the dark. I put my
foot on the top step and stopped. I would lead him through our house,
but I would never lead him home. "Mr. Arthur, bend your arm down
here, like that. That's right, sir." I slipped my hand into the
crook of his arm. He had to stoop a little to accommodate me,
but if Miss from her upstairs Stephanie Crawford was watching
window, she would see Arthur Radley escorting me down the
sidewalk, as any gentleman would do. We came to the street light
on the corner, and I wondered how many times Dill had stood
there hugging the fat pole, watching, waiting, hoping. I wondered
how many times Jem and I had made this journey, but I entered the
Radley front gate for the second time in my life. Boo and I walked up
the steps to the porch. His fingers found the front doorknob. He
gently released my hand, opened the door, went inside, and shut the
door behind him. I never saw him again. Neighbors bring food with
death and flowers with sickness and little things in between. Boo
was our neighbor. He gave us two soap dolls, a broken watch and chain,
a pair of good- luck pennies, and our lives. But neighbors give
in return. We never put back into the tree what we took out of it: we
had given him nothing, and it made me sad. I turned to go home.
Street lights winked down the street all the way to town. I
had never seen our neighborhood this angle. There were Miss
Maudie's, Miss from Stephanie's- there was our house, I could
see the porch swing- Miss Rachel's house was beyond us, plainly
visible. I could even see Mrs. Dubose's. I looked behind me. To
the left of the brown door was a long shuttered window. I
walked to it, stood in front of it, and turned around. In
daylight, I thought, you could see to the postoffice corner.
Daylight... in my mind, the night faded. It was daytime and the
neighborhood was busy. Miss Stephanie Crawford crossed the
street to tell the latest to Miss Rachel. Miss Maudie bent
over her azaleas. It was summertime, and two children scampered down
the sidewalk toward a man approaching in the distance. The
man waved, and the children raced each other to him. It was
still summertime, and the children came closer. A boy trudged
down the sidewalk dragging a fishingpole behind him. A man stood
waiting with his hands on his hips. Summertime, and his children
played in the front yard with their friend, enacting a strange
little drama of their own invention. It was fall, and his
children fought on the sidewalk in front of Mrs. Dubose's. The boy
helped his sister to her feet, and they made their way home. Fall, and
his children trotted to and fro around the corner, the day's woes and
triumphs on their faces. They stopped at an oak tree, delighted,
puzzled, apprehensive. Winter, and his children shivered at the
front gate, silhouetted against a blazing house. Winter, and a
man walked into the street, dropped his glasses, and shot a dog.
Summer, and he watched his children's heart break. Autumn
again, and Boo's children needed him. Atticus was right. One time he
said you never really know a man until you stand in his shoes and walk
around in them. Just standing on the Radley porch was enough. The
street lights were fuzzy from the fine rain that was falling.
As I made my way home, I felt very old, but when I looked at the
tip of my nose I could see fine misty beads, but looking
cross-eyed made me dizzy so I quit. As I made my way home, I thought
what a thing to tell Jem tomorrow. He'd be so mad he missed it
he wouldn't speak to me for days. As I made my way home, I
thought Jem and I would get grown but there wasn't much else
left for us to learn, except possibly algebra. I ran up the
steps and into the house. Aunt Alexandra had gone to bed, and
Atticus's room was dark. I would see if Jem might be reviving.
Atticus was in Jem's room, sitting by his bed. He was reading a book.
"Is Jem awake yet?" "Sleeping peacefully. He won't be awake until
morning." "Oh. Are you sittin' up with him?" "Just for an hour or
so. Go to bed, Scout. You've had a long day." "Well, I think I'll
stay with you for a while." "Suit yourself," said Atticus. It
must have been after midnight, and I was puzzled by his
amiable acquiescence. He was shrewder than I, however: the moment I
sat down I began to feel sleepy. "Whatcha readin'?" I asked. Atticus
turned the book over. "Something of Jem's. Called The Gray
Ghost." I was suddenly awake. "Why'd you get that one?" "Honey, I
don't know. Just picked it up. One of the few things I
haven't read," he said pointedly. "Read it out loud, please, Atticus.
It's real scary." "No," he said. "You've had enough scaring for a
while. This is too-" "Atticus, I wasn't scared." He raised his
eyebrows, and I protested: "Leastways not till I started telling Mr.
Tate about it. Jem wasn't scared. Asked him and he said he
wasn't. Besides, nothin's real scary except in books." Atticus
opened his mouth to say something, but shut it again. He took
his thumb from the middle of the book and turned back to the
first page. I moved over and leaned my head against his knee. "H'rm,"
he said. "The Gray Ghost, by Seckatary Hawkins. Chapter One..." I
willed myself to stay awake, but the rain was so soft and the room
was so warm and his voice was so deep and his knee was so
snug that I slept. Seconds later, it seemed, his shoe was
gently nudging my ribs. He lifted me to my feet and walked
me to my room. "Heard every word you said," I muttered. "...wasn't
sleep at all, 's about a ship an' Three-Fingered Fred 'n'
Stoner's Boy...." He unhooked my overalls, leaned me against
him, and pulled them off. He held me up with one hand and reached for
my pajamas with the other. "Yeah, an' they all thought it was
Stoner's Boy messin' up their clubhouse an' throwin' ink all over
it an'..." He guided me to the bed and sat me down. He
lifted my legs and put me under the cover. "An' they chased him 'n'
never could catch him 'cause they didn't know what he looked
like, an' Atticus, when they finally saw him, why he hadn't
done any of those things... Atticus, he was real nice...." His
hands were under my chin, pulling up the cover, tucking it around me.
"Most people are, Scout, when you finally see them." He turned out
the light and went into Jem's room. He would be there all night, and
he would be there when Jem waked up in the morning. THE END
This book was posted on hilokal by Moha
Hope you enjoyed reading it.
You can download it's audio on the below telegram channel:
https://t.me/Moha_te
Let's enjoy honest cooperation:)
By undefined
11 notes ・ 9 views
English
Upper Intermediate